READING HALLTHE DOORS OF WISDOM |
LEOPOLD VON RANKE
More than eighty-four years have passed since
Leopold von Ranke published, in October, 1824, his earliest work, “The Latin
and Teutonic Nations”. He was then not quite twenty-nine; when he died, on May
23, 1886, he was in his ninety-first year, but was still at work on his
unfinished “World History”. Between the first book and the last there is a
close connection. It may, indeed, be said that his “Latin and Teutonic
Nations”, his histories of the Popes, of the Spanish and Ottoman Empires, of
the Reformation, of the Wars of Religion in France, of the Seventeenth Century
in England, and other works, were all exploratory voyages for the discovery of
the world, which was from early years his goal. “You know”, he wrote in 1826,
“my old aim, the discovery of the sea of World History”; and again in 1828,
“the discovery of the unknown World History would be my greatest fortune”. It
is in this sense that Lord Acton has called him the most prompt and fortunate
of European pathfinders. Thus, a quite peculiar interest is inherent in the
first essay of the great historian’s ceaseless historical activity, an essay
which decided, or rather indicated, the direction which his intellect was to
take.
A revised translation of a juvenile work
published not far from a century ago is a lot which has fallen to few modern
historians. As such has been Ranke’s fortune, it may be instructive to form
some estimate of the causes. These must be sought in the qualities of the
writer, in the choice of his subject, and in some degree in the changing
fashions of historical reading. The two former causes will receive
consideration here; publication can alone test the latter.
Ranke did not possess the high literary
distinction of a Gibbon or a Froude. In point of style he can scarcely compare
with Gregorovius, whose Teutonism
was modified by Italian influence, as was that of Heine by French. Nevertheless
there is a certain graceful simplicity which few German historians can claim,
and a conscientious striving after clearness, not only of thought but of
expression. Ranke, from the first, was not content to write for the learned
few; he exacted no special knowledge, but appealed to the intelligent reading
public. The existence of such a public in England explains the early
appreciation which his works found here. He himself was not satisfied with his
initial measure of success in respect of style and lucidity. He wrote to his
brother that his “Latin and Teutonic Nations” was a hard book, but not, he
hoped, obscure. Yet when Raumer praised its matter but
criticized its language and form, he confessed that the criticism was just, and
elsewhere he writes of the obscurities and unevennesses
of his own work. In the full sunshine of his fame the prayer of Ranke was still
for light, for clearness, for in clearness lies the truth.
Naturally enough, this deliberate simplicity,
this absence of grandiose periods, dissatisfied some of the contemporaries of
his earlier works. It was a pompous age, and the ambling paces of Ranke’s
narrative fell short of its ideal of a high-flying Pegasus. The very softness
and sweetness of his style drew merriment from Heine, who compared it to
well-cooked mutton with plenty of carrots. If Ranke’s style was as transparent
as water, it was said, it was also as tasteless. This characteristic
undoubtedly increases the difficulty of translation, for the picturesque
simplicity, natural in the German, if faithfully rendered into English, gives
at times the impression of affectation.
Apart from his lucidity, the artistic element
in Ranke, which is chiefly to be noticed, is his power of rapid portraiture. He
rarely attempts an elaborate picture, and he is not always successful when he
does. But the quick and true line-drawing enables the reader to seize the
essential features of his characters without any interruption of the narrative.
This art is less noticeable in “The Latin and Teutonic Nations” than, for
instance, in “The History of the Popes”, but an exception may be found in his
portrait of the Emperor Maximilian, though this is, indeed, somewhat more
detailed than is his wont. Ranke probably never aimed at being a colourist; his
natural gift was that of an artist in black and white, or at most in tinted
line. Nevertheless, when he takes up the palette, he shows a fine and delicate
sense for atmosphere and texture, the result less of technical skill than of
imaginative indwelling in his subject.
Literary merit alone could not have raised
Ranke to his seat among the Immortals. The wings which bore him upward were an
almost religious zeal for history, humanity, impartiality, and thought. His
enemies called him a book-maker and a fraud, but in truth history was for Ranke
a religion; it was the manifestation of God’s work upon mankind. In 1825 he
told his brother, after his first success, that he meant to spend his whole
life in the fear of God and in history, and his intention never faltered. Yet
in this religion there was little that was abstract or doctrinal; it was
eminently human. Personality was what Ranke loved to study; the personality of
individuals, and then the personality of nations. Only through these could he
attain to the personality of mankind at large. Abstract history had little
charm for him; he would have nothing to do with types. “One must enjoy an
individual”, he wrote, “in all his aspects, just as one enjoys flowers without
thought of the species to which they are to be referred”. His very art of
portraiture was probably unconscious, and is scarcely to be ascribed to style;
it was the necessary outcome of his insight. History was for him a Muse who
lived and breathed and moved; thus it is that his books are instinct with her
life.
Impartiality must have been all the more
difficult for an historian who felt so keenly as did Ranke. Yet when he
describes such momentous conflicts as the French Wars of Religion or the
English Great Rebellion, he is not a partisan. Even in his “History of the
Reformation”, where the cause of his own religion and nation is involved, he is
scrupulously just. In quite modern times impartiality is regarded as being
almost a matter of course in a true historian, but to a Prussian writer in the
nineteenth century it was well-nigh an impossibility, especially if he were in
State pay. Ranke, though born a Saxon, became a loyal subject of the
Hohenzollern; he enjoyed the intimate confidence of his Emperor and of
Bismarck, yet he cannot be fairly classed with the professional champions of
Prussian policy; he preserved to the end the splendid isolation of his
intellect. “He decided”, wrote Lord Acton, “to repress the poet, the patriot,
the religious or political partisan, to sustain no cause, to banish himself
from his books, to write nothing that could gratify his own feelings, or
disclose his own private convictions”.
The range of knowledge and interest enjoyed by
Ranke is now becoming rare. Modern research has the defects of its qualities;
it is almost necessarily microscopic, and every new mass of materials that is
unearthed must make it more so. The sphere of the more thorough modern
historian is always narrowing, whereas that of Ranke was ever widening. He was
by nature what he was still striving to be to the day of his death, a universal
historian. He early had the impudence to criticize the antiquarianism of
Niebuhr; he good-humouredly laughed at those who took the more trouble in
proportion to the insignificance of their subject. As a teacher he may be said
to have belonged to the Pre-Seminarist school. He had much belief in the
educational power of lectures covering a long period of history, and though he
had a weak and indistinct utterance he never yielded to the temptation of
preferring the laboratory to the chair. Pupils were made to work out their
subject for themselves. His method seems greatly to have resembled that of the
Oxford or Cambridge tutor; pupils brought their youthful essays on somewhat
general topics, and the Professor criticized as they read, or discussed the
subject afterwards to the accompaniment of sausages and beer. Research for its
own sake was actually discouraged; it must be the means, and not the end.
Buildings, he would say, must always have sure foundations, but the highest aim
of the student should not be the construction of cellar vaults. In Ranke's own
practice archivial research was the last rather than
the first stage. He thoroughly mastered his subject, and learned what to look
for, he then resorted to archives for confirmation or illustration. Thus he
appeared to know his way about collections before he had ever seen them. This
was the despair of custodians who had to ply him with bundle on bundle of
documents, and complained that he read with his hand, just as a recent Oxford
professor was accused of judging books and examination papers by smell rather
than by sight.
It was natural that Ranke’s work should from
time to time be depreciated by the growing school of archivist and researcher,
or by those who worked on older methods. Leo Gervinus,
Bergenroth, and Gindely all
made him the butt of fierce attacks. Researchers complained that he neglected
the most weighty stores of knowledge for the more showy, that he merely skimmed
the documents which he professed to study and peppered his pages with
quotations, to give a show of erudition. One professor refused to place his books
on the shelves of the University library; another pronounced that nothing was
to be learnt from his “Reformation”. Doubtless in some of the strictures there
was an element of truth. Ranke’s researches were indeed considerable, but they
were necessarily not so close and minute as those of workers who confined their
studies to the history of a score of years. It is well to remember that so
sound a researcher as Arneth declared before a Congress of historians that
Ranke alone among writers of prose had furnished a masterpiece to every
nation: to Germany, that is, and France,
to England, Italy, and Spain, to the Ottoman Empire, even to Servia. Sufficient
allowance was not made for his previous preparation, nor yet for the power of
speed, which is a distinguishing mark of genius in archivial
research as in all else. At any rate, Ranke had the good fortune to outlive
most of his critics and their criticism. That he formed such pupils as Giesebrecht, Waitz, Sybel, Lorenz, and our own Lord Acton,
is a proof of the educational value of his methods.
Lord Acton dwells upon this side of Ranke’s
work. He regards a prize essay on Henry I, set in 1834, and in which Waitz beat
Giesebrecht, as the foundation of what has been for
so long incomparably the first school of history in the world, not for ideas or
eloquence, but for solid and methodical work. “Ranke has not only written”, he
elsewhere says, “a larger number of mostly good books than any other man that
ever lived, but has taken pains from the first to explain how the thing is
done”. And again, “Ranke taught the modern historian to be critical, to be
colourless, to be new. We meet him at every step. There are stronger books than
any one of his, and some may have surpassed him in political, religious,
philosophic insight, in vividness of the creative imagination, in originality,
elevation, and depth of thought, but by the extent of important work well
executed, by his influence on able men, and by the amount of knowledge which
mankind received and employs with the stamp of his mind upon it, he stands
unrivalled”. Any one who has had any experience of a
school of history will realize how well-nigh impossible it is to be at once a
prolific writer and a fruitful teacher. Yet this was Ranke’s feat.
The strength of Ranke consisted, perhaps,
above all, in his power of thought. Whenever he wrote he thought. This is by no
means a platitude. It is possible to write a very tolerable and useful history
without any thought at all. History is frequently a mere matter of repetition,
not of verbal iteration, but of idea and arrangement. Want of thought is, in
fact, the danger to which the narrative, and especially the universal
historian, is exposed. Ranke escaped this owing to his insight, his vitality,
his power of co-ordination, his strategic mastery of his facts. A very
appreciative critic, Dr. A. Guilland,
has said that Ranke was intelligent rather than original. It is difficult now
to judge equitably of the originality of an historian who wrote more than
three-quarters of a century ago, because many of the thoughts and methods which
were then original have become commonplace. The general lines of any given
period have from much reading and much writing become fairly fixed, and the
historian cannot stray far from them without becoming bizarre or paradoxical.
But originality can always find its vent in the treatment of detail and
illustration, and of this art Ranke gave convincing proof from his very
earliest book.
This earliest book has a special interest for
several reasons. It was accompanied by a subsidiary volume, which has not been
translated, containing an elaborate critique of the authorities upon whom Ranke
had mainly to rely. Their importance was at once recognized, and, what was
better still, they provoked discussion as to the originality of his method. “A
new art of employing authorities”, wrote Lord Acton, “came in with Ranke in
1824”. The result was the author’s promotion from a school at Frankfurt on the
Oder to the post of Extraordinary Professor in the University of Berlin. This
was the making of Ranke’s career; he could now both learn and teach in one of
the world’s chief intellectual capitals. The provincial schoolmaster was to
become, in Dollinger’s words, a Praeceptor Gerviatdae. Looking backwards from the close of this
long career the reader will find that “The Latin and Teutonic Nations” contains
the protoplasm from which Ranke’s historical principles were gradually evolved,
and in particular the blending of wide philosophical conceptions with
illustrative detail. “What a wealth”, writes Lorenz, “of ideas fermenting and
in part obscure, set forth in a form which, while it makes reading difficult,
nevertheless enchains the fancy”. Ranke in after years had little parental
affection for his firstborn, and wished first to exclude it from the edition of
his collected works, and then to give it a new form. Lorenz himself saved it
for posterity by insisting that he would spoil one of his most original and
instructive contributions to history.
Ranke chose a magnificent subject, and this he
himself admitted to the end. Until the close of the eighteenth century it would
be hard to find two decades so rich in interest and importance as those whose
history he tells. That this is now a commonplace is due mainly to the influence
of this very book. It is true that the author owes something to accident, for
his scheme comprised a larger period with 1535 as its concluding date. This
would have led him into a fresh range of ideas, personalities, and aims. His
final date, moreover, was singularly inconclusive; no halt could have been
possible until the year 1559. Even as it is, the date with which he closes is
not, as will be seen, a scientific finale. The Preface sets forth that the
author’s intention is to confine himself in the main to the interaction of
those nations of Latin and Teutonic origin, whose history is the kernel of all
modern history. Internal or constitutional events he would only treat in so far
as they were necessary to the understanding of external enterprises. For example,
the growth of absolutism in Spain was a necessary condition of the success of
the Spanish Crown in Italy; the strength or weakness of Maximilian at his
several Diets is reflected in the flux or reflux of his international
influence. The common movements of a certain group of European nations is,
therefore, the subject of this volume.
To prove how old the idea of this unity of
European nations is, the Introduction opens with the dream of a Visigothic
kingdom fusing the Germanic tribes with the old Roman world. At its close Ranke
calls the three general movements of these nations, that is, the migrations,
the crusades, and the colonization, the three deep breaths. It would almost
seem as if he regarded the move of the Western powers upon Italy at the turn of
the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries as a fourth deep breath. In a measure
this does partake of the character of the other three. The southernly or
easternly march of Germans, French, Spaniards, and particularly Swiss, was
almost a migration. Then, again, to more than one mind Italy was the
stepping-stone for a crusade against the infidel; the threatened French advance
from Naples upon Constantinople was to be the rival or the complement of the
conquest of Granada. Charles VIII was too weak of purpose to abandon the
pleasures of Naples for the sterner task of a crusade, but there is no reason
to rate his high-flown expressions as mere bombast. And, finally, the
colonizing enterprises of the European nations, especially those of the
Portuguese, directly affected the fortunes of the Italian wars. Had the source
of her commerce with the East not been tapped by Portugal, Venice might have
made a better fight with Europe. The fourth great breath, in fact, began to be
drawn in before the third was quite exhausted.
The offensive movement against Italy was begun
by France, but Charles VIII's invasion in 1494 was rather the occasion than the
cause for the enterprise of the other nations. These were prompted by no mere
jealousy of France, or by a desire to preserve the balance of power. Maximilian
had already begun his intrigues with Milan; it was always certain that as soon
as an Emperor was strong enough, he would revive his imperial pretensions. It
was unlikely that the legitimate line of Aragon, which now wielded the forces
of Castile, and which already possessed the ports of Sicily, would long
acquiesce in its exclusion from Naples by the bastard branch. Julius II, as
Cardinal, had long ago brought down the Swiss hordes, all too willing, upon the
fat Lombard plains; it was no mere raid that they now intended, but substantial
occupation.
Upon Charles VIII’s apparently futile
expedition followed the partition wars, which form the bulk of the present
volume. Louis XII doubted if he could realize the Orleanist
claims on Milan without the co-operation of Venice, the most subtle antagonist
of Charles VIII. Hence arose the Milanese partition war. The French king was
then certain that the pretensions of his Crown to Naples were valueless unless
he could offer a quid pro quo to
Spain; the outcome was the Neapolitan partition war.
The thieves quarrelled, to the disadvantage of
the less clever but more enterprising thief, and Naples passed in its integrity
to Spain. Alexander VI, after stealing oddments in the general confusion, was
at the moment of his death balancing the prospects of a partition of Central
Italy by an alliance with either France or Spain. Finally, Julius II, most
fatal of all Italians to Italian freedom, engineered the most criminal of all
partition wars. In the League of Cambray, France, Spain, and Germany were all
to have their share of Venetian territory. It was of small advantage to Italy
that the Pope himself, Mantua, Ferrara, and Savoy were to have such share of
the spoils as fall to camp-followers. Julius recognized too late his own
mistake, and bragged of the expulsion of all foreigners. The only result was a
fresh partition, the temporary exclusion of France, the most humane and least
persistent of partitioning powers, the permanent settlement of Spain, the
introduction of the migrating Swiss, while, if he had had his will, the
Austrian occupation of the Venetian mainland would have been anticipated by
three centuries. Italy had become the Thieves’ Kitchen of Europe, and Julius II
had made himself responsible for the fixtures.
Such a theme as this gave full scope for
Ranke’s interest in personality, his range of knowledge, and his constructive
power. Italy throughout occupies the centre of his canvas, but in the distance,
and, it may be added, in the corners there are bits of landscape and seascape,
which might well form separate pictures, but which, nevertheless, have their
fitting place in the general composition. Beyond the Alps the fortunes of the
Italian wars, and of Maximilian’s shifting relations with France, are seen to
affect not only the raids of the Duke of Guelders on the northernmost
Netherlands, but the most technical details of constitutional reform in
Germany. In a few lines something is learnt of the domestic peculiarities of Württemberg,
a second-rate German state, which is in the process of conversion from a county
into a duchy. At first sight this appears to be an otiose, if not inartistic,
detail, but all of a sudden it is made to account for Maximilian’s triumphant
appearance before the Diet of Freiburg, and that leads to his enhanced
reputation with the European powers. The quarrels of Swiss and Grisons with
Swabians and Tyrolese contributed largely to Louis XII’s occupation of Milan,
their pacification led to Ludovico Moro’s return, while an internal Swiss
squabble determined the fate of Lombardy.
Ranke touches but lightly and allusively on
American exploration; but he levies heavy contributions on the shores of North
Africa, on the Red Sea, and on the Indian Ocean, from Mombasa to Malacca. Here
it is that he proves, in his most effective manner, the unity of the history of
the Western nations. The Portuguese, after fighting the Moors on the shores of
the Atlantic, found the same enemies at Mozambique, and strove with them for
the spice trade of Calicut. The battles of Spaniards or Portuguese at Bugia,
Tripoli, Diu have active connection with the clash of Latin and Teutonic
nations in Italy. Until the French occupation of the hinterland of Algiers,
there was, perhaps, only one statesman who comprehended the essential factors
of the North African problem, and that was Ximenes.
Ranke perpetually brings the Western and
Eastern incidents of his period into mutual relation. The Venetians, after
Almeida’s victories in 1507, sent metal and gun-founders and shipwrights to the
Soldan, whose fleet was manned in part by Venetian and Dalmatian sailors. “His
victory and his loss was their victory and their loss. Their maritime life and
command of the seas were alike dependent upon the issue that was to be fought
out in India in the year 1508”. Again, while February 3, 1509, crushed the
trade of Venice, the battle of May 14 destroyed her mainland power; Italy, in
the phrase of Ascanio Sforza, ceased to be the inner court of the world. Not only,
indeed, were the profits of the Eastern trade withdrawn from Venice, but went
to swell the resources of her enemies. The profit of one hundred and
seventy-five per cent., which the house of Fugger derived from the despatch of
three ships to Calicut, enabled them to finance Maximilian in his attack on
Padua. And as with Portuguese so it is with Spaniards. In 1511 Ximenes had
apparently persuaded Ferdinand to undertake in person the conquest of North
Africa. Ferdinand, on his way to Malaga, was stopped by news from Romagna, and
thus it was that the Spanish force, intended for the permanent occupation of
North Africa, from Algiers to Tripoli, was shipped to Italy to be beaten at
Ravenna.
It seems ungrateful to complain that one who
has given so much should have denied a little more; and yet it must be
confessed that the close of this volume leaves the subject incomplete. Ranke
was, in this case, too much influenced by the chronology of reigns. He made the
death of Louis XII his dividing line. This was natural, as the personality of
his successor was so striking that it immediately calls up a fresh slide in the
magic-lantern. Then, again, Francis I at once suggests the name of his rival,
Charles V. Nevertheless, the scientific frontier line is not 1514, but 1516,
for it was then that the Italian partition wars closed. Not until 1521 did the
conflict between Charles V and Francis I for the domination of Italy begin;
their relations were particularly friendly until at least the close of 1516.
Ranke himself admits, in the Conclusion added
in his second edition, that his work breaks off at the very moment of the
crisis. The death of Louis XII left the situation in Italy indeterminate. It
was as impossible that France should submit to defeat by the Swiss Cantons as it
was that England should recognize Majuba or Magersfontein
as a final verdict. It was not chivalry, nor mere love of fight, but political
necessity that drove the French king and nation into the campaign of Marignano.
The victory of Marignano connects itself with the defeat of Novara rather than
with that of Pavia. In 1514 Spanish troops were still prowling about Italy,
seeking whom they should devour. While Spaniards occupied Brescia, Imperialists
still held Verona, and these were the two chief cities of the Venetian
mainland. The Swiss nominally in the service of the new Duke of Milan,
Maximilian Sforza, were in reality absorbing Lombardy. The Holy League still
stood in arms against France and Venice. Thus if Ranke must needs choose the
end of a reign as his conclusion, it should have been that of Ferdinand, for
the Spanish king had become of more weight in European politics than the
French. Ferdinand’s death occasioned the formation of the huge aggregate of
Habsburg power which was to be the dominating factor in the succeeding period.
It was closely followed by four treaties, three of which have been of abiding
validity. The treaty of Noyon, the most important for the moment, regulated the
relations between France, Spain, and the Netherlands on the most amicable
terms. The Eternal Peace of Freiburg bound the Swiss to French service down to
the Revolution; it determined the curious, curly frontier which still twists in
and out on the shores of Lakes Maggiore and Lugano. Their defeat at Marignano
had decided that the Swiss should not be a substantial Italian power, a buffer
state dividing the Habsburg and the Valois. Equally strange and equally
permanent was the line drawn on the east between Venetian and Austrian
territory by the treaty of December, 1516.
This line gave to Maximilian the uppermost
slice of the Lago di Garda, and the town of Roveredo
on the Adige; instead of accepting the rapid Isonzo as the natural boundary,
racial and geographical, between Slav and Italian, it created a highly
artificial frontier which to the present day gives a breadth of the Friulian
plain with its Italian population to Austria, and leaves to Italy, heiress of
Venice, a Slavonia irredenta
in the sub-Alpine hills. Finally, the victory of Marignano determined the
Concordat of Bologna, which may be said to have guided the relations between
Church and State in France until almost yesterday.
It would be dishonest to pretend, that even
within its limits “The Latin and Teutonic Nations” is a perfect book. Ranke
well knew that it was not. He was still struggling to attain his ideal of
style: simple, smooth, and clear. The volume has been criticized on the ground
that it was based solely on printed authorities; but Ranke replies, in the
Preface to his second edition, that these authorities were very numerous and
very good, that only on reaching the succeeding period he felt obliged to go
behind the printing-press. It may be regretted that this second edition was not
more thoroughly revised in the light of later learning. This appeared in
October, 1874, to celebrate the jubilee of Ranke’s literary activity. He
revised the pages on a holiday in the country, away from books; he confesses
that the work is essentially the same. Yet some of the small mistakes might
well have been corrected, and they are probably responsible for errors in later
text-books. In 1824 Ranke had not as yet visited Italy, and his geography is
occasionally at fault. He writes of Louis XII's operations on the Adda as
taking place among heights and valleys, whereas the only excrescence on the
plain was the dyke of a canalized streamlet. It is elaborately argued that the
French attacked the Venetian vanguard, whereas authorities printed by 1874
prove conclusively that it was the rear. The battle of Ravenna is a hotch-potch
of bright anecdotes, without a feeling for tactics. Treviso is, by implication,
placed in the Friuli, while Gian Galeazzo Visconti's widow is wrongly
represented as giving Verona to Venice to obtain her alliance against Carrara.
Caesar Borgia has enough crimes for which to answer, but it was not men, but
bulls that he shot from horseback, as they charged across the piazza of
St. Peters. A more serious mistake, often repeated by others, occurs in the
very second paragraph of the book. Here René of Provence is made to disinherit
his grandson, René of Lorraine, and leave Anjou to his nephew, the Count of
Maine, who in turn bequeathed it to the Crown. But Anjou was an apanage which
could not descend in either the female or the collateral line, and it lapsed to
the Crown upon old René’s death. But a Pharisee could doubtless have found
motes in all the eyes of Argus. In spite of blemishes, "The Latin and
Teutonic Nations" will remain an inspiring example of what can be done by
a young writer who will both read and think. Most honest historians would be
thankful if their last book were as good as Leopold von Ranke’s first.
E. ARMSTRONG.
PREFACE.
From
the first ten years of the fifteenth century to the beginning of the thirty
years’ war, the constitution and political condition of Germany were determined
by the periodical diets and the measures there resolved on. The time was long
past in which the public affairs of the country were determined by one supreme
will; but its political life had not yet (as at a later period) retreated
within the several boundaries of the constituent members of the empire. The
imperial assemblies exercised rights and powers which, though not accurately
defined, were yet the comprehensive and absolute powers of sovereignty. They
made war and peace; levied taxes; exercised a supreme supervision, and were
even invested with executive power. Together with the deputies from the cities,
and the representatives of the counts and lords, appeared the emperor and the
sovereign princes in person. It is true they discussed the most important
affairs of their respective countries in their several colleges, or in
committees chosen from the whole body, and the questions were decided by the
majority of voices. The unity of the nation was represented by these
assemblies. Within the wide borders of the empire nothing of importance could
occur which did not here come under deliberation; nothing new arise, which must
not await its final decision and execution here. Spite of all these
considerations, the history of the diets of the empire has not yet received the
attention it deserves. The Recesses of the diets are sufficiently well known;
but who would judge a deliberative assembly by the final results of its
deliberations? Projects of a systematic collection of its transactions have
occasionally been entertained, and the work has even been taken in hand; but
all that has hitherto been done has remained in a fragmentary and incomplete
state.
As
it is the natural ambition of every man to leave behind him some useful record
of his existence, I have long cherished the project of devoting my industry and
my powers to this most important work. Not that I flattered myself that I was
competent to supply so large a deficiency; to exhaust the mass of materials in
its manifold juridical bearings; my idea was only to trace with accuracy the
rise and development of the constitution of the empire, through a series (if
possible unbroken) of the Acts of the Diets. Fortune was so propitious to my
wishes that, in the autumn of 1836, I found in the Archives of the city of
Frankfurt a collection of the very kind I wanted, and was allowed access to
these precious documents with all the facility I could desire. The collection
consists of ninety-six folio volumes, which contain the Acts of the Imperial
Diets from 1414 to 1613. In the earlier part it is very imperfect, but step by
step, in proportion as the constitution of the empire acquires form and
development, the documents rise in interest. At the beginning of the sixteenth
century, from which time the practice of reducing public proceedings to writing
was introduced, it becomes so rich in new and important materials, that it lays
the strongest hold on the attention. There are not only the Acts, but the
reports of the deputies from the cities—the Rathsfreunde,—which generally
charm by their frankness and simplicity, and often surprise by their sagacity.
I profited by the opportunity to make myself master of the contents of the
first sixty-four of these volumes, extending down to the year 1551. A
collection of Imperial Rescripts occasionally afforded me valuable
contributions. But I could not stop here. A single town was not in a condition
to know all that passed. It is evident that the labours of the electoral and
princely colleges were not to be sought for in the records of a city. In the
beginning of the year 1837, I received permission to explore the Royal Archives
of the kingdom of Prussia at Berlin, and, in the April of the same year, the
State Archives of the kingdom of Saxony at Dresden, for the affairs of the
empire during the times of Maximilian I and Charles V. They were of great value
to me; the former as containing the records of an electorate; the latter, down
to the end of that epoch, those of a sovereign principality. It is true that I
came upon many documents which I had already seen at Frankfurt; but, at the
same time, I found a great number of new ones, which gave me an insight into
parts of the subject hitherto obscure. None of these collections is, indeed,
complete, and many a question which suggests itself remains unanswered; yet
they are in a high degree instructive. They throw a completely new light on the
character and conduct of such influential princes as Joachim II of Brandenburg,
and still more, Maurice of Saxony.
Let
no one pity a man who devotes himself to studies apparently so dry, and
neglects for them the delights of many a joyous day. It is true the companions
of his solitary hours are but lifeless paper, but they are the remnants of the
life of past ages, which gradually assume form and substance to the eye
occupied in the study of them. For me (in a preface an author is bound to speak
of himself—a subject he elsewhere gladly avoids) they had a peculiar interest.
When I wrote the first part of my History of the Popes, I designedly treated
the origin and progress of the Reformation with as much brevity as the subject
permitted. I cherished the hope of dedicating more extensive and profound
research to this most important event of the history of my country. This hope
was now abundantly satisfied. Of the new matter which I found, the greater part
related, directly or indirectly, to the epoch of the Reformation. At every step
I acquired new information as to the circumstances which prepared the
politico-religious movement of that time; the phases of our national life, by
which it was accelerated; the origin and working of the resistance it
encountered. It is impossible to approach a matter originating in such intense
mental energy, and exercising so vast an influence on the destinies of the
world, without being profoundly interested and absorbed by it. I was fully
sensible that if I executed the work I proposed to myself, the Reformation
would be the centre on which all other incidents and circumstances would turn.
But
to accomplish this, more accurate information was necessary as to the progress
of opinion in the evangelical party (especially in a political point of view),
antecedent to the crisis of the Reformation, than any that could be gathered
from printed sources. The Archives common to the whole Ernestine line of
Saxony, deposited at Weimar, which I visited in August, 1837, afforded me what
I desired. Nor can any spot be more full of information on the marked epochs at
which this house played so important a part, than the vault in which its
archives are preserved. The walls and the whole interior space are covered with
the rolls of documents relating to the deeds and events of that period. Every
note, every draft of an answer, is here preserved. The correspondence between
the Elector John Frederic and the Landgrave Philip of Hessen would alone fill a
long series of printed volumes. I endeavoured, above all, to make myself master
of the two registers, which include the affairs of the empire and the
Schmalkaldic League. As to the former, I found, as was to be expected from the
nature of the subject, many valuable details; as to the latter, I hence first
drew information which is, I hope, in some degree calculated to satisfy the
curiosity of the public.
I
feel bound here publicly to express my thanks to the authorities to whom the
guardianship of these various archives is entrusted, for the liberal aid —often
not unattended with personal trouble— which I received from them all.
At
length, I conceived the project of undertaking a more extensive research into
the Archives of Germany. I repaired to the Communal Archives of the house of
Anhalt at Dessau, which at the epoch in question shared the opinions and
followed the example of that of Saxony; but I soon saw that I should here be in
danger of encumbering myself with too much matter of a purely local character.
I remembered how many other documents relating to this period had been explored
and employed by the industry of German inquirers. The work of Bucholz on
Ferdinand I contains a most copious treasure of important matter from those of
Austria, of which too little use is made in that state. The instructive
writings of Stumpf and Winter are founded on those of Bavaria. The Archives of Wurtemberg were formerly explored by Sattler; those of
Hessen, recently, by Rommel and Neudecker. For the more exclusively
ecclesiastical view of the period, the public is in possession of a rich mass
of authentic documents in the collections of Walch, and the recent editions of Luther’s
Letters by De Wette; and still more in those of Melanchthon by
Bretschneider. The letters of the deputies from Strasbourg and Nuremberg, which
have been published, throw light on the history of particular diets. It is
hardly necessary for me to mention how much has lately been brought together by
Forstemann respecting the Diet of Augsburg of 1530,
so long the subject of earnest research and labour.
Recent
publications, especially in Italy and England, lead us to hope for the
possibility of a thorough and satisfactory explanation of the foreign relations
of the empire. I see the time approach in which we shall no longer have to
found modern history on the reports even of contemporaneous historians, except
in so far as they were in possession of personal and immediate knowledge of
facts; still less, on works yet more remote from the source; but on the
narratives of eye-witnesses, and the genuine and original documents. For the
epoch treated in the following work, this prospect is no distant one. I myself
have made use of a number of records which I had found when in the pursuit of
another subject, in the Archives of Vienna, Venice, Rome, and especially
Florence. Had I gone into further detail, I should have run the risk of losing
sight of the subject as a whole; or in the necessary lapse of time, of breaking
the unity of the conception which had arisen before my mind in the course of my
past researches.
And
thus I proceeded boldly to the completion of this work; persuaded that when an
inquirer has made researches of some extent in authentic records, with an
earnest spirit and a genuine ardour for truth, though later discoveries may
throw clearer and more certain light on details, they can only strengthen his
fundamental conceptions of the subject:—for truth can be but one.
INTRODUCTION.
VIEW OF THE EARLY HISTORY OF GERMANY
BOOK I . 1494-1501
CHAP. I.
THE SITUATION IN FRANCE AND IN ITALY. EXPEDITION OF CHARLES VIII TO NAPLES
CHAP.
II.SPAIN AND THE LEAGUE AT WAR WITH CHARLES VIII (1495-1496)
CHAP.
III. MAXIMILIAN OF AUSTRIA AND THE EMPIRE
CHAP. IV.
FALL OF THE HOUSE OF SFORZA-ARAGON
BOOK II . 1502-1514
INTRODUCTION
Summary of the Position of the Latin and Teutonic Nations
CHAP. I.
THE WAR IN NAPLES AND IN THE ROMAGNA
CHAP. II.
SPAIN AND AUSTRIA AT VARIANCE
CHAP.
III. VENICE AND JULIUS II
CHAP. IV.
RISE OF THE AUSTRO-SPANISH HOUSE TO ALMOST THE HIGHEST POWER IN EUROPE
VIEW OF THE EARLY HISTORY OF GERMANY.
For
purposes of discussion or of instruction, it may be possible to sever
ecclesiastical from political history; in actual life, they are indissolubly
connected, or rather fused into one indivisible whole. As indeed there is
nothing of real importance in the moral and intellectual business of human
life, the source of which does not lie in a profound and more or less conscious
relation of man and his concerns to God and divine things, it is impossible to
conceive a nation worthy of the name, or entitled to be called, in any sense,
great, whose political existence is not constantly elevated and guided by
religious ideas. To cultivate, purify and exalt these, to give them an
expression intelligible to all and profitable to all, to embody them in outward
forms and public acts, is its necessary as well as its noblest task. It is not
to be denied that this process inevitably brings into action two great
principles which seem to place a nation at variance with itself. Nationality (i.e.
the sum of the peculiar qualities, habits, and sentiments of a nation) is
necessarily restricted within the bounds marked out by neighbouring
nationalities; whereas religion, ever since it was revealed to the world in a
form which claims and deserves universality, constantly strives after sole and absolute
supremacy.
In
the foundation or constitution of a State, some particular moral or
intellectual principle predominates; a principle prescribed by an inherent
necessity, expressed in determinate forms and giving birth to a peculiar
condition of society, or character of civilisation. But no sooner has a Church,
with its forms of wider application, embracing different nations, arisen, than
it grasps at the project of absorbing the State, and of reducing the principle
on which civil society is founded to complete subjection: the original
underived authority of that principle is, indeed, rarely acknowledged by the
Church. At length the universal religion appears, and, after it has
incorporated itself with the consciousness of mankind, assumes the character of
a great and growing tradition, handed down from people to people, and
communicated in rigid dogmas. But nations cannot suffer themselves to be
debarred from exercising the understanding bestowed on them by nature, or the
knowledge acquired by study, on an investigation of its truth. In every age,
therefore, we see diversities in the views of religion arise in different
nations, and these again react in various ways on the character and condition
of the State. It is evident, from the nature of this struggle, how mighty is
the crisis which it involves for the destinies of the human race. Religious
truth must have an outward and visible representation, in order that the State
may be perpetually reminded of the origin and the end of our earthly existence;
of the rights of our neighbours, and the kindred of all the nations of the
earth; it would otherwise be in danger of degenerating into tyranny, or of
hardening into inveterate prejudice, into intolerant conceit of self, and
hatred of all that is foreign. On the other hand, a free development of the
national character and culture is necessary to the interests of religion.
Without this, its doctrines can never be truly understood nor profoundly
accepted: without incessant alternations of doubt and conviction, of assent and
dissent, of seeking and finding, no error could be removed, no deeper
understanding of truth attained. Thus, then, independence of thought and
political freedom are indispensable to the Church herself; she needs them to
remind her of the varying intellectual wants of men, of the changing nature of
her own forms; she needs them to preserve her from the lifeless iteration of
misunderstood doctrines and rites, which kill the soul.
It
has been said, the State is itself the Church, but the Church has thought
herself authorised to usurp the place of the State. The truth is, that the
spiritual or intellectual life of man, in its intensest
depth and energy unquestionably one, yet manifests itself in these two
institutions, which come into contact under the most varied forms; which are
continually striving to pervade each other, yet never entirely coincide; to
exclude each other, yet neither has ever been permanently victor or vanquished.
In the nations of the West, at least, such a result has never been obtained.
The Caliphate may unite ecclesiastical and political power in one hand; but the
whole life and character of western Christendom consists of the incessant
action and counteraction of Church and State; hence arises the freer, more
comprehensive, more profound activity of mind, which must, on the whole, be
admitted to characterise that portion of the globe. The aspect of the public
life of Europe is always determined by the mutual relations of these two great
principles. Hence it happens that ecclesiastical history is not to be
understood without political, nor the latter without the former. The
combination of both is necessary to present either in its true light; and if
ever we are able to fathom the depths of that profounder life where both have their
common source and origin, it must be by a complete knowledge of this
combination. But if this is the case with all nations, it is most pre-eminently
so with the German, which has bestowed more persevering and original thought on
ecclesiastical and religious subjects than any other. The events of ten
centuries turn upon the struggles between the Empire and the Papacy, between
Catholicism and Protestantism. We, in our days, stand midway between them.
My
design is to relate the history of an epoch in which the politico-religious
energy of the German nation was most conspicuous for its growth and most
prolific in its results. I do not conceal from myself the great difficulty of
this undertaking; but, with God’s help, I will endeavour to accomplish it. I shall
first attempt to trace my way through a retrospect of earlier times.
CAROLINGIAN TIMES.
One
of the most important epochs in the history of the world was the commencement
of the eighth century; when, on the one side Mohammedanism threatened to
overspread Italy and Gaul, and on the other, the ancient idolatry of Saxony and
Friesland once more forced its way across the Rhine. In this peril of Christian
institutions a youthful prince of Germanic race, Carl Martel, arose as their
champion; maintained them with all the energy which the necessity for
self-defence calls forth, and finally extended them into new regions. For, as
the possessor of the sole power which still remained erect in the nations of
Roman origin —the Pope of Rome— allied himself with this prince and his
successors; as he received assistance from them, and bestowed in return the
favour and protection of the spiritual authority, the compound of military and
sacerdotal government which forms the basis of all European civilisation from
that moment arose into being. From that time conquest and conversion went hand
in hand. “As soon,” says the author of the life of St. Boniface, “as the
authority of the glorious Prince Charles over the Frisians was confirmed, the
trumpet of the sacred word was heard.” It would be difficult to say whether the
Frankish domination contributed more to the conversion of the Hessians and
Thuringians, or Christianity to the incorporation of those races with the
Frankish Empire. The war of Charlemagne against the Saxons was a war not only
of conquest but of religion. Charlemagne opened it with an attack on the Old
Saxon sanctuary, the Irminsul; the Saxons retorted by
the destruction of the church at Fritzlar.
Charlemagne marched to battle bearing the relics of saints; missionaries
accompanied the divisions of his army; his victories were celebrated by the
establishment of bishoprics; baptism was the seal of subjection and allegiance;
relapse into heathenism was also a crime against the state. The consummation of
all these incidents is to be found in the investiture of the aged conqueror
with the imperial crown. A German, in the natural course of events and in the
exercise of regular legitimate power, occupied the place of the Caesars as
chief of a great part of the Roman world; he also assumed a lofty station at
the side of the Roman pontiff in spiritual affairs; a Frankish synod saluted
him, as “Regent of the true religion.” The entire state of which he was the
chief now assumed a colour and form wherein the spiritual and temporal elements
were completely blended. The union between emperor and pope served as a model
for that between count and bishop. The archdeaconries into which the bishoprics
were divided, generally, if not universally, coincided with the Gauen,
or political divisions of the country. As the counties were divided into
hundreds, so were the archdeaconries into deaneries. The seat of them was
different; but, in respect of the territory over which their jurisdiction
extended, there was a striking correspondence. According to the view of the
lord and ruler, not only was the secular power to lend its arm to the
spiritual, but the spiritual to aid the temporal by its excommunications. The
great empire reminds us of a vast neutral ground in the midst of a world filled
with carnage and devastation; where an iron will imposes peace on forces
generally in a state of mutual hostility and destruction, and fosters and
shelters the germ of civilisation; so guarded was it on all sides by
impregnable marches. But every age could not produce a man so formed to subdue
and to command; and for the development of the world which Charlemagne founded,
it remained to be seen what would be the mutual bearing of the different
elements of which it was composed; whether they would blend with or repel each
other, agree or conflict: for there can be no true and enduring vitality
without the free motion of natural and innate powers and propensities. It was
inevitable that the clergy would first feel its own strength. This body formed
a corporation independent even of the emperor: originating and developed in the
Roman nations, whose most remarkable product it had been in the preceding
century, it now extended over those of Germanic race; in which, through the
medium of a common language, it continually made new proselytes and gained
strength and consistency. Even under Charlemagne the spiritual element was
already bestirring itself with activity and vigour. One of the most remarkable
of his capitularies is that wherein he expresses his astonishment that his
spiritual and temporal officers so often thwart, instead of supporting each
other, as it is their duty to do. He does not disguise that it was the clergy
more especially who exceeded their powers: to them he addresses the question,
fraught with reproach and displeasure, which has been so often repeated by
succeeding ages, how far they are justified in interfering in purely secular
affairs? He tells them they must explain what is meant by renouncing the world;
whether that is consistent with large and costly retinues, with attempts to
persuade the ignorant to make donations of their goods and to disinherit their
children; whether it were not better to foster good morals than to build
churches, and the like. But the clergy soon evinced a much stronger propensity
to ambitious encroachment.
We
need not here inquire whether the pseudo-Isidorian
decretals were invented as early as the reign of Charlemagne, or somewhat
later; in the Frankish church, or in Italy: at all events, they belong to that
period, are connected with a most extensive project, and form a great epoch in
our history. The project was to overthrow the existing constitution of the
church, which, in every country, still essentially rested on the authority of
the metropolitan; to place the whole church in immediate subjection to the pope
of Rome, and to establish a unity of the spiritual power, by means of which it
must necessarily emancipate itself from the temporal. Such was the plan which
the clergy had even then the boldness to avow. A series of names of the earlier
popes were pressed into the service, in order to append to them forged
documents, to which a colour of legality was thus given. And what was it not
possible to effect in those times of profound historical ignorance, in which past
ages were only beheld through the twilight of falsehood and fantastic error?
and under princes like the successors of Charlemagne, whose minds, instead of
being elevated or purified, were crushed by religious influences, so that they
lost the power of distinguishing the spiritual from the temporal province of
the clerical office?
It
is indisputable that the order of succession to the throne which Louis the
Pious, in utter disregard of the warnings of his faithful adherents, and in
opposition to all German modes of thinking, established in the year 817, was
principally brought about by the influence of the clergy. “The empire,” says Agobardus, “must not be divided into three; it must remain
one and undivided.” The division of the empire seemed to endanger the unity of
the church: and, as the emperor was chiefly determined by spiritual motives,
the regulations adopted were enforced with all the pomp of religious
ceremonies,—by masses, fasts, and distributions of alms; every one swore to
them; they were held to be inspired by God himself. After this, no one, not
even the emperor, could venture to depart from them. Great, at least, were the
evils which he brought upon himself by his attempt to do so, out of love to a
son born at a later period of his life. The irritated clergy made common cause
with his elder sons, who were already dissatisfied with the administration of
the empire. The supreme pontiff came in person from Rome and declared in their
favour; and a universal revolt was the consequence. Nor did this first
manifestation of their power satisfy the clergy. In order to make sure of their
advantage, they formed the daring scheme of depriving the born and anointed
emperor, on whom they could now no longer place reliance, of his consecrated
dignity —a dignity which, at any rate, he owed not to them,— and of bestowing
it immediately on the successor to the throne who had been nominated in 817,
and who was the natural representative of the unity of the empire. If, on the
one hand, it is indisputable that, in the eighth century, the spiritual
authority contributed greatly to the establishment of the principle of
obedience to the temporal government, it is equally certain that, in the ninth,
it made rapid strides towards the acquisition of power into its own hands. In
the collection of capitularies of Benedictus Levita, it is treated as one of
the leading principles, that no constitution in the world has any force or
validity against the decisions of the popes of Rome; in more than one canon,
kings who act in opposition to this principle are threatened with divine
punishment. The monarchy of Charlemagne seemed to be about to be transformed
into an ecclesiastical state.
I
do not hesitate to affirm that it was mainly the people of Germany who resisted
this tendency; indeed, that it was precisely this resistance which first
awakened Germany to a consciousness of its own importance as a nation. For it
would be impossible to speak of a German nation, in the proper sense of the
word, during the preceding ages. In the more remote, the several tribes had not
even a common name by which they recognised each other: during the period of
their migration, they fought with as much hostility among themselves as against
the stranger, and allied themselves as readily with the latter as with those of
common race. Under the Merovingian kings they were further divided by religious
enmities; the Saxons, in presence of Frankish Christianity, held the more
pertinaciously to their forms of government and to their ancient gods. It was not
till Charlemagne had united all the Germanic tribes, with the exception of
those in England and Scandinavia, in one and the same temporal and spiritual
allegiance, that the nation began to acquire form and consistency; it was not
till the beginning of the ninth century, that the German name appeared as
contra-distinguished from the Roman portion of the empire. It is worthy of
eternal remembrance, that the first act in which the Germans appear as one
people, is the resistance to the attempt of the clergy to depose their emperor
and lord. The ideas of legitimacy which they had inherited from their past
political life and history, as members of tribes, would never have led them to
derive it from the pretended grace of God, that is to say, from the declaration
of the spiritual authorities. They were attached to Louis the Pious, who had
rendered peculiar services to the Saxon chiefs; their aversion to his
deposition was easily fanned into a flame: at the call of Louis the Germanic,
who kept his court in Bavaria, the other tribes, Saxons, Swabians, and Franks,
on this side the Carbonaria, gathered around his
banner; for the first time they were united in one great object. As they were
aided by an analogous, though much feebler, movement in the south of France,
the bishops soon found themselves compelled to absolve the emperor from the
penance they had imposed, and to acknowledge him again as their lord. The first
historical act of the united nation is this rising in favour of their born
prince against the spiritual power. Nor were they any longer inclined to
consent to such a deviation from their own law of succession, as was involved
in the acknowledgement of a single heir to the whole monarchy. When, after the
death of Louis the Pious, Lothair, in spite of all that had passed, made an
attempt to seize the reins of the whole empire, he found in the Germans a
resistance, at first doubtful, but every moment increasing, and finally
victorious. From them his troops received their first important defeat on the
Riess, which laid the foundation of the severance of Germany from the great
monarchy.
Lothair
relied on his claims recognised by the clergy; the Germans, combined with the
southern French, challenged him to submit them to the judgement of heaven by
battle. Then it was that the great array of the Frankish Empire split into two
hostile masses; the one containing a preponderance of Roman, the other of
Germanic elements. The former defended the unity of the Empire; the latter
demanded, according to their German ideas, its separation. There is a ballad
extant on the battle of Fontenay, in which one of the combatants expresses his
grief at this bloody war of fellow-citizens and brethren; “on that bitter night
in which the brave fell, the skilful in fight.” For the destiny of the West it
was decisive. The judgement of heaven was triumphantly pronounced against the
claims of the clergy; three kingdoms were now actually established instead of
one. The secular Germanic principles which, from the time of the great
migration of tribes, had extended widely into the Roman world remained in
possession of the field: they were steadfastly maintained in the subsequent
troubles.
On
the extinction of one of the three lines in which the unity of the empire
should have rested, dissensions broke out between the two others, a main
feature of which was the conflict between the spiritual and secular principles.
The
king of the French, Charles the Bald, had allied himself with the clergy; his
armies were led to the field by bishops, and he abandoned the administration of
his kingdom in a great measure to Hincmar, archbishop of Rheims. Hence, when
the throne of Lotharingia became vacant in the year
869, he experienced the warmest support from the bishops of that country.
“After,” say they, “they had called on God, who bestows kingdoms on whom he
will, to point out to them a king after his own heart; after they had then,
with God’s help, perceived that the crown was of right his to whom they meant
to confide it”, they elected Charles the Bald to be their lord. But the Germans
were as far now as before from being convinced by this sort of public law. The
elder brother thought his claims at least as valid as those of the younger; by
force of arms he compelled Charles to consent to the treaty of Marsna, by which he first united transrhenane
Germany with that on the right bank of the Rhine. This same course of events
was repeated in the year 875, when the thrones of Italy and the Empire became
vacant. At first, Charles the Bald, aided now by the pope, as heretofore by the
bishops, took possession of the crown without difficulty. But Carlmann, son of
Louis the Germanic, resting his claim on the right of the elder line, and also
on his nomination as heir by the last emperor, hastened with his Bavarians and
high Germans to Italy; and in spite of the opposition of the pope, took
possession of it as his unquestionable inheritance. If this were the case in
Italy, still less could Charles the Bald succeed in his attempts on the German
frontiers. He was defeated in both countries; the superiority of the Germans in
arms was so decisive that, at length, they became masters of the whole
Lotharingian territory. Even under the Carolingian sovereigns, they marked the
boundaries of the mighty empire; the crown of Charlemagne, and two thirds of
his dominions, fell into their hands: they maintained the independence of the
secular power with dauntless energy and brilliant success.
SAXON AND FRANKISH EMPERORS
The
question which next presents itself is what course was to be pursued if the
ruling house either became extinct, or proved itself incapable of conducting
the government of so vast an empire, attacked on every side from without, and
fermenting within. In the years from 879 to 887, the several nations
determined, one after another, to abandon the cause of Charles the Fat. The
characteristic differences of the mode in which they accomplished this, are well
worthy of remark. In the Roman part of Europe the clergy had a universal
ascendancy. In Cisjurane Burgundy it was “the holy
fathers assembled at Mantala, the holy synod,
together with the nobles,” who “under the inspiration of the Holy Spirit”,
elected Count Boso king. We find from the decretal for the election of Guido of
Spoleto, that “the humble bishops assembled together from various parts at
Pavia chose him to be their lord and king, principally because he had promised
to exalt the holy Roman church, and to maintain the ecclesiastical rights and
privileges.” The conditions to which Odo of Paris gave his assent at his
coronation are chiefly in favour of the clergy: he promises not only to defend
the rights of the church, but to extend them to the utmost of his information
and ability. Totally different was the state of things in Germany. Here it was
more especially the temporal lords, Saxons, Franks and Bavarians, who, under
the guidance of a disaffected minister of the emperor, assembled around Arnulf
and transferred the crown to him. The bishops (even the bishop of Mainz) were
rather opposed to the measure; nor was it till some years afterwards that they
entered into a formal negotiation with the new ruler: they had not elected him;
they submitted to his authority. The rights and privileges which were on every
occasion claimed by the clergy, were as constantly and as resolutely ignored by
the Germans. They held as close to the legitimate succession as possible; even
after the complete extinction of the Carolingian race, the degree of kindred
with it was one of the most important considerations which determined the
choice of the people, first to Conrad, and then to Henry I of Saxony.
Conrad
had, indeed, at one time, the idea of attaching himself to the clergy, who,
even in Germany, were a very powerful body: Henry, on the contrary, was always
opposed to them. They took no share in his election; the consecration by the
holy oil, upon which Pepin and Charlemagne had set so high a value, he
declined; as matters stood in Germany, it could be of no importance to him. On
the contrary, we find that as in his own land of Saxony he kept his clergy
within the strict bounds of obedience, so in other parts of his dominions he
placed them in subjection to the dukes; so that their dependence on the civil
power was more complete than ever. His only solicitude was to stand well with
these great feudatories, whose power was almost equal to his own, and to fulfil
other duties imperatively demanded by the moment. As he succeeded in these
objects, as he obtained a decisive victory over his most dangerous enemies,
re-established the Marches, which had been broken at all points, and suffered
nothing on the other side the Rhine that bore the German name to be wrested
from him,—the clergy were compelled by necessity to adhere to him: he
bequeathed an undisputed sceptre to his house. It was by an agreement of the
court and the secular nobles that Otho was selected from among Henry’s sons as
his successor to the throne. The ceremony of election was attended only by the
dukes, princes, great officers of state, and warriors; the elected monarch then
received the assembled body of the clergy. Otho could receive the unction
without scruple; the clergy could no longer imagine that they conferred a right
upon him by that ceremony. Whether anointed or not, Otho would have been king,
as his father had been before him. And so firmly was this sovereignty
established that Otho was now in a position to revive and carry through the
claims founded by his Carolingian predecessors. He first completely realised
the idea of a Germanic empire, which they had only conceived and prepared. He
governed Lotharingia and administered Burgundy; a
short campaign sufficed to re-establish the rights of his Carolingian
predecessors to the supreme power in Lombardy. Like Charlemagne, he was called
to aid by a pope oppressed by the factions of Rome; like him, he received in
return for his succour the crown of the western empire (2d February, 962). The
principle of the temporal government, the autocracy, which from the earliest
times had held in check the usurpations of ecclesiastical ambition, thus
attained its culminating point, and was triumphantly asserted and recognised in
Europe. At the first glance it would seem as if the relation in which Otho now
stood to the pope was the same as that occupied by Charlemagne; on a closer
inspection, however, we find a wide difference.
Charlemagne’s
connexion with the see of Rome was produced by mutual need; it was the result
of long epochs of a political combination embracing the development of various
nations; their mutual understanding rested on an internal necessity, before
which all opposing views and interests gave way. The sovereignty of Otho the
Great, on the contrary, rested on a principle fundamentally opposed to the
encroachment of spiritual influences. The alliance was momentary; the
disruption of it inevitable. But when, soon after, the same pope who had
invoked his aid, John XII, placed himself at the head of a rebellious faction,
Otho was compelled to cause him to be formally deposed, and to crush the
faction that supported him by repeated exertions of force, before he could
obtain perfect obedience; he was obliged to raise to the papal chair a pope on
whose co-operation he could rely. The popes have often asserted that they
transferred the empire to the Germans; and if they confined this assertion to
the Carolingian race, they are not entirely wrong. The coronation of
Charlemagne was the result of their free determination. But if they allude to
the German emperors, properly so called, the contrary of their statement is
just as true; not only Carlmann and Otho the Great, but their successors,
constantly had to conquer the imperial throne, and to defend it, when conquered,
sword in hand.
It
has been said that the Germans would have done more wisely if they had not
meddled with the empire; or at least, if they had first worked out their own
internal political institutions, and then, with matured minds, taken part in
the general affairs of Europe. But the things of this world are not wont to
develop themselves so methodically. A nation is often compelled by
circumstances to increase its territorial extent, before its internal growth is
completed. For was it of slight importance to its inward progress, that Germany
thus remained in unbroken connexion with Italy—the depository of all that
remained of ancient civilisation, the source whence all the forms of
Christianity had been derived. The mind of Germany has always unfolded itself
by contact with the spirit of antiquity, and of the nations of Roman origin. It
was from the contrasts which so continually presented themselves during this
uninterrupted connexion that Germany learned to distinguish ecclesiastical
domination from Christianity. For however signal had been the ascendancy of the
secular power, the German people did not depart a hair’s breadth either from
the doctrines of Christianity, the ideas upon which a Christian church is
founded, or even from the forms in which they had first received those
doctrines and ideas. In them the nation had first risen to a consciousness of
its existence as a united body its whole intellectual and moral life was bound
up with them. The German imperial government revived the civilising and Christianising
tendencies which had distinguished the reigns of Charles Martel and
Charlemagne. Otho the Great, in following the course marked out by his
illustrious predecessors, gave it a fresh national importance by planting
German colonies in Slavonian countries, simultaneously with the diffusion of
Christianity. He germanised as well as converted the population he had subdued.
He confirmed his father’s conquests on the Saale and the Elbe, by the
establishment of the bishoprics of Meissen and Osterland. After having
conquered the tribes on the other side the Elbe in those long and perilous
campaigns where he commanded in person, he established there, too, three
bishoprics, which for a time gave an extraordinary impulse to the progress of
conversion. In the midst of all his difficulties and perplexities in Italy he
never lost sight of this grand object; it was indeed while in that country that
he founded the archbishopric of Magdeburg, whose jurisdiction extended over all
those other foundations. And even where the project of Germanising the
population was out of the question, the supremacy of the German name was firmly
and actively maintained. In Bohemia and Poland bishoprics were erected under
German metropolitans; from Hamburg Christianity found its way into the north;
missionaries from Passau traversed Hungary, nor is it improbable that the
influence of these vast and sublime efforts extended even to Russia. The German
empire was the centre of the conquering religion; as itself advanced, it
extended the ecclesiastico-military State of which
the Church was an integral part; it was the chief representative of the unity
of western Christendom, and hence arose the necessity under which it lay of
acquiring a decided ascendancy over the papacy.
This
secular and Germanic principle long retained the predominancy it had
triumphantly acquired. Otho the Second offered the papal chair to the abbot of
Cluny; and Otho the Third bestowed it first on one of his kinsmen, and then on
his instructor Gerbert. All the factions which threatened to deprive the
emperor of this right were overthrown; under the patronage of Henry III, a
German pope defeated three Roman candidates for the tiara. In the year 1048,
when the see of Rome became vacant, ambassadors from the Romans, says a
contemporaneous chronicler, proceeded to Saxony, found the emperor there, and
entreated him to give them a new pope. He chose the Bishop of Toul, (afterwards
Leo IX), of the house of Egisheim, from which he himself was descended on the
maternal side. What took place with regard to the head of the church was of
course still more certain to befall the rest of the clergy. Since Otho the
Great, in all the troubles of the early years of his reign, succeeded in
breaking down the resistance which the duchies were enabled by their clan-like
composition to offer him, the ecclesiastical appointments remained without
dispute in the hand of the emperor.
How magnificent was the position now occupied
by the German nation, represented in the persons of the mightiest princes of
Europe and united under their sceptre; at the head of an advancing
civilisation, and of the whole of western Christendom; in the fullness of
youthful, aspiring strength! We must here however remark and confess, that
Germany did not wholly understand her position, nor fulfil her mission. Above
all, she did not succeed in giving complete reality to the idea of a western
empire, such as appeared about to be established under Otho I. Independent and
often hostile, though Christian powers arose through all the borders of
Germany; in Hungary, and in Poland, in the northern as well as in the southern
possessions of the Normans; England and France were snatched again from German
influence. Spain laughed at the German claims to a universal supremacy; her kings
thought themselves emperors; even the enterprises nearest home —those across
the Elbe— were for a time stationary or retrograde.
If
we seek for the causes of these unfavourable results, we need only turn our
eyes on the internal condition of the empire, where we find an incessant and
tempestuous struggle of all the forces of the nation. Unfortunately the
establishment of a fixed rule of succession to the imperial crown was
continually prevented by events. The son and grandson of Otho the Great died in
the bloom of youth, and the nation was thus compelled to elect a chief. The
very first election threw Germany and Italy into a universal ferment; and this
was shortly succeeded by a second still more stormy, since it was necessary to
resort to a new line—the Franconian. How was it possible to expect implicit
obedience from the powerful and refractory nobles, out of whose ranks, and by
whose will, the emperor was raised to the throne? Was it likely that the Saxon
race, which had hitherto held the reins of government, would readily and
quietly submit to a foreign family? It followed that two factions arose, the
one obedient, the other opposed, to the Franconian emperor, and filled the
empire with their strife. The severe character of Henry III excited universal
discontent. A vision, related to us by his own chancellor, affords a lively
picture of the state of things. He saw the emperor, seated on his throne, draw
his sword, exclaiming aloud, that he trusted he should still avenge himself on
all his enemies. How could the emperors, thus occupied during their whole lives
with intestine dissensions, place themselves at the head of Europe in the
important work of social improvement, or really merit the title of supreme
Lords of the West?
It
is remarkable that the social element on which they propped their power was
again principally the clergy. Even Otho the Great owed his triumph over
intestine revolt and discord, in great measure to the support of the bishops;
for example, of his brother Bruno, whom he had created Archbishop of Cologne,
and who, in return, held Lotharingia in allegiance to
him: it was only by the aid of the clergy that Otho conquered the Pope. The
emperors found it expedient to govern by means of the bishops; to make them the
instruments of their will. The bishops were at once their chancellors and their
counsellors; the monasteries, imperial farms. The uncontrollable tendency, at
that time, of all power and office to become hereditary would naturally render
the heads of the church desirous of combining secular rights, which they could
dispose of at pleasure, with their bishoprics. Hence it happened, that just at
the time when the subjection of the clergy to the imperial authority was the
most complete, their power acquired the greatest extension and solidity. Otho I
already began to unite the temporal powers of the count with the proper
spiritual authority of the bishop. We see from the registers of Henry II that
he bestowed on many churches two and three countships; on that of Gandersheim, the countship in seven Gauen or
districts. As early as the eleventh century the bishops of Wurzburg succeeded
in totally supplanting the secular counts in their diocese, and in uniting the
spiritual and temporal power; a state of things which the other bishops now strove
to emulate.
It
is evident that the station of an emperor of Germany was no less perilous than
august. The magnates by whom he was surrounded, the possessors of the secular
power out of whose ranks he himself had arisen, he could hold in check only by
an unceasing struggle, and not without force. He must find a prop in another
quarter, and seek support from the very body who were in principle opposed to
him. This rendered it impossible for him ever to attain to that predominant
influence in the general affairs of Europe which the imperial dignity would
naturally have given him. How strongly does this everlasting ebb and flow of
contending parties, this continual upstarting of refractory powers, contrast
with the tranquillity and self-sufficiency of the empire swayed by Charlemagne!
It required matchless vigour and fortitude in an emperor even to hold his seat.
In
this posture of affairs, the prince who possessed the requisite vigour and
fortitude, Henry III, died young (A.D. 1056), and a child, six years old, in
whose name the government was carried on by a tottering regency, filled his
place: one of those incidents which turn the fortunes of a world.
EMANCIPATION OF THE PAPACY
The
ideas which had been repressed in the ninth century now began to revive; and
with redoubled strength, since the clergy, from the highest to the lowest, were
become so much more powerful. Generally speaking, this was the age in which the
various modifications of spiritual power throughout the world began to assume
form and stability; in which mankind found repose and satisfaction in these
conditions of existence. In the eleventh century Buddhism was re-established in
Tibet; and the hierarchy which, down to the present day, prevails over so large
a portion of Eastern Asia, was founded by the Lama Dschu-Adhischa.
The Caliphate of Baghdad, heretofore a vast empire, then took the character of
a spiritual authority, and was greatly indebted to that change for the ready
reception it met with. At the same period, in Africa and Syria arose the Fatimite Caliphate, founded on a doctrine of which its
adherents said, that it was to the Koran what the kernel is to its shell.
In
the West the idea of the unity of the Christian faith was the pervading one,
and had taken strong hold on all minds (for the various conversions which
awakened this or that more susceptible nation to fresh enthusiasm belong to a
later period). This idea manifested itself in the general efforts to crush
Mohammedanism: inadequately represented by the imperial authority, which
commanded but a limited obedience, it now came in powerful aid of the projects
and efforts of the hierarchy. For to whom could such an idea attach itself but
to the bishop of the Roman Church, to which, as to a common source, all other
churches traced back their foundation; which all western Europeans regarded
with a singular reverence? Hitherto the Bishop of Rome had been thrown into the
shade by the rise and development of the imperial power. But favouring
circumstances and the main course of events now united to impel the papacy to
claim universal and supreme dominion.
The
minority of the infant emperor decided the result. At the court of Rome, the
man who most loudly proclaimed the necessity of reform—the great champion of
the independent existence of the church—the man ordained by destiny to make his
opinion the law of ages,—Hildebrand, the son of a carpenter in Tuscany,
acquired supreme influence over all affairs. He was the author and instigator
of decrees, in virtue of which the papal elections were no longer to depend on
the emperor, but on the clergy of the Church of Rome and the cardinals. He
delayed not a moment to put them in force; the very next election was conducted
in accordance with them.
In
Germany, on the contrary, people were at this time entirely occupied with the
conflicts of the factions about the court; the opposition which was spread over
Italy and Germany (and to which Hildebrand also belonged) at length got a firm
footing in the court itself: the adherents of the old Saxon and Salic
principles, (for example, Chancellor Guibert) were defeated; the court actually
sanctioned an election which had taken place against its own most urgent
interest; the German rulers, plunged in the dissensions of the moment,
abandoned to his fate an antipope who maintained himself with considerable
success and who was the representative of the ancient maxims. Affairs, however,
changed their aspect when the youthful Salian, with all his spirit and talents,
took the reins of government into his own hand. He knew his rights, and was
determined to assert them at any price. But things had gone so far that he fell
into the most perilous situation at the very outset of his career. The
accession to the throne of a young monarch, by nature despotic and violent, and
hurried along by vehement passions, quickly brought the long-fermenting
internal discords of Germany to an open breach. The German nobles aspired after
the sort of independence which those of France had just acquired. In the year
1073 the Saxon princes revolted; the whole of Saxony, says a contemporary,
deserted the king like one man. Meanwhile at Rome the leader of the hostile
party had himself gained possession of the tiara, and now advanced without
delay to the great work of emancipating not only the papacy but the clergy from
the control of the emperor. In the year 1074 he caused a law to be proclaimed
by his synod, the purpose and effect of which was to wrest the nomination to
spiritual offices from the laity; that is, in the first place, from the
emperor. Scarcely was Henry IV seated on his throne when he saw its best
prerogatives, the crown and consummation of his power, attacked and threatened
with annihilation. He seemed doomed to succumb without a contest. The discord
between the Saxons and Upper Germans, which for a time had been of advantage to
him, was allayed, and their swords, yet wet with each other’s blood, were
turned in concert against the emperor; he was compelled to propitiate the pope
who had excommunicated him, to travel in the depth of winter to do that penance
at Canossa by which he so profoundly degraded the imperial name. Yet from that
very moment we may date his most strenuous resistance.
We
should fall into a complete error were we to represent him to ourselves as
crossing the Alps in remorse and contrition, or as convinced of the
rightfulness of the claims advanced by the pope. His only object was to wrest
from his adversaries the support of the spiritual authority, the pretext under
which they threatened his highest dignity. As he did not succeed in this,—as
the absolution he received from Gregory was not so complete as to restrain the
German princes from all further hostilities,—as, on the contrary, they elected
another sovereign in spite of it,—he plunged into the most determined struggle
against the assumptions of his spiritual as well as of his temporal foes.
Opposition and injury roused the man within him. Across those Alps which he had
traversed in penitential lowliness, he hurried back burning with warlike
ardour; in Carinthia an invincible band of devoted followers gathered around
him. It is interesting to follow him with our eye, subduing the spiritual power
in Bavaria, the hostile aristocratic clans in Swabia; to see him next marching
upon Franconia and driving his rival before him; then into Thuringia and the
Meissen colonies, and at length forcing him to a battle on the banks of the
Elster, in which he fell. Henry gained no great victories; even on the Elster
he did not so much as keep the field; but he was continually advancing; his
party was continually gaining strength; he held the banner of the empire aloft
with a steady and vigorous grasp. After a few years he was able to return to
Italy (A.D. 1081). The empire had been so long and so intimately allied with
the episcopal power that its chief could not be without adherents among the
higher clergy: synods were held in the emperor’s behalf, in which it was
resolved to maintain the old order of things. The excommunications of the pope
were met by counter-excommunications. Chancellor Guibert, who had suffered for
his adherence to Salic principles, was nominated pope under the auspices of the
emperor; and after various alternations of success in war, was at length
conducted in triumph to Rome. Henry, like so many of his predecessors, was
crowned by a pope of his own creation. The second rival king whom the Saxons
opposed to him could gain no substantial power, and held it expedient
voluntarily to withdraw his pretensions.
We
see that the emperor had attained to all that is attainable by war and policy,
yet his triumph was far from being as complete and conclusive as we might
thence infer; for the result of a contest is not always decided on a field of
battle. The ideas of which Gregory was the champion were intimately blended
with the most powerful impulses of the general development of society; while he
was a fugitive from Rome, they gained possession of the world. No later than
ten years after his death his second successor was able to take the initiative
in the general affairs of the West—a power which was conclusive as to results.
One of the greatest social movements recorded in history—the Crusades—was
mainly the result of his policy; and from that time he appeared, as the natural
head of the Romano-Germanic sacerdotal and military community of the West. To
such weapons the emperor had nothing to oppose.
The
life of Henry, from this time till its close, has something in it which reminds
us of the antique tragedy, in which the hero sinks, in all the glory of manhood
and the fullness of his powers, under an inevitable doom. For what can be more
like an overwhelming fate than the power of opinion, which extends its
invisible grasp on every side, takes complete possession of the minds of men,
and suddenly appears in the field with a force beyond all control? Henry saw
the world go over, before his eyes, from the empire to the papacy. An army
brought together by one of the blind popular impulses which led to the
crusades, drove out of Rome the pope he had placed on the throne: nay, even in
his own house he was encountered by hostile opinions. His elder son was
infected with the zeal of the bigots by whom he was incited to revolt against
his father; the younger was swayed by the influence of the German aristocracy,
and, by a union of cunning and violence, compelled his own father to abdicate.
The aged warrior went broken-hearted to his grave.
I
do not think it necessary to trace all the various alternations of the conflict
respecting the rights of the church. Even in Rome it was sometimes deemed
impossible to force the emperor to renounce his claims. Pope Paschal at one
time entertained the bold idea of giving back all that the emperors had ever
granted to the church, in order to effect the radical separation of the latter
from the state. As this proved to be impracticable, the affairs of the church
were again administered for a time by the imperial court under Henry V, as they
had been under Henry IV. But this too was soon found to be intolerable; new
disputes arose, and after long contention, both parties agreed to the concordat
of Worms, according to which the preponderant influence was yielded to the
emperor in Germany, and to the pope in Italy; an agreement, however, which was
not expressed with precision, and which contained the germ of new disputes. But
though these results were little calculated to determine the rights of the
contending powers, the advantages which gradually accrued to the papacy from the
course of events were incalculable. From a state of total dependence, it had
now attained to a no less complete emancipation; or rather to a preponderance,
not indeed as yet absolute, or defined, but unquestionable, and every moment
acquiring strength and consistency from favouring circumstances.
RELATION OF THE PAPACY TO THE PRINCES OF THE EMPIRE
The
most important assistance which the papacy received in this work of
self-emancipation and aggrandisement arose from the natural and tacit league
subsisting between it and the princes of the Germanic empire. The secular
aristocracy of Germany had, at one time, made the strongest opposition, on
behalf of their head, to the encroachments of the Church; they had erected the
imperial throne, and had invested it with all its power: but this power had at
length become oppressive to them; the supremacy of the imperial government over
the clergy, which was employed to keep themselves in subjection, became their
most intolerable grievance. It followed that they at length beheld their own
advantage in the emancipation of the papacy. It is to be observed that the
power of the German princes and that of the popes rose in parallel steps.
Under
Henry III, and during the minority of his successor, both had laid the
foundation of their independence: they began their active career together.
Scarcely had Gregory VII established the first principles of his new system,
when the princes also proclaimed theirs;—the principle, that the empire should
no longer be hereditary. Henry IV maintained his power chiefly by admitting in
detail the claims which he denied in the aggregate: his victories had as little
effect in arresting the progress of the independence of the great nobles, as of
the hierarchy. Even as early as the reign of Henry V these sentiments had
gained such force that the unity of the empire was regarded as residing rather
in the collective body of the princes than in the person of the emperor. For
what else are we to understand from the declaration of that prince—that it was
less dangerous to insult the head of the empire than to give offence to the
princes?—an opinion which they themselves sometimes expressed. In Wurzburg they
agreed to adhere to their decrees, even if the king refused his assent to them.
They took into their own hands the arrangement of the disputes with the pope
which Henry found it impossible to terminate: they were the real authors of the
concordat of Worms. In the succeeding collisions of the papacy with the empire
everything depended on the degree of support the emperor could, on each
occasion, calculate on receiving from the princes.
I
shall not here attempt to give a complete view of the times of the Welfs and the Hohenstaufen; it would not be possible,
without entering into a more elaborate examination of particulars than is
consistent with the object of this short survey: let us only direct our
attention for a moment to the grandest and most imposing figure with which that
epoch presents us: Frederic I.
So
long as Frederic I stood well with his princes he might reasonably entertain
the project of reviving the prerogatives of the empire, such as they were
conceived and laid down by the emperors and jurists of ancient Rome. He held
himself entitled, like Justinian and Theodosius, to summon ecclesiastical
assemblies; he reminded the popes that their possessions were derived from the
favour and bounty of the emperor, and admonished them to attend to their
ecclesiastical duties. A disputed election furnished him with a favourable
occasion of acquiring fresh influence in the choice of a pope. His position
was, however, very different after the fresh rupture with his powerful vassal,
Henry the Lion. The claims of that prince to a little town in the north of
Germany,—Gosslar in the Harz,—which the emperor refused
to admit, decided the affairs of Italy, and hence of the whole of western
Christendom. In consequence of this, the emperor was first stripped of his
wonted support; he was beaten in the field; and, lastly, he was compelled to
violate his oath, and to recognise the pope he had rejected. It is true that,
having turned his arms against his rebellious vassal, he succeeded in breaking
up Henry’s collective power: but this very success again was advantageous to
the princes of the second rank, by whose assistance he obtained it, and whom,
in return, he enriched with the spoils of his rival; while the advantage which
the papacy thus gained was never afterwards to be counter-balanced.
The
meeting of Frederic I and Alexander III at Venice is, in my opinion, far more
important than the scene at Canossa. At Canossa, a young and passionate prince
sought only to hurry through the penance enjoined upon him: at Venice, it was a
mature man who renounced the ideas which he had earnestly and strenuously
maintained for a quarter of a century; he was compelled to acknowledge that his
conduct towards the church had been dictated rather by love of power than of
justice. Canossa was the spot on which the combat began; Venice beheld the
triumph of the church fully established. For whatever might be the indirect
share which the Germans had in bringing about this result, both the glory and
the chief profit of the victory fell entirely to the share of the papacy. From
this moment its domination began. This became apparent on the first important
incident that occurred; viz., when, at the end of the twelfth century, a
contest for the crown arose in Germany. The papacy, represented by one of the
most able, ambitious, and daring priests that ever lived, who regarded himself
as the natural master of the world,— Innocent III, did not hesitate an instant
to claim the right of deciding the question. The German princes were not so
blinded as not to understand what this claim meant. They reminded Innocent that
the empire, out of reverence for the see of Rome, had waived the right which it
incontestably possessed to interfere in the election of the pope; that it would
be an unheard-of return for this moderation, for the pope to assume an
influence over the election of the emperor, to which he had no right whatever.
Unfortunately, however, they were in a position in which they could take no
serious steps to prevent the encroachment they deprecated. They must first have
placed on the throne an emperor equally strong by nature and by external circumstances,
have rallied round him, and have fought the papacy under his banners. For such
a course they had neither the inclination, nor, in the actual state of things,
was it practicable. They had no love for the papacy, for its own sake; they
hated the domination of the clergy; but they had not courage to brave it.
Innocent’s resolute spirit was again victorious. In the struggle between the
two rivals, the one a Welf, the other a Hohenstaufen, he at first supported the
Welf, because that family was well inclined to the church; but when, after the
accession of this prince to power, and his appearance in Italy, he manifested
the usual antipathy of the empire to the papacy, Innocent did not hesitate to
set up a Hohenstaufen in opposition to him. He had contended against the
Hohenstaufen with the resources of the Welfic party:
he now attacked the Welfs with those of the
Hohenstaufen. It was a struggle in which the agitations of the rest of Europe
were mingled. Events, both near and remote, took a turn so favourable, that
Innocent’s candidate again remained master of the field. From that time the
papacy exercised a leading influence over all German elections.
When
after the lapse of many years Frederic II (the Hohenstaufen whom he had raised
to power) attempted in some particulars to restore the independence of the
empire, the pope thought himself justified in again deposing him. Home now
openly avowed her claim to hold the reins of secular as well as spiritual
authority.
“We
command you,” writes Innocent IV to the German princes in 1246, “since our
beloved son, the Landgrave of Thuringia, is ready to take upon himself the
office of emperor, that you proceed to elect him unanimously without delay.”
He
formally signifies his approbation of those who took part in the election of
William of Holland; he admonishes the cities to be faithful to the
newly-elected emperor, that so they may merit the apostolical as well as the
royal favour.
In
a very short time no trace of any other order of things remained in Germany.
Even at the ceremony of homage, Richard of Cornwall was compelled to dispense
with the allegiance of the cities, until it should be seen whether or not the
pope might choose to prefer another aspirant to the throne. After Richard’s
death Gregory X called upon the German princes to prepare for a new election:
he threatened that if they delayed, he and his cardinals would nominate an
emperor. The election being terminated, it was again the pope who induced the
pretender, Alfonso of Castile, to abandon his claim and to give up the insignia
of the empire; and who caused the chosen candidate, Rudolf of Habsburg, to be
universally acknowledged. What trace of independence can a nation retain after
submitting to receive its head from the hands of a foreign power? It is manifest
that the same influence which determines the elections, must be resistless in
every other department of the state. The power of the princes of Germany had,
it is true, been meanwhile on the increase. In the thirteenth century, during
the struggles between the several pretenders to the throne, and between the
papacy and the empire, they had got possession of almost all the prerogatives
of sovereignty; they likewise took the most provident measures to prevent the
imperial power from regaining its vast preponderance. At the end of the
thirteenth and the beginning of the fourteenth century the emperors were chosen
almost systematically out of different houses. Consciously or unconsciously,
the princes acted on the maxim, that when power began to be consolidated in one
quarter it must be counterbalanced by an increase of authority in another; as,
for example, they curbed the already considerable power of Bohemia by means of
the house of Hapsburg, and this again, by those of Nassau, Luxembourg, or
Bavaria. None of these could attain to more than transient superiority, and in
consequence of this policy, no princely race rose to independence: the
spiritual princes, who conducted the larger portion of the public business,
were almost of more weight than the temporal. This state of things tended
greatly to increase the power of the papacy, on which the spiritual princes
depended; and to which the temporal became very subordinate and submissive. In
the thirteenth century they even made the abject declaration that they were
planted in Germany by the Church of Rome, and had been fostered and exalted by
her favour. The pope was, at least, as much indebted to the German princes as
they were to him; but he took good care not to allude to his obligations, and
nobody ventured to remind him of them. His successive victories over the empire
had been gained by the assistance of many of the temporal powers. He now
possessed, uncontested, the supreme sovereignty of Europe. Those plans of papal
aggrandisement which were first avowed in the ninth century, and afterwards
revived in the eleventh, were, in the thirteenth, crowned with complete
success.
During
that long period a state of things had been evolved, the outlines of which may,
I think, be traced in a few words. The pretensions of the clergy to govern
Europe according to their hierarchical views —pretensions which arose directly
out of the ecclesiastical institutions of Charlemagne— were encountered and
resisted by the united body of the German people, still thoroughly imbued with
the national ideas of ancient Germania. On this combined resistance the
imperial throne was founded. Unfortunately, however, it failed to acquire
perfect security and stability; and the divisions which soon broke out between
the domineering chief and his refractory vassals, had the effect of making both
parties contribute to the aggrandisement of that spiritual power which they had
previously sought to depress. At first the emperors beheld in a powerful clergy
a means of holding their great vassals in check, and endowed the church with
liberal grants of lands and lordships; but afterwards, when ideas of
emancipation began to prevail, not only in the papacy but in all spiritual
corporations, the temporal aristocracy thought it not inexpedient that the
emperor should be stripped of the resource and assistance such a body afforded
him: the enfeebling of the imperial authority was of great advantage, not only
to the church, but to them. Thus it came to pass that the ecclesiastical
element, strengthened by the divisions of its opponents, at length obtained a
decided preponderance. Unquestionably the result was far different in the
twelfth and thirteenth centuries from what it would have been in the ninth. The
secular power might be humbled, but could not be annihilated; a purely
hierarchical government, such as might have been established at the earlier
period, was now no longer within the region of possibility. The national
development of Germany had been too deep and extensive to be stifled by the
ecclesiastical spirit; while, on the other hand, the influence of
ecclesiastical ideas and institutions unquestionably contributed largely to its
extension. The period in question displayed a fullness of life and
intelligence, an activity in every branch of human industry, a creative vigour,
which we can hardly imagine to have arisen under any other course of events.
Nevertheless, this was not a state which ought to satisfy a great nation. There
could be no true political freedom so long as the most powerful impulse to all
public activity emanated I from a foreign head. The domain of mind, too, was
enclosed within rigid and narrow boundaries. The immediate relation in which
every intellectual being stands to the Divine Intelligence was veiled from the
people in deep and abiding obscurity. Those mighty developments of the human
mind which extend over whole generations, must, of necessity, be accomplished
slowly; nor is it always easy to follow them in their progress. Circumstances
at length occurred which awakened in the German nation a consciousness of the
position for which nature designed it.
FIRST ATTEMPTS AT RESISTANCE TO THE ENCROACHMENTS OF THE PAPACY.
The
first important circumstance was, that the papacy, forgetting its high vocation
in the pleasures of Avignon, displayed all the qualities of a prodigal and
rapacious court, centralising its power for the sake of immediate profit. Pope
John XXII enforced his pecuniary claims with the coarsest avidity, and
interfered in an unheard-of manner with the presentation to German benefices:
he took care to express himself in very ambiguous terms as to the rights of the
electoral princes; while, on the contrary, he seriously claimed the privilege
of examining into the merits of the emperor they had elected, and of rejecting
him if he thought fit; nay, in case of a disputed election, such as then
occurred, of administering the government himself till the contest should be
decided: lastly, he actually entered into negotiations, the object of which was
to raise a French prince to the imperial throne.
The
German princes at length saw what they had to expect from such a course of
policy. On this occasion they rallied round their emperor, and rendered him
real and energetic assistance. In the year 1338 they unanimously came to the
celebrated resolution, that whoever should be elected by the majority of the
prince-electors should be regarded as the true and legitimate emperor. When
Louis the Bavarian, wearied by the long conflict, wavered for a moment, they
kept him firm; they reproached him at the imperial diet in 1334 with having
shown a disposition to accede to humiliating conditions. A change easily
accounted for; the pope having now encroached, not only on the rights of the
emperor, but on the prescriptive rights of their own body —on the rights of the
whole nation.
Nor
were these sentiments confined to the princes. In the fourteenth century a
plebeian power had grown up in Germany, as in the rest of Europe, by the side
of the aristocratic families which had hitherto exercised almost despotic
power: not only were the cities summoned to the imperial diets, but, in a great
proportion of them, the guilds, or trades, had got the municipal government
into their own hands. These plebeians embraced the cause of their emperor with
even more ardour than most of the princes. The priests who asserted the power
of the pope to excommunicate the emperor were frequently driven out of the
cities; these were then, in their turn, laid under excommunication; but they
never would acknowledge its validity; they refused to accept absolution when it
was offered them. Thus it happened that in the present instance the pope could
not carry the election of his candidate, Charles of Luxembourg; nobles and
commons adhered almost unanimously to Louis of Bavaria: nor was it till after
his death, and then only after repeated election and coronation, that Charles
IV was gradually recognised. Whatever he might previously have promised the
pope, that sovereign could not make concessions injurious to the interests of
his princes: on the contrary, he solemnly and firmly established the rights of
the electors, even to the long-disputed vicariate (at least in all German
states). A germ of resistance was thus formed. This was fostered and developed
by the disorders of the great schism, and by the dispositions evinced by the
general councils. It was now, for the first time, evident that the actual
church no longer corresponded with the ideal that existed in men’s minds.
Nations assumed the attitude of independent members of it; popes were brought
to trial and deposed; the aristocratico-republican
spirit, which played so great a part in the temporal states of Europe, extended
even to the papacy (the nature of which is so completely monarchical), and
threatened to change its form and character.
The
ecclesiastical assembly of Basel entertained the project of establishing at
once the freedom of nations and the authority of councils; a project hailed
with peculiar approbation by Germany. Its decretals of reformation were
solemnly adopted by the assembly of the imperial diet: the Germans determined
to remain neutral during its controversies with Eugenius IV; the immediate
consequence of which was, that they were for a time emancipated from the court
of Rome. By threatening to go over to his adversary, they forced the pope, who
had ventured to depose two spiritual electors, to revoke the sentence of
deposition. Had this course been persevered in with union and constancy, the
German Catholic church, established in so many great principalities, and
splendidly provided with the most munificent endowments in the world, would
have acquired a perfectly independent position, in which she might have resisted
the subsequent polemical storms with as much firmness as that of England.
Various circumstances conspired to prevent so desirable a result.
In
the first place, it appears to me that the disputes between France and Burgundy
reacted on this matter. France was in favour of the ideas of the council,
which, indeed, she embodied in the pragmatic sanction; Burgundy was for the
pope. Among the German princes, some were in the most intimate alliance with
the king, others with the duke. The pope employed by far the most dexterous and
able negotiator. If we consider the character of the representative and organ
of the German opposition, Gregory of Heimburg, who thought himself secure of
victory, and, when sent to Rome, burst forth at the very foot of the Vatican into
a thousand execrations on the Curia;—if we follow him there, as he went about
with neglected garb, bare neck, and uncovered head, bidding defiance to the
court,—and then compare him with the polished and supple Aeneas Sylvius, full
of profound quiet ambition and gifted with the happiest talents for rising in
the world; the servant of so many masters, and the dexterous confidant of them
all; we shall be at no loss to divine which must be the successful party.
Heimburg died a living death in exile, and dependent on foreign bounty; Aeneas
Sylvius ended his career, wearing the triple crown he had so ably served. At
the very time we are treating of, Aeneas had found means to gain over some
councillors, and through them their sovereigns, and thus to secure their
defection from the great scheme of national emancipation. He relates this
himself with great satisfaction and self-complacency; nor did he disdain to
employ bribery. The main thing, however, was, that the head of the empire, King
Frederic III, adhered to the papal cause. The union of the princes, which,
while it served as a barrier against the encroachments of the church, might
have proved no less perilous to himself, was as hateful to him as to the pope.
Aeneas Sylvius conducted the negotiation in a manner no less agreeable to the
interests and wishes of the emperor than to those of the pope: the imperial
coffers furnished him with the means of corruption. Hence it happened that on
this occasion also the nation failed to attain its object. At the first moment,
indeed, the Basel decretals were accepted at Rome, but under the condition that
the Holy See should receive compensation for its losses. This compensation,
however, was not forthcoming; and Frederic III, who treated on the part of the
empire, at length conceded anew to Rome all her old privileges, which the
nation had been endeavouring to wrest from her. It would have been impossible
to carry such a measure at the diet; the expedient of obtaining the separate
consent of the princes to this agreement was therefore resorted to. The old
state of things was thus perpetuated. Ordinances which the papal see had
published in 1335, and which it had repeated in 1418, once more formed, in the
year 1448, the basis of the German concordat. It is hardly necessary to say
that the opposition was not crushed. It no longer appeared on the surface of
events; but deep below it, it only struck root faster and acquired greater
strength. The nation was exasperated by a constant sense of wrong and
injustice.
ALTERED CHARACTER OF THE EMPIRE
The
most remarkable fact now was that the imperial throne was no longer able to
afford support and protection. The empire had assumed a position analogous to
that of the papacy, but extremely subordinate in power and authority. It is important
to remark, that for more than a century after Charles IV had fixed his seat in
Bohemia, no emperor appeared, endowed with the vigour necessary to uphold and
govern the empire. The bare fact that Charles’s successor, Wenceslas, was a
prisoner in the hands of the Bohemians, remained for a long time unknown in
Germany: a simple decree of the electors sufficed to dethrone him. Rupert the
Palatine only escaped a similar fate by death. When Sigismund of Luxembourg,
(who, after many disputed elections, kept possession of the field), four years
after his election, entered the territory of the empire of which he was to be
crowned sovereign, he found so little sympathy that he was for a moment
inclined to return to Hungary without accomplishing the object of his journey.
The active part he took in the affairs of Bohemia, and of Europe generally, has
given him a name; but in and for the empire, he did nothing worthy of note.
Between the years 1422 and 1430 he never made his appearance beyond Vienna;
from the autumn of 1431 to that of 1433 he was occupied with his coronation
journey to Rome; and during the three years from 1434 to his death he never got
beyond Bohemia and Moravia: nor did Albert II, who has been the subject of such
lavish eulogy, ever visit the dominions of the empire. Frederic III, however,
far outdid all his predecessors. During seven-and-twenty years, from 1444 to
1471, he was never seen within the boundaries of the empire. Hence it happened
that the central action and the visible manifestation of sovereignty, insofar
as any such existed in the empire, fell to the share of the princes, and more
especially of the prince-electors. In the reign of Sigismund we find them
convoking the diets, and leading the armies into the field against the Hussites:
the operations against the Bohemians were attributed entirely to them. In this
manner the empire became, like the papacy, a power which acted from a distance,
and rested chiefly upon opinion. The throne, founded on conquest and arms, had
now a pacific character and a conservative tendency. Nothing is so transient as
the notions which are handed down with a name, or associated with a title; and
yet, especially in times when unwritten law has so much force, the whole
influence of rank or station depends on the nature of these notions. Let us
turn our attention for a moment to the ideas of Empire and Papacy entertained
in the fifteenth century.
The
emperor was regarded, in the first place, as the supreme feudal lord, who
conferred on property its highest and most sacred sanction; as the supreme
fountain of justice, from whom, as the expression was, all the compulsory force
of law emanated. It is very curious to observe how the choice that had fallen
upon him was announced to Frederic III,—by no means the mightiest prince in the
empire; how immediately thereupon the natural relations of things are reversed,
and “his royal high mightiness” promises confirmation in their rights and
dignities to the very men who had just raised him to the throne. All hastened
to obtain his recognition of their privileges and possessions; nor did the
cities perform their act of homage till that had taken place. Upon his supreme
guarantee rested that feeling of legitimacy, security and permanence, which is
necessary to all men, and more especially dear to Germans. “Take away from us
the rights of the emperor,” says a law-book of that time, “and who can say,
this house is mine, this village belongs to me?” A remark of profound truth;
but it followed thence that the emperor could not arbitrarily exercise rights
of which he was deemed the source. He might give them up; but he himself must
enforce them only within the narrow limits prescribed by traditional usage, and
by the superior control of his subjects. Although he was regarded as the head
and source of all temporal jurisdiction, yet no tribunal found more doubtful
obedience than his own.
The
fact that royalty existed in Germany had almost been suffered to fall into
oblivion; even the title had been lost. Henry VII thought it an affront to be
called King of Germany, and not, as he had a right to be called before any
ceremony of coronation, King of the Romans. In the fifteenth century the
emperor was regarded pre-eminently as the successor of the ancient Roman
Caesars, whose rights and dignities had been transferred, first to the Greeks,
and then to the Germans in the persons of Charlemagne and Otho the Great; as
the true secular head of Christendom. Emperor Sigismund commanded that his
corpse should be exposed to view for some days; in order that every one might
see that “the Lord of all the world was dead and departed.”
“We
have chosen your royal grace,” say the electors to Frederic III (A. D. 1440),
“to be the head, protector, and governor of all Christendom.” They go on to
express the hope that this choice may be profitable to the Roman church, to the
whole of Christendom, to the holy empire, and the community of Christian
people. Even a foreign monarch, Wladislas of Poland,
extols the felicity of the newly-elected emperor, in that he was about to
receive the diadem of the monarchy of the world. The opinion was confidently
entertained in Germany that the other sovereigns of Christendom, especially
those of England, Spain, and France, were legally subject to the crown of the
empire: the only controversy was, whether their disobedience was venial, or
ought to be regarded as sinful. The English endeavoured to show that from the
time of the introduction of Christianity they had never been subject to the
empire. The Germans, on the contrary, not only did what the other nations of
the West were bound to do—they not only acknowledged the holy empire, but they
had secured to themselves the faculty of giving it a head; and the strange
notion was current that the electoral princes had succeeded to the rights and
dignities of the Roman senate and people. They themselves expressed this
opinion in the thirteenth century. “We,” say they, “who occupy the place of the
Roman senate, who are the fathers and the lights of the empire.” In the
fifteenth century they repeated the same opinion. “The Germans,” says the
author of a scheme for diminishing the burdens of the empire, “who have
possessed themselves of the dignities of the Roman Empire, and thence of the
sovereignty over all lands.” When the prince-electors proceeded to the vote,
they swore that “according to the best of their understanding, they would
choose the temporal head of all Christian people, i.e. a Roman king and
future emperor.” Thereupon the elected sovereign was anointed and crowned by
the Archbishop of Cologne, who enjoyed that right on this side the Alps. Even
when seated on the coronation chair at Rheims, the King of France took an oath
of fealty to the Roman Empire. It is obvious in what a totally different
relation the Germans stood to the emperor, who was elevated to this high
dignity from amidst themselves, and by their own choice, from that of even the
most puissant nobles of other countries to their natural hereditary lord and
master. The imperial dignity, stripped of all direct executive power, had
indeed no other significance than that which results from opinion. It gave to
law and order their living sanction; to justice its highest authority; to the
sovereignties of Germany their position in the world. It had properties which,
for that period, were indispensable and sacred. It had a manifest analogy with
the papacy, and was bound to it by the most intimate connection. The main
difference between the two powers was, that the papal enjoyed that universal
recognition of the Romano-Germanic world which the imperial had not been able
to obtain: but the holy Roman church and the holy Roman empire were
indissolubly united in idea; and the Germans thought they stood in a peculiarly
intimate relation to the church as well as to the empire. There is extant a
treaty of alliance of the Rhenish princes, the assigned object of which was to
maintain their endowments, dioceses, chapters, and principalities, in dignity
and honour with the holy Roman empire and the holy Roman church. The electors
lay claim to a peculiar privilege in ecclesiastical affairs. In the year 1424,
and again in 1446, they declare that the Almighty has appointed and authorised
them, that they should endeavour, together with the Roman king, the princes,
lords, knights, and cities of the empire, and with all faithful Christian
people, to abate all crimes that arise in the holy church and Christian
community, and in the holy empire. Hence we see that the German people thought
themselves bound in allegiance to the papal, no less than to the imperial
authority; but as the former had, in all the long struggles of successive ages,
invariably come off victorious, while the latter had so often succumbed, the
pope exercised a far stronger and more wide-spread influence, even in temporal
things, than the emperor. An act of arbitrary power, which no emperor could
ever have so much as contemplated—the deposition of an electoral prince of the
empire—was repeatedly attempted, and occasionally even accomplished, by the
popes. They bestowed on Italian prelates bishoprics as remote as that of Camin.
By their annates, pallia, and all the manifold dues exacted by the curia, they
drew a far larger (Maximilian I said, a hundred times larger) revenue from the
empire, than the emperor: their vendors of indulgences incessantly traversed
the several provinces of the empire. Spiritual and temporal principalities and
jurisdictions were so closely interwoven as to afford them continual
opportunities of interfering in the civil affairs of Germany. The dispute between
Cleves and Cologne about Soest, that between Utrecht and East Friesland about
Groningen, and a vast number of others, were evoked by the pope before his
tribunal. In 1472 he confirmed atoll, levied in the electorate of Treves: like
the emperor, he granted privilegia de non evocando.
Gregory
VII’s comparison of the papacy to the sun and the empire to the moon was now
verified. The Germans regarded the papal power as in every respect the higher.
When, for example, the town of Basel founded its high school, it was debated
whether, after the receipt of the brief containing the pope’s approbation, the
confirmation of the emperor was still necessary; and at length decided that it
was not so, since the inferior power could not confirm the decisions of the superior,
and the papal see was the well-head of Christendom. The pretender to the
Palatinate, Frederic the Victorious, whose electoral rank the emperor refused
to acknowledge, held it sufficient to obtain the pope’s sanction, and received
no further molestation in the exercise of his privileges as member of the
empire. The judge of the king’s court having on some occasion pronounced the
ban of the empire on the council of Lübeck, the council obtained a cassation of
this sentence from the pope. It was assuredly to be expected that the emperor
would feel the humiliation of his position, and would resist the pope as often
and as strenuously as possible. However great was the devotion of the princes
to the see of Rome, they felt the oppressiveness of its pecuniary exactions;
and more than once the spirit of the Basel decrees, or the recollections of the
proceedings at Constance, manifested themselves anew. We find draughts of a
league to prevent the constitution of Constance, according to which a council
should be held every ten years, from falling into utter desuetude. After the
death of Nicholas V the princes urged the emperor to seize the favourable
moment for asserting the freedom of the nation, and at least to take measures
for the complete execution of the agreement entered into with Eugenius; but
Frederic III was deaf to their entreaties. Aeneas Sylvius persuaded him that it
was necessary for him to keep well with the pope. He brought forward a few
common-places concerning the instability of the multitude, and their natural
hatred of their chief;—just as if the princes of the empire were a sort of
democracy: the emperor, said he, stands in need of the pope, and the pope of
the emperor; it would be ridiculous to offend the man from whom we want
assistance. He himself was sent in 1456 to tender unconditional obedience to
Pope Calixtus. This immediately revived the old spirit of resistance. An
outline was drawn of a pragmatic sanction, in which not only all the charges
against the papal see were recapitulated in detail, and redress of grievances
proposed, but it was also determined what was to be done in case of a refusal;
what appeal was to be made, and how the desired end was to be attained. But
what result could be anticipated while the emperor, far from taking part in
this plan, did everything he could to thwart it? He sincerely regarded himself
as the natural ally of the papacy.
The
inevitable effect of this conduct on his part was that the discontent of the
electors, already excited by the inactivity and the absence of the emperor,
occasionally burst out violently against him. As early as the year 1456 they
required him to repair on a given day to Nurnberg, for that it was his office
and duty to bear the burden of the empire in an honourable manner: if he did not
appear, they would, at any rate, meet, and do what was incumbent on them. As he
neither appeared then nor afterwards, in 1460 they sent him word that it was no
longer consistent with their dignity and honour to remain without a head. They
repeated their summons that he would appear on the Tuesday after Epiphany, and
accompanied it with still more vehement threats. They began seriously to take
measures for setting up a king of the Romans in opposition to him. From the
fact that George Podiebrad, king of Bohemia, was the man on whom they cast
their eyes, it is evident that the opposition was directed against both emperor
and pope jointly. What must have been the consequence of placing a Utraquist at
the head of the empire? This increased the zeal and activity of Pope Pius II
(whom we have hitherto known as Aeneas Sylvius), in consolidating the alliance
of the see of Rome with the emperor, who, on his side, was scarcely less deeply
interested in it. The independence of the prince-electors was odious to both. As
one of the claims of the emperor had always been, that no electoral diet should
be held without his consent, so Pius II, in like manner, now wanted to bind
Diether, Elector of Mainz, to summon no such assembly without the approbation
of the papal see. Diether’s refusal to enter into any such engagement was the
main cause of their quarrel. Pius did not conceal from the emperor that he
thought his own power endangered by the agitations which prevailed in the
empire. It was chiefly owing to his influence, and to the valour of Markgrave Albert Achilles of Brandenburg, that they ended
in nothing. From this time we find the imperial and the papal powers, which had
come to a sense of their common interest and reciprocal utility, more closely
united than ever. The diets of the empire were held under their joint
authority; they were called royal and papal, papal and royal diets. In the
reign of Frederic, as formerly in that of Sigismund, we find the papal legates
present at the meetings of the empire, which were not opened till they
appeared. The spiritual princes took their seats on the right, the temporal on
the left, of the legates: it was not till a later period that the imperial
commissioners were introduced, and proposed measures in concert with the papal
functionaries. It remains for us to inquire how far this very singular form of
government was fitted to satisfy the wants of the empire.
STATE OF GERMANY IN THE MIDDLE OF THE FIFTEENTH CENTURY
We
have seen what a mighty influence had, from the remotest times, been exercised
by the princes of Germany. First, the imperial power and dignity had arisen out
of their body, and by their aid; then, they had supported the emancipation of
the papacy, which involved their own: now, they stood opposed to both. Although
strongly attached to, and deeply imbued with, the ideas of Empire and Papacy,
they were resolved to repel the encroachments of either: their power was
already so independent, that the emperor and the pope deemed it necessary to
combine against them. If we proceed to inquire who were these magnates, and
upon what their power rested, we shall find that the temporal hereditary
sovereignty, the germ of which had long existed in secret and grown
unperceived, shot up in full vigour in the fifteenth century; and (if we may be
allowed to continue the metaphor), after it had long struck its roots deep into
the earth, it now began to rear its head into the free air, and to tower above
all the surrounding plants. All the puissant houses which have since held
sovereign sway date their establishment from this epoch.
In
the eastern part of North Germany appeared the race of Hohenzollern; and though
the land its princes had to govern and to defend was in the last stage of
distraction and ruin, they acted with such sedate vigour and cautious
determination, that they soon succeeded in driving back their neighbours within
their ancient bounds, pacifying and restoring the marches, and re-establishing
the very peculiar bases of sovereign power which already existed in the
country.
Near
this remarkable family arose that of Wettin, and, by
the acquisition of the electorate of Saxony, soon attained to the highest rank
among the princes of the empire, and to the zenith of its power. It possessed
the most extensive and at the same time the most flourishing of German
principalities, as long as the brothers, Ernest and Albert, held their united
court at Dresden and shared the government; and even when they separated, both
lines remained sufficiently considerable to play a part in the affairs of
Germany, and indeed of Europe.
In
the Palatinate we find Frederic the Victorious. It is necessary to read the
long list of castles, jurisdictions, and lands which he won from all his
neighbours, partly by conquest, partly by purchase or treaty, but which his
superiority in arms rendered emphatically his own, to form a conception what a
German prince could in that age achieve, and how widely he could extend his
sway.
The
conquests of Hessen were of a more peaceful nature. By the inheritance of Ziegenhain and Nidda, but more
especially of Katzenelnbogen, a fertile, highly
cultivated district, from which the old counts had never suffered a village or
a farm to be taken, whether by force or purchase, it acquired an addition
nearly equal to its original territory.
A
similar spirit of extension and fusion was also at work in many other places. Juliers and Berg formed a junction. Bavaria-Landshut was
strengthened by its union with Ingolstadt; in Bavaria-Munich, Albert the Wise
maintained the unity of the land under the most difficult circumstances; not
without violence, but, at least in this case, with beneficial results. In Wurtemberg, too, a multitude of separate estates were
gradually incorporated into one district, and assumed the form of a German
principality.
New
territorial powers also arose. In East Friesland a chieftain at length
appeared, before whom all the rest bowed; Junker Ulrich Cirksena,
who, by his own conquests, extended and consolidated the power founded on those
of his brother and his father. He also conciliated the adherents of the old
Fokko Uken, who were opposed to him, by a marriage with Theta, the
granddaughter of that chief. Hereupon he was solemnly proclaimed count at
Emden, in the year 1463. But it was to Theta, who was left to rule the country
alone during twenty-eight years, that the new sovereignty chiefly owed its
strength and stability. This illustrious woman, whose pale, beautiful
countenance, brilliant eyes and raven hair survive in her portrait, was endowed
with a vast understanding and a singular capacity for governing, as all her
conduct and actions prove.
Already
had several German princes raised themselves to foreign thrones. In the year
1448, Christian I, Count of Oldenburg, signed the declaration or contract which
made him king of Denmark: in 1450, he was invested with the crown of St. Olaf,
at Drontheim; in 1457, the Swedes acknowledged him as
their sovereign; in 1460, Holstein did homage to him, and was raised on his
account to the rank of a German duchy. These acquisitions were not, it is true,
of so stable and secure a character as they at first appeared; but, at all
events, they conferred upon a German princely house a completely new position
both in Germany and in Europe.
The
rise of the princely power and sovereignty was, as we see, not the mere result
of the steady course of events; the noiseless and progressive development of
political institutions; it was brought about mainly by adroit policy,
successful war and the might of personal character.
Yet
the secular princes by no means possessed absolute sovereignty; they were still
involved in an incessant struggle with the other powers of the empire.
These
were, in the first place, the spiritual principalities (whose privileges and
internal organisation wore the same as those of the secular, but whose rank in
the hierarchy of the empire was higher), in which nobles of the high or even
the inferior aristocracy composed the chapter and tilled the principal places.
In the fifteenth century, indeed, the bishoprics began to be commonly conferred
on the younger sons of sovereign princes: the court of Rome favoured this
practice, from the conviction that the chapters could only be kept in order by
the strong hand and the authority of sovereign power; but it was neither
universal, nor was the fundamental principle of the spiritual principalities by
any means abandoned in consequence of its adoption.
There
was also a numerous body of nobles who received their investiture with the
banner, like the princes, and had a right to sit in the same tribunal with
them; nay, there were even families or clans, which, from all time, claimed
exemption from those general feudal relations that formed the bond of the
state, and held their lands in fee from God and his blessed Son. They were
overshadowed by the princely order; but they enjoyed perfect independence
notwithstanding.
Next
to this class came the powerful body of knights of the Empire, whose castles
crowned the hills on the Rhine, in Swabia and Franconia; they lived in haughty
loneliness amidst the wildest scenes; girt round by an impregnable circle of
deep fosses, and within walls four-and-twenty feet thick, where they could set
all authority at defiance: the bond of fellowship among them was but the
stricter for their isolation. Another portion of the nobility, especially in
the eastern and colonised principalities in Pomerania and Mecklenburg, Meissen
and the Marches, were, however, brought into undisputed subjection; though
this, as we see in the example of the Priegnitz, was not brought about without
toil and combat.
There
was also a third class that constantly refused to acknowledge any feudal lord.
The Craichgauer and the Mortenauer
would not acknowledge the sovereignty of the Palatine, nor the Bokler and Lowenritter, that of
Bavaria. We find that the Electors of Mainz and Treves, on occasion of some
decision by arbitration, feared that their nobles would refuse to abide by it,
and knew not what measure to resort to in this contingency, except to rid
themselves of these refractory vassals and withdraw their protection from them.
It seems, in some cases, as if the relation of subject and ruler had become
nothing more than a sort of alliance.
Still
more completely independent was the attitude assumed by the cities. Opposed to
all these different classes of nobles, which they regarded as but one body,
they were founded on a totally different principle, and had struggled into
importance in the midst of incessant hostility. A curious spectacle is afforded
by this old enmity constantly pervading all the provinces of Germany, yet in
each one taking a different form. In Prussia, the opposition of the cities gave
rise to the great national league against the supreme power, which was here in
the hands of the Teutonic Order. On the Wendish coasts was then the centre of
the Hanse, by which the Scandinavian kings, and still more the surrounding
German princes, were overpowered. The Duke of Pomerania himself was struck with
terror, when, on coming to succour Henry the Elder of Brunswick, he perceived
by what powerful and closely allied cities his friend was encompassed and
enchained on every side. On the Rhine, we find an unceasing struggle for
municipal independence, which the chief cities of the ecclesiastical
principalities claimed, and the Electors refused to grant. In Franconia,
Nurnberg set itself in opposition to the rising power of Brandenburg, which it
rivalled in successful schemes of aggrandisement. Then followed in Swabia and
the Upper Danube (the true arena of the struggles and the leagues of imperial
free cities), the same groups of knights, lords, prelates and princes, who here
approached most nearly to each other. Among the Alps, the confederacy formed
against
Austria
had already grown into a regular constitutional government, and attained to
almost complete independence. On every side we find different relations,
different claims and disputes, different means of carrying on the conflict; but
on all, men felt themselves surrounded by hostile passions which any moment
might blow into a flame, and held themselves ready for battle. It seemed not
impossible that the municipal principle might eventually get the upper hand in
all these conflicts, and prove as destructive to the aristocratical, as that
had been to the imperial, power.
In
this universal shock of efforts and powers,—with a distant and feeble chief,
and inevitable divisions even among those naturally connected and allied, a
state of things arose which presents a somewhat chaotic aspect; it was the age
of universal private warfare. The Fehde is
a middle term between duel and war. Every affront or injury led, after certain
formalities, to the declaration, addressed to the offending party, that the
aggrieved party would be his foe, and that of his helpers and helpers’ helpers.
The imperial authorities felt themselves so little able to arrest this torrent,
that they endeavoured only to direct its course; and, while imposing
limitations, or forbidding particular acts, they confirmed the general
permission of the established practice.
The
right which the supreme, independent power had hitherto reserved to itself, of
resorting to arms when no means of conciliation remained, had descended in
Germany to the inferior classes, and was claimed by nobles and cities against
each other; by subjects against their lords, nay, by private persons, as far as
their means and connections permitted, against each other.
In
the middle of the fifteenth century this universal tempest of contending powers
was arrested by a conflict of a higher and more important nature—the opposition
of the princes to the emperor and the pope; and it remained to be decided from
whose hands the world could hope for any restoration to order.
Two
princes appeared on the stage, each of them the hero of his nation, each at the
head of a numerous party; each possessed of personal qualities strikingly
characteristic of the epoch—Frederic of the Palatinate, and Albert of
Brandenburg. They took opposite courses. Frederic the Victorious, distinguished
rather for address and agility of body than for size and strength, owed his
fame and his success to the forethought and caution with which he prepared his
battles and sieges. In time of peace he busied himself with the study of
antiquity, or the mysteries of alchemy; poets and minstrels found ready access
to him, as in the springtime of poetry; he lived under the same roof with his
friend and songstress, Clara Dettin of Augsburg,
whose sweetness and sense not only captivated the prince, but were the charm
and delight of all around him. He had expressly renounced the comforts of equal
marriage and legitimate heirs; all that he accomplished or acquired was for the
advantage of his nephew Philip.
The
towering and athletic frame of Markgrave Albert of
Brandenburg (surnamed Achilles), on the contrary, announced, at the first
glance, his gigantic strength: he had been victor in countless tournaments, and
stories of his courage and warlike prowess, bordering on the fabulous, were
current among the people;—how, for example, at some siege he had mounted the
walls alone, and leaped down into the midst of the terrified garrison; how,
hurried on by a slight success over an advanced party of the enemy, he had
rushed almost unattended into their main body of 800 horsemen, had forced his
way up to their standard, snatched it from its bearer, and after a momentary
feeling of the desperateness of his position, rallied his courage and defended
it, till his people could come up and complete the victory. Aeneas Sylvius
declares that the Markgrave himself assured him of
the fact. His letters breathe a passion for war. Even after a defeat he had
experienced, he relates to his friends with evident pleasure, how long he and
four others held out on the field of battle; how he then cut his way through
with great labour and severe fighting, and how he was determined to re-appear
as soon as possible in the field. In time of peace he busied himself with the affairs
of the empire, in which he took a more lively and efficient part than the
emperor himself. We find him sharing in all the proceedings of the diets; or
holding a magnificent and hospitable court in his Franconian territories; or
directing his attention to his possessions in the Mark, which were governed by
his son with all the vigilance dictated by the awe of a grave and austere
father. Albert is the worthy progenitor of the warlike house of Brandenburg. He
bequeathed to it not only wise maxims, but, what is of more value, a great
example.
About
the year 1461 these two princes embraced, as we have said, different parties.
Frederic, who as yet possessed no distinctly recognised power, and in all
things obeyed his personal impulses, put himself at the head of the opposition.
Albert, who always followed the trodden path of existing relations, undertook
the defence of the emperor and the pope: fortune wavered for a time between
them. But at last the Jorsika, as George Podiebrad
was called, abandoned his daring plans. Diether of Isenburg was succeeded by
his antagonist, Adolf of Nassau; and Frederic the Palatine consented to give up
his prisoners: victory leaned, in the main, to the side of Brandenburg. The
ancient authorities of the Empire and the Church were once more upheld.
These
authorities, too, now seemed seriously bent on introducing a better order of
things. By the aid of the victorious party, the emperor found himself, for the
first time, in a position to exercise a certain influence in the empire; Pope
Paul II wished to fit out an expedition against the Turks: with united strength
they proceeded to the work at the diet of Nurnberg (A.D. 1466).
It
was an assembly which distinctly betrayed the state of parties under which it
had been convoked. Frederic the Palatine appeared neither in person nor by
deputy; the ambassadors of Podiebrad who had fallen into fresh disputes with
the papal see were not admitted: nevertheless, the resolutions passed there
were of great importance. It was determined for the next five years to regard
every breach of the Public Peace f as a crime against the majesty of the
empire, and to punish it with the ban. It was found that the spiritual
tribunals must come in aid of the temporal sword; and accordingly the pope
denounced the heaviest spiritual penalties against violators of the Public
Peace. The emperor formally adopted these resolutions at an assembly at
Neustadt, in the year 1467, and for the first time revoked the articles of the
Golden Bull and the Reformation of 1442, in which private wars were, under
certain conditions, permitted. A peace was proclaimed, “enjoined by our most
gracious lord the king of the Romans, and confirmed by our holy father the
pope,” as the electors express themselves.
Sometime
afterwards—at Regensburg, in the year 1471—the allied powers ventured on a
second yet more important step, for the furtherance of the war against the
Turks, which they declared themselves at length about to undertake: they
attempted to impose a sort of property tax on the whole empire, called the
Common Penny, and actually obtained an edict in its favour. They named in
concert the officers charged with the collection of it in the archiepiscopal
and episcopal sees; and the papal legate threatened the refractory with the sum
of all spiritual punishments, exclusion from the community of the church.
These
measures undoubtedly embraced what was most immediately necessary to the
internal and external interests of the empire. But how was it possible to
imagine that they would be executed? The combined powers were by no means
strong enough to carry through such extensive and radical innovations. The
diets had not been attended by nearly sufficient numbers, and people did not
hold themselves bound by the resolutions of a party. The opposition to the
emperor and the pope had not attained its object, but it still subsisted:
Frederic the Victorious still lived, and had now an influence over the very
cities which had formerly opposed him. The collection of the Common Penny was,
in a short time, not even talked of; it was treated as a project of Paul II, to
whom it was not deemed expedient to grant such extensive powers.
The
proclamation of the Public Peace had also produced little or no effect. After
some time the cities declared that it had occasioned them more annoyance and
damage than they had endured before. It was contrary to their wishes that, in
the year 1474, it was renewed with all its actual provisions. The private wars
went on as before. Soon afterwards one of the most powerful imperial cities,
Regensburg, the very place where the Public Peace was proclaimed, fell into the
hands of the Bavarians. The combined powers gradually lost all their
consideration. In the year 1479 the propositions of the emperor and the pope
were rejected in a mass by the estates of the empire, and were answered with a
number of complaints. And yet never could stringent measures be more
imperiously demanded.
I
shall not go into an elaborate description of the evils attendant on the right
of diffidation or private warfare (Fehderecht): they were probably not as great as is
commonly imagined. Even in the century we are treating of, there were Italians
to whom the situation of Germany appeared happy and secure in comparison with
that of their own country, where, in all parts, one faction drove out another.
It was only the level country and the high roads which were exposed to robbery
and devastation. But even so, the state of things was disgraceful and
insupportable to a great nation. It exhibited the strongest contrast to the
ideas of law and of religion upon which the Empire was so peculiarly founded.
One
consequence of it was, that as every man was exclusively occupied with the care
of his own security and defence, or could at best not extend his view beyond
the horizon immediately surrounding him, no one had any attention to bestow on
the common weal; not only were no more great enterprises achieved, but even the
frontiers were hardly defended. In the East, the old conflict between the
Germans and the Lettish and Slavonian tribes was decided in favour of the
latter. As the King of Poland found allies in Prussia itself, he obtained an
easy victory over the Order, and compelled the knights to conclude the peace of
Thorn (A. D. 1466), by which the greater part of the territories of the Order
were ceded to him, and the rest were held of him in fee. Neither emperor nor
empire stirred to avert this incalculable loss. In the West, the idea of
obtaining the Rhine as a boundary first awoke in the minds of the French, and
the attacks of the Dauphin and the Armagnacs were only foiled by local
resistance. But what the one line of the house of Valois failed in, the other,
that of Burgundy, accomplished with brilliant success. As the wars between
France and England were gradually terminated, and nothing more was to be gained
in that field, this house, with all its ambition and all its good fortune,
threw itself on the territory of Lower Germany. In direct defiance of the
imperial authority, it took possession of Brabant and Holland; then Philip the
Good took Luxembourg, placed his natural son in Utrecht, and his nephew on the
episcopal throne of Liege; after which an unfortunate quarrel between father
and son gave Charles the Bold an opportunity to seize upon Guelders. A power
was formed such as had not arisen since the time of the great duchies, and the
interests and tendencies of which were naturally opposed to those of the
empire. This state the restless Charles resolved to extend, on the one side,
towards Friesland, on the other, along the Upper Rhine. When at length he fell
upon the archbishopric of Cologne and besieged Neuss, some opposition was made
to him, but not in consequence of any concerted scheme or regular armament, but
of a sudden levy in the presence of imminent danger. The favourable moment for
driving him back within his own frontiers had been neglected. Shortly after, on
his attacking Lotharingia, Alsatia, and Switzerland,
those countries were left to defend themselves. Meanwhile, Italy had in fact
completely emancipated herself. If the emperor desired to be crowned there, he
must go unarmed like a mere traveller; his ideal power could only be manifested
in acts of grace and favour. The King of Bohemia, who also possessed the two Lusatias and Silesia, and an extensive feudal dominion
within the empire, insisted loudly on his rights, and would hear nothing of the
corresponding obligations.
The
life of the nation must have been already extinct, had it not, even in the
midst of all these calamities, and with the prospect of further imminent peril
before it, taken measures to establish its internal order and to restore its
external power;—objects, however, not to be attained without a revolution in
both its spiritual and temporal affairs.
The
tendency to development and progress in Europe is sometimes more active and
powerful in one direction, sometimes in another. At this moment temporal
interests were most prominent; and these, therefore, must first claim our
attention.
AT the beginning of his
success, not long after the migration of nations had commenced, Athaulf, King
of the Visigoths, conceived the idea of gothicising the
Roman world, and making himself the Caesar of all; he would maintain the Roman
laws. If we understand him aright, he first intended to combine the Romans of
the West (who, though sprung of many and diverse tribes, had, after a union
that had lasted for centuries, at length become one realm and one people) in a
new unity with the Teutonic races. He afterwards despaired of being able to
effect this; but the collective Teutonic nations at last brought it about, and
in a still wider sense than he had dreamed of. It was not long before Lugdunensian Gaul became not, it is true, a Gothland, but a Lugdunensian
Germania.
Eventually the purple of a
Caesar passed to the Teutonic races in the person of Charlemagne. At length
these likewise adopted the Roman law. In this combination six great nations
were formed three in which the Latin element predominated, viz. the French, the Spanish, and the Italian; and three in which
the Teutonic element was conspicuous, viz.
the German, the English, and the Scandinavian.
Each of these six
nationalities was again broken up into separate parts; they never formed one
nation, and they were almost always at war among themselves. Wherein, then, is
their unity displayed? Wherein is it to be perceived? They are all sprung from
the same or a closely allied stock; are alike in manners, and similar in many
of their institutions: their internal histories precisely coincide, and certain
great enterprises are common to all. The following work, which is based upon
this conception, would be unintelligible, were not the latter explained by a
short survey of those external enterprises which, arising as they do from the
same spirit, form a progressive development of the Latin and Teutonic life from
the first beginning until now.
These are the migration of
nations, the Crusades, and the colonization of foreign countries.
The migration of nations
founded the unity of which we speak. The actual event, the movement itself,
proceeded from the Germans; but the Latin countries were not merely passive. In
exchange for the arms and the new public life which they received, they
communicated to the victors their religion and their language. Reccared had, indeed, to become a Catholic before mutual
intermarriage between the Visigoths and the Latin peoples could be legally
permitted in Spain. But, after this, the races and their languages became
completely blended. In Italy the communities of Lombard and Roman extraction,
in spite of their original separation, became so closely intertwined that it is
almost impossible to distinguish the component elements of each. It is clear
what great influence the bishops exercised upon the founding of France; and yet
they were at first purely of Latin origin. It is not until the year 556 A.D.
that we meet with a Prankish bishop in Paris. Now, although in these nations we
find that both elements in a short time became welded and blended together, the
case was very different with the Anglo-Saxons, the implacable foes of the Britons,
from whom they adopted neither religion nor language, as well as with the other
Teutons in their German and Scandinavian homes. Yet even these were not finally
able to resist Latin Christianity and a great part of Latin culture. Between
both divisions of this conglomeration of peoples there was formed a close
community of kindred blood, kindred religion, institutions, manners, and modes
of thought. They successfully resisted the influence of foreign races. Among
those nations which besides them had taken part in the migration of peoples, it
was chiefly the Arabs, Hungarians, and Slavs who threatened to disturb, if not
to destroy them. But the Arabs were averted by the complete incompatibility of
their religion; the Hungarians were beaten back within their own borders; and
the neighbouring Slavs were at last annihilated or subjected.
What can knit together
individuals or nations into closer relationship than a participation in the
same destiny, and a common history? Among the internal and external occurrences
of these earlier times, the unity of one particular event can almost be
perceived. The Germanic nations, possessors from time immemorial of a great
country, take the field, conquer the Roman empire of the West, and, more than
this, keep what they have got. About the year 530 we find them in possession of
all the countries extending from the cataracts of the Danube to the mouth of
the Rhine and across to the Tweed, and all the land from Hallin Halogaland to that Baetica, from
which the Vandals take their name, and across the sea to where the Atlas range
sinks down into the desert. As long as they were united, no one was able to
wrest these territories from them; but their isolation, and the opposition
between Arian and Catholic doctrines, led first to the destruction of the
Vandals. The loss that was caused by the fall of the Ostrogothic empire was to
a certain extent retrieved by the Lombards when they occupied Italy not
entirely, for never at any time were they complete masters of Italy, to say
nothing of Sicily or Illyria, as the Goths were; but it was owing to these
Lombards, who first destroyed the Heruli and Gepidae,
but thereupon left their hereditary and their conquered settlements to a
Sarmatian people, that the Danube was lost almost up to its sources. A fresh
loss was the destruction of the Thuringian kingdom. The irruption of the Slavs
far into the country lying to the west of the Elbe is probably not unconnected
with this. But the greatest danger was threatened by the Arabs. They took Spain
at a dash; invaded France and Italy; and, had they won a single battle more,
the Latin portion at least of our nations might have been doomed. What could be
expected when Franks and Lombards, Franks and Saxons, Angles and Danes lived in
deadly enmity? Let us not forget that the founding of the Papacy and the Empire
warded off this danger.
If I may be allowed to state
my own convictions, the real power of the Papacy - that which has really
endured was not established before the seventh century. It was not until then
that the Anglo-Saxons recognized in the Pope, from whom their conversion
immediately proceeded, their true patriarch, took to them a primate of his
appointment, and paid him tribute. It was from England, that Boniface, the
apostle of the Germans, went forth. Not only on being made Archbishop of Mainz,
did he swear allegiance, sincere devotion, and assistance to St. Peter and his
successors, but the other bishops also swore to remain until death subject to
the Roman Church, and to keep the ordinances of Peter's successors. He did yet
more. For a hundred years before his day not a single letter can be found from
the Pope of Rome, addressed to the Prankish clergy, so independent were the
latter. Boniface, on Pipin's incentive, brought them also into subjection; and
the metropolitan bishops whom he instituted received the pallium from Rome.
These were the three nations of which, with the Lombards, Christendom consisted
in the West after the Spanish disaster. Charlemagne also freed the Pope from
the enmity of the Lombards; he made him the Frankish Patrician, so that he
ceased dating his bulls by the years of the reigns of the Greek emperors, and
drew him completely into the sphere of the newly founded world. Thus did the
Pope become the ecclesiastical head of the Latin and Teutonic nations. He
became so at the very time when the Arabs became powerful and gained ground;
his new dignity assuaged the enmity of the hostile races, and effected a
material reconciliation between them. But they were only able to cope with the
enemy, when relying on the power of the Pipins and
the empire of Charlemagne.
Merit is due to Charlemagne
for having united all the Latino-Germanic nations of the Continent, in so far
as they were Christians, or were becoming so. Egbert, moreover, who made the
heptarchy of the Angles a monarchy, was his disciple for having given them a
constitution suited alike for war and peace, and for having taught them to
advance again against their enemies along the Danube, to the east of the Saale
and Elbe, and across the Pyrenees. But all had not yet been done. There
appeared on one side, on every frontier, the Hungarians, in irresistible
numbers, on horseback, and armed with bows and arrows; and simultaneously on
the other, on every coast, the Normans, both Vikings and Askemans,
alike daring by sea and land. But at this very time the empire of Charlemagne
perished through the mistakes made by his successors, whose nicknames almost
invariably record their follies, so that the danger was renewed. It may be said
that the migration of nations did not cease before these movements had been
repressed. The Hungarians were driven back, and became Christians; and at the
same time the contiguous Slavonic nations became Christian also. All of them
long vacillated between the Roman and the Greek form of worship before -and
this was doubtless due to the influence of the Teutonic emperors- they decided
for the former. It cannot be said that these peoples belong also to the unity
of our nations; their manners and their constitution have ever severed them
from it. At that time they never exercised any independent influence, they only
appear either subservient or antagonistic; they receive, so to speak, only the
ebb of the tide of the general movements. But the Normans, of Germanic origin,
were drawn into the circle of the other nations, and established themselves in
France and England. They retaliated by carrying Germanic life in the eleventh
century to Naples and Sicily. Their kindred at home had also meantime become
Christians, and, except for an insignificant remnant, completely entered into
the circle to which they naturally belonged.
Here, then, in the middle of
the eleventh century, the movements of the migration of nations ended. The
future development of the European languages, an intellectual fruit of these
stormy centuries, had now been started in all its unity and diversity. If we
glance at the French form of oath prescribed at Strasbourg, we seem to find
therein traces of the Italian, French, and Spanish dialects all at once. As
this points to the unity of the Latin dialects, so does the fact that they have
been recently combined in a single grammar bear still greater testimony to the
unity of the Germanic dialects. The foundations of all modern kingdoms and
their constitutions had been laid. Empire and Papacy were held in universal
regard; the former represented the Teutonic, the latter the Latin principle of
the great union of nations; the one supported the other.
After this, the original
migratory impulse took a different turn, owing to the fact that it coincided
with a complete devotion to Christianity. The Crusades may almost be regarded
as a continuation of the migration of nations. The same people who had
concluded the latter, viz. the
Normans, took, in the same century, the most vigorous part in the first
Crusade. Not only were they led by three eminent princes, namely, Robert of
Normandy, whom the old chroniclers place above the supreme commander in point
of nobility, wealth, and even intellectual excellence, Bohemond of Tarentum,
whose participation contemporaries rightly connected with his operations
against the Greeks, and Tancred; but so many individual Normans took part in
them, that a war which was then in progress had to be brought to a close, owing
to the dearth of warriors. It may perhaps have been a Norwegian, St. Olaf, who
was the first to adopt the cross in war, both for himself and his army.
The great armed pilgrimages to
Jerusalem in the eleventh century appear to have originated with the Normans;
the successful issue of them is at all events ascribed to them before all
others by Roger de Hoveden. All the Latin and
Teutonic nations shared in this new enthusiasm. In the first expedition we find
Spaniards, the counts of Cerdan and Canet. Lope de Vega has left us a grand
poem, immortalizing the meritorious services of the Castilians in the Holy
Land. As early as the year 1121, Sigurd of Norway earned the name of Jorsalafar (pilgrim to Jerusalem); of the other nations it
is known that they also took part in it. Never did a foreign nation, and only
on one occasion did a foreign prince, Andrew of Hungary, participate therein,
and he only did so as the leader of an Upper German expedition, and he was,
moreover, the son of a French mother. The Crusades were in the main the unaided
undertakings of the whole body of the Latin and Teutonic nations.
Now let us observe how the
Crusades caused these nations to extend on all sides and in all directions.
Their goal was, it is true, the Holy Land, yet they went to the coast of the
Mediterranean besides, and not to that land alone. The Latin Empire at
Constantinople would, had it longer existed, have turned the whole Greek Empire
into a Latino-German one. Had it not been for St. Louis' ill-luck, Egypt would
have become a colony of France; and there appeared at this time a sensible, and
certainly most instructive book upon the relations between the East and the
West, written with the express intention of inciting to renewed operations
against Egypt. In the year 1150 King Roger of Sicily, known as Jarl Roger the
Rich among his old countrymen, had possession of the coast of Africa from Tunis
to Tripoli, and occupied Mahadia.
But the most important and
permanent achievements in the southern world were, without doubt, due to the
Spaniards. Their Campeador, the Cid, lived to see the Crusades. In the same
period they first succeeded in holding Toledo and the valley of the Tagus,
which Alfonso the Emperor had just conquered, against the violent attack of the
Almoravides, and then advanced under Alonso Ramon and
took the valley of the Guadiana (Alonso
died under an oak-tree on Mount Muradal, at the
extreme limit of his actual conquests, for all the rest were again lost). In
the same period also they gained under Alonso the Noble the great battle of
Navas de Tolosa, and set foot on the Guadalquivir. And finally, at that very
time, shortly before the first Crusade of St. Louis, St. Ferdinand subdued
Jaen, Cordova, and Seville, and as Granada paid him tribute, the whole of
Andalusia also, whilst, shortly before the second Crusade, Alonso the Sage
subjected Murcia. In these days Portugal was founded and established as a
kingdom. The union of Aragon and Catalonia, the conquest of Valencia, and the
exploits of the Conquistador Jayme fall also into this period.
All this is closely connected
with the expeditions to the Holy Land. The Archbishop Richard of Toledo, who
came to Rome with a host of Crusaders, was sent back again by the Pope, because
he and they were more needed at home; and instead of leading them against
Jerusalem he now led them against Alcalá. We know that it was chiefly Low
Germans, English, and Flemish, who, proceeding on a Crusade, conquered his
capital for the prince, who first called himself King of Portugal; and that
seventy years later Alfonso II's most brilliant conquest was only effected by
the same assistance. In short, the conquest of the peninsula was only achieved
by the co-operation of kindred races. Out of the plunder of Almeria, Alonso
Ramon gave a splendid jewel to the Genoese as a thank-offering for their
services. In the battle of Navas de Tolosa many thousands from beyond the
Pyrenees fought in the army of Alonso the Noble.
Concurrently with these
operations and progressive advances of our nations on the coasts of the
Mediterranean and in the South generally, there were others being carried on in
the North which were prompted by the same spirit. Sigurd Jorsalafar,
whom we have referred to, made it his first business, after his return, to land
at Calmar and to coerce the Smalandic heathen, man by
man, to embrace Christianity. With the same object in view St. Eric led the
Swedes against the Finns. He shed tears on seeing the battle, but did not stay
his hand until he had baptized the Finns in the spring of Lupisala.
On the occasion of the second Crusade, on the receipt of a bull from Pope
Eugenius III, the Danes, Saxons, and Westphalians leagued together to make a
common expedition against the neighbouring Slavs, resolved either to convert
them to Christianity, or else to exterminate them. Not long after this, Bishop
Meinhard came with traders and artisans from Wisby to Esthonia
to preach there. These three undertakings led, if not immediately, at all
events by degrees, to a brilliant success. On the west of the Oder the Slavs
were, by the times of the Crusades, practically exterminated. German nobility,
German citizens and peasants were the real stock of the new inhabitants of
Mecklenburg, Pomerania, Brandenburg and Silesia. Since that time the Eastern
Pomeranians have always called the Western by the name of Saxons.
In the year 1248, after long
struggles, Finland at length became entirely Christian and Swedish. Since that
date Swedes have dwelt along the whole coast, and in the strongholds there.
Proceeding from the unpretentious colony of Yxkull (Oesel), German rule extended over all Esthonia,
Livonia, and Courland; nay, when the Knights of the Sword, who had been
established there, despaired of being able to defend a certain fortress against
the Prussians, in spite of a great display of bravery, they were instrumental
in bringing to their assistance the Teutonic Knights, who then made the land of
the Letts a German country. Ashort time longer, and
the joint possessions of both orders extended from Danzig to Narva. Here they
met the Pomeranians, who were now either entirely germanized
or partially so, owing to their subjection to the Emperor and Empire. Here, on
the Gulf of Finland, they became neighbours of the Swedes. The German name
embraced the whole of the Baltic.
To the same circle of events
belong the operations of Henry Plantagenet in Ireland. He brought it to pass
that thenceforth two nations have lived together in Ireland: the native Irish,
the subjected, and the Anglo-Germanic, the dominant. The English, if not first
brought over, were certainly established there by him. At that time Venice
taught the Dalmatians to speak Italian. This event must also be comprehended in
our survey, for it is a new extension of our nations; and the Pope likewise
instigated the attack upon Ireland, because that land would never obey him.
Yet, in order not to depart from the principle we have laid down, those two
undertakings, in the North and the South, must principally be kept in view,
which sprang from the same tendency, and were carried out by the same arms,
under the same symbols, and often with the assistance of the same men. They
show the unity of our nations in idea, in action, and in development.
But this principle is most
clearly visible in the Crusades of the South and the North. This stirring
energy, the result of an intellectual impulse, expanding in all directions,
found a fitting expression in noble institutions and creations which belong to
it, and belong to it exclusively. We will dwell on two alone. War may arouse
every brutal passion in our nature, but it is the province of chivalry to save
the true man, to soften force by manners and the elevating influence of women,
and to refine strength by pointing it to what is divine. Its origin, in this
sense, is coeval with the formation of the first two ecclesiastical orders of
knighthood, and the zenith of its bloom coincides beyond doubt with the
foundation of the third. After the Crusades it did not die out, but took
another development which was different in different lands. It never spread to
other nations; even the Hospitallers and Templars never owned a province in any
other country, or more than a few possessions. The Teutonic Knights stood in
constant contrast to the Letts and the Slavs. One noble blossom of chivalry is
the poetry of these times. If it is true, as seems to be the case, that the
story of Bechadas, by Godfrey of Bouillon, was the
first novel, and if the cycle of tales of Charlemagne and Arthur are, as
appears very probable, immediately connected therewith, it is evident what a
great share the Crusades have had in the foundation of modern poetry. This
poetry, at any rate, binds all our nations exclusively together. The prefaces
to the Wilkinasaga, and the Niflungasaga,
confess that they were composed in Iceland after German models. No other people
had any share in it.
But war was not waged by
knights alone; the freedom of the towns was also founded in war, and, in the
case of all our nations, dates from this time. The first consuls of the Italian
communities, chosen by themselves, and upon the selection of whom their whole
freedom rests, appear contemporaneously with the first Crusade, in the year
1100. We certainly meet with them first in Genoa on the occasion of an
expedition to the Holy Land. In the course of our period they procured for
themselves the full powers of the old royal counts. As early as the year 1112,
we meet with the same institutions in France, free communes under magistrates
and elders of their own election. As the king marches under the oriflamme, the standard of St. Denis -a device which
appears to be the true origin of this imperial banner- so all the communes take
the field with him, each under the standard of its local saint. The cities in
Castile, because of their martial ardour, were, in the year 1169, given a seat
in the Cortes; and at the battle of Navas their assistance appears to have been
not inconsiderable. The German cities, in the course of the same period, by
freeing themselves from the “Vogt”, developed to independent unions. During the
reign of Henry III the English towns were represented in Parliament. It was in Gothland, upon Swedish soil, that Wisby flourished. Thus,
hand in hand with chivalry and the crusades, the cities developed both in
freedom and importance throughout the Latin and Teutonic nations from north to
south. In the same way as the peculiarities of our poetry are due to chivalry,
so our characteristic architecture appears to be due to the cities. In this
same period it developed from the flat roof and the semi-circle to those
beautiful Gothic proportions we admire in the façade of the cathedral at
Strasbourg, in the choir at Cologne, in the spire of Freiburg, and in the whole
edifice at Marburg of the year 1235 as well as in the cathedrals of Siena,
Rouen, and Burgos.
Neither in chivalry nor yet in
the development of the cities have other nations had a share. As late as the year
1501, the Russians of Moscow begged that a knight, an iron man, as they
expressed it, should be sent them, and marvelled at him as a wonder. The gates
of the cathedral at Novgorod are the work of Magdeburg craftsmen.
Let us dwell yet upon another
phenomenon. As the migration of nations was accompanied by the establishment of
the Empire and the Papacy, so did the struggle between these two forces arise
out of the Crusades. It is not merely a struggle between the Emperor and the
Pope; it evidently affects all those confessing the Roman faith. The quarrel
between Henry II of England and Thomas Becket is quite analogous to it, both in
respect of the interests the combatants had at stake, as well as in the kind of
weapons they employed; the two princes and the two ecclesiastics were allied.
This quarrel concerns moreover all our nations. Frederick I had Swedes in the
army with which he invaded Italy in 1158; it was mainly English gold which
supported the popes in their struggles at Naples. The internal affairs of
Castile act and react upon the history of Conradin. Charles of Anjou, who
brought these wars to a close, was the brother of the French king. Foreign
quarrels could not fail to be influenced by internal dissensions. It was
natural that in the midst of his Italian wars Frederick should sigh for Asia,
where the strength and energy he lavished upon them would have guaranteed him
more genuine glory and more perfect happiness. But the internal forces also
destroyed themselves. The Papacy was wrong in believing that it had gained in
strength by the fall of the Hohenstaufen. Before Conradin had been dead forty
years, it fell into the captivity of the French kings. Since that time it has
never again been the old Papacy. Which of our nations could say that it has
been unaffected by this?
We may distinguish two
periods, in respect of these external enterprises; the first, that of their
beginning, when they govern the thoughts and hearts of all; the second, that of
their continuation, their effects and results. If this strikes the historian at
the first glance in the migration of nations, it is almost even more striking
in the case of the Crusades.
After the decay and fall of
the two great powers, and when the universal interest in external operations
had, in the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries, gradually cooled down, there
arose in the heart of our nations, so to speak, a universal war of all against
all. It was those who belonged most closely together that quarrelled most
violently. The Provensals and Catalans are of one
stock; but, owing to the claims of their princes, the houses of Anjou and
Barcelona, to Naples, they at that time fell into an enmity that lasted for
centuries. It was in this struggle that Naples and Sicily became sundered.
Portugal was originally a fief of the crown of Castile. After this feudal bond
had become severed, the pride of both nations caused a deadly hatred to take
root in them. Moreover, the factions of the Nunez and Gamboa pervaded the whole
of Spain. Civil wars were only now and again interrupted by a campaign against
the Moors, at other times it was the reverse. In Italy Guelphs and Ghibellines,
whose names scarcely existed before the commencement of the thirteenth century,
nursed and fostered a feud that divided the whole land, town from town, and
almost house from house. Owing to the strife between their royal houses, not,
as was formerly the case, for a few fiefs, but for the crown itself, France and
England became locked in deadly wars. At first it was France that was convulsed
by English arms and a great English party; and then England itself was torn by
the wars of the white and the red rose. In Germany, races and families fought
together no less; Swabians and Swiss are both Alemanni, but they now fell into
deadly feud. Austrians and Bavarians are the same race; the battle of Mühldorf shows how little they regarded it. Franconia
became split up into the opposing factors of knightly and ecclesiastical
domains. Wars of succession, wars of children against their fathers, and wars
between brothers, laid waste Thuringia and Meissen. Brandenburg and Pomerania
were both peopled by Saxon colonists; but the claims of the Brandenburg princes
to the country of the Pomeranians became a great offence between them, and in
Pomeranian chronicles the people of the Mark are always mentioned with dislike.
Besides this, we have the rising of princes against the sovereign power, and of
freeholders against the princes; and, in cases where they were immediate
subjects of the Empire, a rising of the knights against the cities; whilst in
the cities the guilds rose against the families. Frequently, also, the crown
was the object of contention. And it is not alone nations and races, states and
cabinets, that regulate public affairs, but families, corporations, and
individuals, every one in each matter for himself as best as he may.
In this state of things it
might be thought scarcely possible that the unity of an empire, let alone that
of the collective body of our nations, could have been preserved. Party feeling
divides, but it also unites. It is mainly the Anglo-French wars that act and
re-act upon the rest of the European complications, and bind them all together.
What could appear to be wider apart than the rebellion of oppressed Scots
against the English, and the struggle of Albert and Adolf for the crown of
Germany? The battle of Cambuskenneth, in which the
English were defeated, and that of Hasenbuhel, in
which Adolf fell, both in the year 1298, are all the same intimately connected.
Albert was allied with the French, and through them with the Scots, Adolf with
the English. The English party in Europe was defeated in both battles. The
quarrel between Louis of Bavaria and Charles of Luxembourg for the same crown
of Germany was decided not so much in Germany, as by the battle of Crecy.
Shortly before, Charles had been raised with all pomp to the throne by four
Electors; immediately after the battle his party, the French, had lost we see
him hurrying back to Bohemia reft of dignity and
power; but Louis sends and solemnly receives English embassies.
In the interest of these two
parties, and mainly with their assistance, Peter the Cruel and Henry of
Trastamara waged their war for the crown of Castile. Since Peter’s avarice
drove the Black Prince, who had assisted him, to the hearth-tax, and this tax
goaded the latter's vassals to discontent, which resulted in the decay of the
English power in France, while Henry, on the other hand, conquered with the
French in Spain, it may be said that the wane of English power in Spain was the
result. Other threads connect these events with affairs in Holland and
Gelderland, in Aragon and Sardinia, and in Venice and Genoa; hence, not much
credence can be placed in the assertion, so often made, that the nations in the
Middle Ages were isolated from each other.
Even great intellectual
movements pass through them all, and testify to their internal unity. About the
year 1350 we find, almost as at the present time, a general tendency to make
new constitutions. It was then (1347) that Cola di Rienzi, the Italian zealot,
actually restored the good old state of things, as he called it that is, a kind
of republican form of government at Rome; further, at that time (1356)plebeians
and doge of Venice leagued together against the nobles, in order, in one
murderous night, to restore their old rights; and in France (1355), a first
assembly of estates of the realm promised both to live and to die with the
king, but curtailed his rights not a little; a second demanded reforms and
presented a list of twenty-two high personages who were to be deposed from
office ; whilst a third finally ushered in a complete revolution, and forced
the dauphin to don its red and green cap. These movements were lawless and
transitory. Others, at the self-same time, confined themselves within narrower
limits and had more durable results. In Aragon, in 1348, in the place of the
violent power of the union, the lawful influence of a Justicia was established.
For the first time in their history (under Edward III) the Commons of England
insisted upon the responsibility of the King's council ; and, perhaps in
Germany also, it was similar intellectual movements which, in 1356, caused
Charles IV to grant the Golden Bull, that fundamental law of the Empire for
centuries to come. At all events, the first union of the provinces into estates
of the realm in Brunswick, in Saxony (1350) and elsewhere, took place at the
same time. Is it possible that this coincidence was accidental? The common
development of our nations, it would seem, necessarily produced the same ideas
in all.
In the midst of these
movements, whenever, from time to time, the old feud between Emperor and Pope
made itself felt, the minds of men turned invariably towards the East and a
common expedition against the Infidels. The Pope frequently encouraged the
enterprise. In novels, tales, and popular books, the general tendency was at
once ventilated and nourished. In the fourteenth century the pastoureaux in France and in England believed that
the conquest of the Holy Land was to be the work of the shepherds and peasants,
and set out with this end in view. As late as the end of the fifteenth century,
in the year 1480, many of the citizens of Parma fastened a red cross upon their
shoulder, and pledged themselves to fight against the Infidels. It was chiefly
in Spain and Portugal, where the Moorish war was continued at intervals, and
finally led to an attack upon Africa, that the crusading spirit was kept alive.
It was this crusading spirit
that gave birth to colonization. The following book will show us how the first
discoveries and colonies are in a twofold manner connected with the Moorish
war; first, through expeditions against Africa, whence proceeded the scheme for
the conquest of India, and secondly, through the idea of defending and
extending Christendom. The intentions of the Portuguese were concerned directly
with the centre of the Arabian faith. They desired to avenge Jerusalem upon
Mecca. Their victories were once again fought and won in the enthusiasm of
Crusaders. The Spanish operations, on the other hand, being directed, as they
were, against heathen, and not against Mohammedans, renewed rather the idea of
the Northern Crusades. A grant from the Pope, a proclamation that “the enemy
must be converted to Christianity or utterly destroyed”, was all the
justification that was necessary. The peasants too, whom Bartolomeo de Las
Casas intended to lead upon a more peaceful expedition to Cumana, wore each a
red cross.
As a fact, in both Spain and
Portugal, migration of peoples, crusades, and colonization form only one single
and connected event. The colonies, which moved from the Asturian hills to the
coasts of Andalusia and Africa, and which were established as early as 1507 in
Almeria, and in 1512 in Oran, now begin on the other shore of the Atlantic
Ocean. The Spaniards pride themselves on nothing so much as that they planted
there, instead of barbarian peoples, as they say, the sons and descendants of
illustrious Castilian families. The five million white men, who are to be found
there, are real Spaniards. A million Portuguese dwell in Brazil. An almost
equal number, although degenerated, may be distinguished on the coasts of
Africa, and in the East Indies. Settlements on such a great scale may be
regarded as migrations. Another idea that animates colonizations,
and which they have in common with the Crusades, is the propagation of
Christianity. A third that is peculiar to and characteristic of them, is the
idea of the discovery of the world, of itself one of the greatest conceptions,
embracing the human race and the whole earth. It was promoted and fostered by
greed for the spices of India, for the gold of America, and for the pearls of
the unknown seas, as well as by the interests of trade.
It is not necessary to describe
the general participation of our peoples in these events (the Italians at any
rate shared in the discoveries); and it is unnecessary to prove at length that
they are exclusively peculiar to them. Other nations now and again took part in
these movements, but in reality pursued other aims. The unity of a people
cannot be better seen than in a common undertaking; and wherein could the unity
and the cohesion of several nations, like ours, be better demonstrated? The
undertakings to which we have here referred, although continued through many
centuries, are common to them all. They connect both the times and the peoples.
They are, if I may so say, like three great respirations of this unique
confederation
BOOK
I . 1494-1501
CHAPTER I
THE SITUATION IN FRANCE AND IN ITALY - EXPEDITION OF CHARLES VIII TO NAPLES
I.
FRANCE
AND CHARLES VIII
Twice
during the Middle Ages did the Capets conquer France.
They went forth from their dukedom, France, encountered the Eudons
of Blois and the Plantagenets of Anjou, and were once cut off on all sides from
the sea-coast. But Philip Augustus possessed himself of the provinces of North
France, and St. Louis of Provence, whilst Philip the Fair subjected the Pope to
his crown. This is the first conquest: by the direct line of Hugo Capet. After
his line had become extinct, the kingdom was the bone of contention between his
male descendants, the Valois, and the female line, the kings of England. King
Edward III of England once held half France; on another occasion, one of his
successors, Henry V, was in possession of Paris, and even of the crown. It may
be described as a second conquest, when Charles VII of Valois again got the
upper hand of the English. It was the Maid of Orleans who opened him the gate
to victory. She restored to him Champagne; but he owed the recovery of his
capital, as well as Normandy and Guienne, and the
complete mastery over the country, to the Dukes of Burgundy and Brittany.
Yet the
assistance rendered by the great vassals entailed the consequence that the king
was after all not completely sovereign. Louis XI, who was made to feel this (he
had one day to come and implore peace of the armed barons), determined to put
himself into full possession of the sovereign power. He was very suspicious,
very shrewd, and discerning enough besides. Yet these qualities would not have
enabled him to attain his object, had not the Dukes of Berry, Burgundy, Anjou,
and Brittany, as though by a providential intervention, all died without
leaving sons. The first-named, his brother, he succeeded without any
opposition. In the case of the heiress of the second, her husband, Maximilian
of Austria, failed to uphold her claim to Burgundy and the cities on the Somme;
in order to have peace, he was besides obliged to consent to the marriage of
his daughter, Margaret, with the Dauphin, and to assign to the French Artois
and Franche-Comté as her dowry. The third, however, René of Anjou, who styled
himself king of three kingdoms, duke of three duchies, and count of three
counties, might have made over the countries that he actually possessed, and
his rights to the rest, to his grandson, René of Lorraine; but he himself was
not in favour of such a course. He had once hoped to join Lorraine to Anjou;
and only because he had been taken prisoner had he acquiesced in the marriage
of his daughter, of which his grandson was the issue. Should he, then, now go
so far as to allow his hereditary lands to pass to Lorraine? The young prince
would not even agree to exchange his arms of Lorraine for those of Anjou.
Ill-pleased at this, René appointed his nephew Charles, bearing the name and
the arms of Anjou, as his heir. But the latter, who was also not blessed with
issue, seven years later, as the document says, for the sake of God and the
love which he bears King Louis, the son of his father’s sister, assigned to him
the inheritance of all his kingdoms, possessions, and rights, thus the
territories of Provence and Anjou came directly to the Crown.
Historically,
the important point is that the great feudatory lands in the South and East, in
contrast to the neighbouring princes who belonged to the Empire, were limited
with the French Crown. Brittany alone remained; but Louis had already purchased
for his family the rights of the Penthièvre in the country, rights that had
already once partly caused a great English war.
But, in
order to defend this last bulwark of the vassal-power, Louis of Orleans, the
nearest relative of King Charles, who was still a minor, leagued himself with
the Bretons and all the King’s domestic and external foes. At St. Aubin,
however, he lost the day, and was now in captivity at Bourges. Things were now
in this position: the rebellion was checked, but not suppressed; Brittany was,
it is true, conquered, but ready to appeal again to arms, and was besides
allied with the three most powerful neighbours of the French, England, the
Netherlands, and Spain; when Charles attained the age of nineteen years (1491),
and began to take heart, and to be desirous of becoming his own master. He
signalized his assumption of the reins of government by a noble and unexpected
action. One evening he rode off from Plessis to the Tower of Bourges. He went
to release the imprisoned duke, regardless of the fact that the latter had
borne arms against him. He took him away with him. They conversed and laughed
together at table, and slept the night in the same bed. He had well considered
this: “Thus he would be called a good prince, and thus he would have faithful
servants”. And by this act he put an end to the old feud between the barons and
the Crown. Immediately thereafter, Orleans, the Constable, and many notables
combined together, no longer, as was formerly the case, for the public good,
that is, the well-being of the vassals, but to obey and serve the King.
This
opened the way for Charles to effect the conquest of Brittany. Dunois and other
friends of the released Louis went to Orleans, and addressed themselves to
Anne, the heiress of Brittany, who was betrothed to Maximilian, and already
called herself Queen of the Romans. They represented to her that “Since
Maximilian’s first marriage with Mary of Burgundy her country had not enjoyed a
single day’s peace; that its wealth had become the prey of the Germans; and
that a still greater disaster was in store for Brittany, because of the
distance at which it lay”. They brought it about, that Anne came to Charles's
court at Langeais, and signed the document by which,
for the preservation of an eternal alliance and peace between Crown and Duchy,
she assigned to him all her rights in the latter, and he all his to her.
By her
marriage with the King she became Queen of France. The day on which this took
place, and before it was known abroad, it is told how Margaret, hitherto
Charles's affianced bride, was seen walking sadly in the garden at Amboise. She
told her attendant maidens she had dreamt she had lost a very brilliant and
large jewel; and it was certainly a great misfortune for her, when it turned
out that the jewel signified the crown of France. But what cared the Council of
France for this, when it found that it was upon Charles’s marriage, not with
her, but with Anne, that the domestic peace of the realm depended? Personal
obligations retired when the consolidation of the French realm and its unity
was at stake. Nor did the injured neighbours offer any opposition to the
marriage. The renewed idea of the unity of France was even in a certain way
favourable to them. Maximilian concluded peace at Senlis, recovering Artois and
Franche-Comté, together with his daughter. Henry VII, appeased by a sum of
money, returned to England. When, too, King Ferdinand of Spain had received
back Roussillon out of pledge for Charles, mindful, probably, of St. Louis,
would not be burdened with foreign possessions and had thereupon promised
neither to ally his house with Henry, nor with Maximilian, nor yet with Naples,
and in nowise, reserving the rights of the Church, to lend the latter his
support; when the old alliance between Castile and France had been renewed,
king with king, country with country, and man with man; then, and then only did
the French again enjoy perfect peace. It may be said that only now had the
second conquest of the whole land by the Valois been accomplished.
Then did
Charles journey in joy through the villages, which rose out of desolated
places, to the towns, which now once more dared to extend beyond their walls.
During the next thirty years after Louis XI, almost a third of the houses in
the realm were rebuilt, arrangements being made at the same time for internal
traffic. The poor peasant, who in the midst of such great fertility could not
obtain high prices for his produce, could scarcely, it is true, when the
tax-gatherer came, find the money at which he was assessed; yet he needed no
longer, as formerly, in fear either of the English or of armed Frenchmen, to
hurry his goods and chattels into the church, and to leave his village. The King
vouchsafed to him law and right. He himself lived with the nobles in his
service, the heads of the great houses, who had been brought up at court. With
them frequently were associated the second sons of the lower nobility, such as
had neither inherited property nor had wished to enter the Church, and who had
learnt in a more illustrious house than their own, perhaps with a trusty knight
whom they had themselves chosen, or with a captain, to whom they had been
assigned by the King, not the sciences, which they did not esteem, but how to
run, wrestle, throw, ride, and shoot with the bow, in one word, the use of
arms. In them this free chivalry became developed into a regular,
quasi-military service. We find them mainly in the frontier towns, in corps of
thirty, fifty, and a hundred men, under a prince or lord who could afford the
expense, and who, although he received some pay, devoted as a rule his whole
fortune to the service. Each had two archers, a young lad, who was trained up
under him, and a servant. They all went together on the campaign. They were
called Hommes d'Armes. In times of peace one
of them, in honour of his lady, would often institute a prize and invite all
his neighbours to a tournament. Here they preferred to engage in masses rather
than singly. Umpires were chosen, and after dancing in the evening, and mass
the next morning, the prize was awarded. Others wandered through Spain and
Portugal, through England and Scotland, to try the prowess of their neighbours.
They imagined themselves Lancelots or Tristrams with whom they were well acquainted; their king
was to them an Arthur, or the Charlemagne of legend. This intellectual and
vigorous movement gave new life to the French nobility. With them their King
rode from tournament to tournament. To humour them he called his son Roland;
and since they all had inclination for fresh enterprises and he with them, an
expedition to Naples began to be talked of.
Now
Charles had from his youth up both heard and believed that Naples, which
through the adoption of both Joannas had become an
hereditary portion of the House of Anjou, had devolved legally upon him with
Provence. At the time of which we speak, all doubt upon this point was removed
by the will of the younger Joanna, which a Genoese of the name of Calvo, a
servant of the Queen, brought to his court, having found it, as he alleged,
among the papers of his deceased father. Several members of the Parliament and
several doctors of laws appeared before a full assembly of the princes of the
blood royal and notables of the realm, and confirmed its validity. The bastard
of the conqueror of Aragon, who occupied the throne of Naples, was declared an
usurper. Prince Antonello of Salerno, a fugitive from Naples, had for a long
time been the mouth-piece of many other fugitives at the court of France; were
he now to tell the truth, how cruel and detested the Aragonese
was, that would surely move the young King to pity and rouse his hopes. For
some time past, Cardinal Giuliano della Rovere, who
had fled from the Pope and the Aragonese, and who had
still fortresses and adherents in the States of the Church, had also resided at
the court. He likewise urged the young King to undertake an expedition against
Naples. The messengers and letters of Ludovico il Moro, ruler of Milan, decided
the matter. “How long wilt thou” he wrote, “leave the inheritance of thy crown
a booty in a foreign land, and the name of France in contempt? Thy people at
Naples are oppressed and appeal to thee; I will assist thee with money and
arms, with man and horse. Half Italy is with thee, and God himself. Gird
thyself, delay is ever hurtful. And thinkest thou
never, Charles, on thy great forefather, who advised that a war against the
Turks should be begun from this kingdom? Sail from Brindisi to Avlona; and thou wilt crush the Turks, who are at present
engaging in battle against the Hungarians, before they are aware of thy coming.
Thou wilt conquer the Holy lands, where thy forefathers were once triumphant,
and restore Jerusalem itself to Christendom and thy realm. Thou wilt fill the
earth and the sea, yea, and heaven also with thy name.”
What
Charles of Anjou had, in the thirteenth century, undertaken with no small
prospects of success, appeared capable of being carried out by his successor,
who had at his disposal the martial forces of France, and was animated by the
like chivalrous spirit. The crown of Naples, to which the title and right of
Jerusalem belonged, once taken, Charles VIII would by the course of these
events and the stirring of men's minds, as well as by right and power, become
the chosen champion of Christianity against the common foe. André de la Vigne
wrote a poem; in it Christianity came flying across Mont Cenis into the garden
of honour, where she found Charles and his nobles, complained to him of her
sufferings, and renewed the prophecy of a young Charles, who had been crowned
in his thirteenth year, and who would crown her again with everlasting praise.
To the same effect were the visions of the monk Spagnuoli
and the physician Jean Michel. Master Guilloche, of Bordeaux, went still
further: in his twenty-fourth year, Charles would have subjected Naples, and,
in his thirty-third, the whole of Italy; he would then cross the sea, be called
King of Greece, and at last enter Jerusalem, and ascend the Mount of Olives.
The old dreams of Christianity, of an Eastern and a Western potentate, who
should make all the world believers, had not yet been forgotten, those dreams
which the Germans interpreted as applying to the last King of the Romans: after
his victory over the enemies of the faith, he would lay down his crown on
Golgotha before the crucifix there appearing to him, and would die ; whereupon,
with the advent of the Antichrist and Enoch and Elijah, the end of all things
would be accomplished. The Italians referred the prophecy to the King of
France; in Jerusalem he would lay down his crown, and dying, ascend up to
Heaven.
Charles
was susceptible by nature to such ideas. In quite early years, when he was
received in Troyes with the mystery of Goliath and David, he saw therein
typified his war against the Turks; he adopted the title of King of Naples and
Jerusalem, the latter especially appeared to him the fairest omen; and as
though he meant to establish the Latin kingdom in the East, he had all the
rights of the Paleologi to Constantinople and
Trebizond ceded to him. Tidings of the approaching expedition, for which all
France was preparing, reached the Italian courts and cities. The army which
Charles VIII equipped did not consist of his French troops and the Italian
refugees alone, but many comrades from other countries also joined the
expedition. Robert d'Aubigny, the brother of Matthew
Stuart, who had shortly before taken part in the war against James IV of
Scotland, arrived with some Scotch archers. The Hoeks
from the Netherlands, Philip of Ravenstein, who had
just lost Sluys, and Engilbert of Cleves, who had lost Utrecht to Maximilian
brought Flemish gunners and German infantry. The Bailiff of Dijon brought
Rudolph Schwend of Zurich and several thousand Swiss with him. At the foot of
the Pyrenees the Gascons collected in their numbers, whilst horses came from
the coasts of Brittany and from Portugal. Ships were turned out of the
dockyards of Marseilles and Genoa, and mounted guns, which, as was said of the
Charlotte, “sung harmonies out of hell”. The King meantime amused himself in
Lyons. Good and generous towards every one; pious to the extent that only in
trivial matters would he take an oath upon himself, he lived entirely in
youthful dreams of great exploits, and of eternal fame
won in the battlefield. Whenever he busied himself with these plans, his
forehead appeared high, his eye large and fiery, and his brows prominent. But
since he showed himself ignorant of the complications of the world, many
attributed what he resolved and achieved to his servants. In personal
appearance he was thin and malformed, but was at the same time very keen for
all sorts of knightly games and military duties. Sometimes he hunted with his
sparrow-hawk; and then it might happen that he saw a youth exercising himself
in a meadow, who was thereupon brought into his service. He made presents to
the knights, who then again were generous on their side, and took part in the
martial games which were held in the streets; whilst at the corners the women
sat upon benches and stages, exactly like what is told in the knightly tales of
King Arthur at Caerleon.
In Italy,
meanwhile, many made vows and said prayers for his coming; they loved to call
him the most Christian King, and said, “Blessed be he that cometh in the name
of the Lord!”
2.
THE
SITUATION IN ITALY
For about
the last fifty years, two houses, which, owing to intermarriage, were almost
one, had ruled over the greater part of Italy, to wit, that of Sforza at Milan
and that of Aragon at Naples. Alfonso of Aragon and Francesco Sforza had both
simultaneously risen to fame in Italy. The first-named had not been long in
possession of Naples when the latter seized Milan. Since that event their
families had become allied, and spread in manifold affinities throughout Italy.
The Este at Ferrara, the Gonzaga at Mantua, the brothers Bentivoglio, the
princes of Urbino, Pesaro, Forh, almost all the heads
of the States of the Church, and even some Neapolitan barons, were among their
connections. The power of the House of Aragon, which had been founded by
Alfonso I, was shrewdly and rigorously maintained by his natural son, Ferrante.
Once, when the great barons called in John of Anjou, and delivered to him the
whole country, save the capital, the House of Aragon seemed to be lost. At that
time the Queen once found herself compelled to sit with her little children at
the convent of San Piero at Naples with an alms-box before her, and to beg the
labourers to do voluntary work for her, and implore of other citizens a loan.
The dynasty and throne were only saved by the great barons again returning to
their allegiance. The most distinguished of them was Ferrante’s brother-in-law.
Count Marsico of Sanseverino, whom the King in his compact styled the
illustrious, the most powerful, who had saved him from the deepest misery; he
made over to him Salerno, with all the rights of the exchequer and coinage.
Sanseverino’s example was followed by the others, but they did not succeed in
gaining the King’s favour. Of some of his confidantes, who were instrumental in
beginning the rebellion, as, for instance, his brother-in-law, Balzo of Taranto, he ridded himself by force.
King
Ferrante, once more firmly on his throne, thought to secure it mainly by
foreign alliances. His son Alfonso he married to the daughter of Francesco
Sforza; Popes Pius and Sixtus he gained over to him by investing the nephew of
the one with Amalfi, and of the other with Sora. Two men, who were invaluable
to him, were entrusted with the conduct of home affairs, viz. Antonello Petrucci, and Francesco Coppola. The former was his
most intimate counsellor, to whom he was wont to refer everyone. This man was
often obliged to come out to him when on the chase and then return in dust and
dirt to the council in the city; sometimes he had hardly crossed his threshold,
when fresh messengers would summon him back, although it was night. In return
for his services, two of his sons were made counts and another an archbishop.
Petrucci himself, though originally quite poor, was finally able to build
churches and castles.
With the
other, Francesco Coppola, a merchant, the King entered into partnership. By
allowing no one to buy, unless Francesco had already done so, and by permitting
no trading ship to come into port, unless it had previously sold its cargo, as
well as by treating the oil and wine market almost as a monopoly, he increased
his gains to an extraordinary extent. Francesco in a short time was made a
count, and had a private dockyard for his ships. By their advice and his own
perseverance, the King became completely master of the country. The barons were
obliged to maintain his stables. To his falconer he gave an abbey, and to the
son of a Jew, in return for a sum of money, a bishopric. The land was quite
subject to him. He waged the wars of Italy. His power was steadily on the
increase.
Brought
up in the atmosphere of Ferrante's shrewd cunning, his son Alfonso developed
into a totally different character, and one quite peculiar to the Italian
princes of those times. They considered cruelty and licentiousness lawful
things. To appear always in pomp to hunt with hawks and falcons, which bore
their arms in velvet and gold aloft into the air; at home to be seen in
gorgeous apartments, surrounded by savants, musicians, and artists of all
kinds; in public among the people to wear an imperious mien, and to be
decorated with jewels; to be witty and eloquent; to command a goodly troop of
soldiery, to foresee danger and to avert it : this appeared to them to be
glorious and worth living for. There was no trace in them of the good qualities
of human nature. They were unrighteous, and of true princely dignity they knew
nothing; justice they considered bondage.
This ideal, which instead of the strength and
power that it intends, seizes only their shadow and their semblance, Alfonso
followed; and whilst the others wished to be thought generous, he was nothing
less than niggardly. He showed that he considered the wealth of Petrucci and
Coppola to belong to the royal house. Petrucci only shrugged his shoulders when
he heard of it, and tried to pacify the King by making him New Year's gifts.
But Coppola was differently minded. He leagued himself with the most powerful
of the barons, Sanseverino of Salerno, who also felt himself in danger. Alfonso
had been heard to say that Sanseverino looked almost like Balzo
of Taranto. They met together by night in solitary places, devised plans for
their protection, and gained over others also. For all the barons began to fear
Alfonso, as he threatened all who .had not been zealous enough in assisting him
in his military expeditions.
They
therefore allied themselves with Pope Innocent VIII, who would rather have been
possessor of Naples than its feudal lord, and again arrayed themselves in open
war against the House of Aragon. Two princes and a count of the house of
Sanseverino, and two counts and a prince of that of Balzo,
were the leaders. Many others, among them Caracciolo of Melfi, gradually joined
them. They promised one another, with solemn vows, the Sacrament in their
hands, to hold out together. But they were weak and undecided. After the first
unfavourable issue they showed themselves inclined to come to terms; when
fortune favoured them, they again took up arms. Their achievements were
insignificant. When Alfonso had defeated the Pope and had laid siege to the
city of Aquila, which adhered to the baronial party and was their chief hope,
and was at the same time advancing in the kingdom, they forgot their vows,
promised one after the other what was demanded of them, and surrendered.
The Aragonese had now asserted their superiority in a still
more decisive manner than heretofore, and with their own forces. They next,
father and son, resolved to wreak vengeance on their enemies.
Coppola and Petrucci had only taken a very doubtful, and
at the most a very insignificant, part in the war; but they were the first
victims of the peace. Ferrante promised to marry one of his nieces to one of
Coppola’s sons, and to celebrate the marriage in the new castle. Coppola and
Petrucci rode up thither, each on a perfumed mule, and in all gala pomp; but as
soon as they arrived both they and their sons were seized. They were all put to
death. The rest of the barons would have had time to escape on two barks, and
the Princess of Bisignano advised this course; but one was hindered in this way
and another in that, and so remaining they were all taken on a single day, the
six leaders above mentioned and Caracciolo. The people saw their food taken to
them every day into the prison; but when the executioner was seen with the
chain of the Prince of Bisignano, it was believed to have been all deception.
In the church of S. Leonardo, the patron saint of captives, the Duke persuaded
his father to commit the murder, and the executioner, or a slave, a Moor, did
the deed. Ferrante would scarcely listen to the expostulations of the Papal
Nuncio on this matter. “Did not Pope Sixtus do with his rebels what he pleased?
I shall also do the same with mine.” This was the whole of his answer. Having
delivered himself of it, he ordered the horns to be sounded, and rode to the
chase. But what he had devised for his security threatened to become his ruin.
Many had fled to Rome, and now sent messages to Spain and to France to implore
help. In France, Prince Antonello of Salerno, who had escaped from his
clutches, aroused his real enemy. Those who still remained in the country only
waited for the day when they could again take up arms against him. His first care
was to provide that they never should find an opportunity of doing so. Such was
the position of the House of Aragon in Naples. Ludovico il Moro, at Milan, also
owed to them his present position.
After the
eldest son of Francesco Sforza, Galeazzo Maria, Duke of Milan and Lord of
Genoa, had been murdered, his widow, the Duchess Bona, took quiet possession of
his lands and cities in the name of her son, Gian Galeazzo, who was still a
minor. This was very displeasing to Ludovico, Galeazzo's brother, who, when
sitting in the Corte dell' Arengha with the Municipal
Council, had to take his orders from the Castle and the Council of State, and
none the less so to the third brother, Ascanio. But as soon as they agitated
against it they were driven out. It was only the war which Ferrante began at
that time with Florence, with which city Bona was allied, that enabled the
fugitives, with Ferrante's assistance, to show themselves on the frontier, and
to stir up valley after valley in revolt, until they came to Tortona; whereupon, in a single day, forty-seven castles
belonging to the discontents went over to them. The Borromei,
Pusterli, Marliani, and all
the Ghibellines, rose in their favour. The disaftection
spread even to Bona's court. Whilst this confusion was at its height, Ludovico
returned, and took upon himself the conduct of affairs. But the attitude which
he now adopted was quite unexpected. Although supported by the Ghibellines and
in good understanding with the Guelphs, he would neither be dependent upon the
one nor the other, nor consent to see the heads of these families, his rivals,
in power. The Ghibellines, owing to whom the power of the Visconti had been
established in all the cities which Corio without hesitation styles
"ducal", he deprived of their weapons and of their head, his brother
Ascanio; he did not even spare those who had supported him in his flight; nay,
he surrounded himself with Biragi, Terzagi, and Trivulzi, who had
retained their Guelph proclivities through centuries, and to their party he
granted his favour and his castles. Yet this was not done exclusively enough to
gain to his side the whole party: its most distinguished leader, Gian Giacomo
Trivulzio, was forced to seek safety in flight. With the House of Aragon he
entered into the closest dynastic alliance. Of this house came the wife of his
nephew, in whose name he governed. Moreover, he attached Pope Sixtus to his
house by giving to his nephew, Girolamo, Caterina Sforza to wife. He procured
the peace of Bagnolo for the republic of Venice, when
all Italy was against her, by which event he increased her power and made her
well disposed towards him. Upon this alliance he relied: for his power had
originated outside the State. Under this protection he seized step by step the
supreme power within. At first, Bona's favourite merely came into the Council
of State in order to carry some point or other and would say, "Her Serene
Highness the Duchess so and so." On Ludovico's initiative the
twelve-year-old Duke went one day into the castle, had the drawbridge pulled
up, and the favourite made a prisoner. “I will rule myself”, he said, “and my
mother may cultivate her widowhood.”
After
this, Ludovico shared the sovereign power for a time with Eustachio, the
commander of the castle. After the Venetian war, the young Duke helped his
uncle, into whose power he had entirely given himself, to get rid of him also.
Having thus acquired sole authority, Ludovico showed himself kind and affable
towards everyone, and perhaps the use he made of his power caused the way in
which it had been obtained to be forgotten. He provided for the building of
hospitals, the digging of canals, the foundation of churches and monasteries,
and the protection of the country from brigandage and famine.
In
accordance with the taste of the time, he fostered art and science. He summoned
Leonardo da Vinci to Milan to be the instructor of the young nobles, and gave
him a salary. He was the first to have music publicly taught. Jasone de Maino,
in Alciati’s opinion one of the five first jurists of
the Middle Ages, lectured in Pavia upon law to 3900 students. Ludovico also
honoured the grammarians. Demetrius Chalkondylas, who
saw his auditorium in Pisa grow empty owing to Politian’s more brilliant
lectures, repaired with his Florentine wife and his favourite pupil, Johann
Reuchlin, the teacher of the teacher of Germany, to his court. It cannot be
said that the Prince laid out badly the 650,000 ducats which the country gave
him. Bellincioni's pastoral plays and farces, in which the people fancied they
perceived the hand of the Prince himself, enlivened his court, as did also
Gaspare Visconti, who was considered equal to Petrarch. His farm at Vigevene was a masterpiece of rural economy. Here once had
grown not even provender enough for the cattle, and no plant would flourish;
only wild animals made their lairs in the low brushwood. Ludovico, who was
first carried thither in the chase, cut dykes, and thus made meadows for the
cattle, and then, by putting manure upon it, produced tillage land that vied
with any other. This done, he planted mulberry trees in long avenues, and
lastly built spacious and clean stables with columns to hold 1,800 head of
cattle and 14,000 sheep, and others for the stallions and mares. In this castle
a son was born to him; here woods were preserved for the chase and hawking. The
bounteousness of peace rested on the land. Every day saw new fashions and
amusements, jousts and balls. It was of the utmost importance for him, so long
as his rule was tolerated, to maintain the peace and the status quo in Italy,
seeing that, were it disturbed, his ruin might easily ensue.
But the
present conditions depended, before all else, upon Lorenzo de' Medici, the
ruler of Florence, living on friendly terms with the King of Naples and the
Duke of Milan.
Francesco
Sforza, principally owing to the assistance of Cosimo de' Medici, had become
lord of Milan, and, to the vexation of Venice, the Medici and Sforza had since
then been the best of friends. When, after Galeazzo’s death, the
above-mentioned difference in the Sforza family arose, Lorenzo made cause with
Bona; but the Sforza brothers and Ferrante attacked him, and succeeded so well
that he made his resolve, went forth, came to Naples, and entered into
friendship with them. Since then, the King was his nearest ally, and Ludovico
his second; in conjunction with both he sustained a very dangerous conflict
with Ferrara, and eventually aided the King in the second Neapolitan war, which
we have noticed. After it was over, Ferrante said, “I saved him, and he has now
done the same for me”.
Pope
Innocent VIII, who had espoused the cause of the barons and had been defeated,
was at first highly dissatisfied with this arrangement. He even protested in
his private garden at the palace, saying, “He did not recognize Ferrante as
king, even though he called him such”. He exclaimed, “I will put him under ban.
If the Italians will not then assist me, I will cross the mountains, like the
Popes did in the days of old, and appeal to those dwelling on the other side,
and I know I shall stop their feuds and that they will help me.” Lorenzo
undertook to pacify him, and was able to effect this by giving his daughter to
the Pope's son, Franceschetto Cibo, to wife. Hereupon
a thorough change supervened. His old friends, Giuliano della
Rovere and the Colonna, fell into disfavour with Innocent, who inclined to the
Orsini, Lorenzo’s relations and his old enemies. At last the Neapolitan
complications were settled, and the King confessed that in everything he
perceived Lorenzo's faithfulness and goodness. We see how it is that Lorenzo,
owing to his position, became the mediator of Italy; upon this was founded the
subsequent greatness of his house, for, owing to the co-operation of the three,
his son Giovanni was made abbot of Miramondo in the
province of Milan, of Monte Casino in the kingdom of Naples, and a cardinal of
the church. And thus they all lived in peace together; all of them, except the
Pope, in usurped dominions, each menaced by his subjects, and only careful that
the latter did not anywhere find assistance in any neighbour: but each
supporting the other. They were neither nations nor races; neither cities nor kingdoms;
they were the first States in the world, and their origin was as follows.
The
appellation of “State” was originally given to the friends most nearly devoted
to a single family; and we find Foligno de' Medici complaining that their
"State" had decreased, only numbering fifty men instead of a hundred,
and these ill provided with children. The most illustrious members of the
State, who came to Lorenzo with the deputies of the city, in order, as he says,
to entrust to his care the public duties, were not from the country - for this
is called “Dominio” and has not the slightest influence - but they were the
friends, the old State, without which Lorenzo declared it difficult to live in
Florence.
Now, as
the party united with these “nearest friends”, and party was master of the
city, and the city of the land, the name of the original unit became applied to
the whole. Nowhere did real liberty exist. Whence, then, sprang the lively
attraction towards the beautiful, through which this people at this time became
the stimulus and the model for all later peoples; whence came the semblance,
yes, the effect of liberty? It grew mainly from the antagonism of parties, ever
covertly or openly existing, from the vigilance of all human forces engaged in
conflict, from the universal enthusiasm which was devoted to art, active work,
science, and antiquity, and from the reverence in which the savants were
therefore held.
Since the
era of the migration of nations, Italy now for the first time stood
independent, and formed an ideal unity, combined with the greatest variety.
These States, though based upon violence and faction, entertained
notwithstanding the most universal relations. Venice was dependent upon
commerce, Florence upon artistic industry and manufactures, the kingdom of
Naples upon the great European balance of power, which had now found a moment
of rest, the duchy of Milan upon the trade of war as it was followed by the
Condottieri, and the State of the Church upon the idea of the supreme
hierarchy. The nation was at the zenith of its culture. Would it not have been
possible for it to have progressed and developed further in the same way, and
so in later times have itself exercised influence, instead of being subjected
to that of other nations?
But this
retired and singular world was convulsed by a great and violent movement. The
sea is calm, and reflects the sky; then comes a storm: when it is past and
gone, the sea is the same as before. If a movement and a storm comes into the
hearts of men, there will also return a day of calm: but meanwhile the world
has altered.
In the
year 1480 Ferrante had two grand-daughters at his court, who, it might be,
often quarrelled when playing at his feet: Isabella, ten years of age, the
child of his son Alfonso, and Beatrice, aged seven years, his daughter Leonora’s
child by her marriage with Ercole d'Este. At the beginning of his rule Ludovico
betrothed the elder of these two to his nephew, Gian Galeazzo, who would one
day be duke, and himself to the younger. After some time Isabella was taken to
Milan: and while there she was forced to see how the uncle ruled her husband
like a boy, and neither allowed him nor herself the least power; she endured
this, nevertheless. But the time came for Beatrice also to go as a bride to
Milan, and as Ludovico was actually prince, Beatrice and not Isabella was
honoured as princess. Here, then, we see the younger girl in the joy of her
youth, with every wish gratified, full of hopes, sometimes sitting as mistress
at the games and tournaments in Milan, and anon at Genoa, whither she has come
secretly to enjoy herself, so soon as discovered, the recipient of princely
honours amid the gorgeous pomp of the merchants anon driving to her father at
Ferrara with her attendant ladies, with many coaches and mules, the streets
covered with carpets and green boughs, whilst the populace shouts her husband’s
name. The elder, meanwhile, the lawful duchess, has the pain of being bound to
a man who is a mere nobody, and who even repeats to his uncle what she confides
to him; moreover, she has little prospect either for her own future or that of
her children. For Ludovico now declared, that the sovereignty belonged to him,
who was born whilst his father was reigning duke, rather than to the son of one
who was born before, and entered into negotiations to procure his investiture.
A heart perceiving danger threatening its whole house and enduring in silence,
were nothing less than divine. Isabella acted like a mortal in not tolerating
this treatment; at first she complained in Milan, then threatened, and finally
appealed for assistance to her father in Naples. She wrote, "Whilst his
newly-born infant is designed to be Count of Pavla, we and ours are ever held
in contempt, and are even in peril of our lives; and I am like a widow, a
helpless woman. We have courage and understanding, and the people are
favourable and pitying. If thou hast the heart of a father, and love and
generosity, and art touched by tears, then save us”.
“We ought
to help them”, said Alfonso, “even if they were strangers to us.” He consulted
with his old father, and with his grown-up son. He then called upon Ludovico to
crown his noble actions by the most noble of all, and to retire from the
government in favour of his nephew. He received no answer. But in this silence
lay the breach of friendship and peace between them; nay, of the peace of Italy
itself. Alfonso's friends said Ludovico must be content to be podestà in Milan;
they wagered that he would not exist one month longer. But he, on his side, thought
that he possessed the means of securing his rule, and at the same time of
endangering the existence of his enemy.
Now,
Lorenzo de' Medici and Innocent VIII at this time died in quick succession, and
Alfonso as well as Ludovico had to cast about to gain the favour of their
successors. Lorenzo's son, Piero, was heart and soul devoted to the House of
Aragon, from whom, in the great hall at a splendid festival, he had received
his wife, Alfonsina Orsini. But the successor of Pope Innocent was of entirely
opposite feelings.
Amidst
the universal corruption, it was a universal misfortune, and redounded little
to the credit of the human race in general, that, in the retired cells of the
Conclave assembled to elect a Pope, amid high and holy ceremonies, and among
men who had no further wants and no one to provide for, it was not the weal of
Christendom, so sorely in need, that determined the election, nor that of a
nation, no, nor even genuine affections and emotions. The highest dignity in
the Church was regarded as the inheritance of all cardinals; given, because
alas! it was indivisible, to the one who promised the others most. Brother
Albus of Venice, ninety-five years of age, who could scarcely talk any longer,
and always nodded his head, still took 5,000 ducats. He received them from
Rodrigo Borgia (Borja) of Xativa in Valencia, and the
others took similar presents. The revenues he received from three cathedrals
and several monasteries, whose head he was; the income derived from the
vice-chancellorship that he held, as well as numerous connections with foreign
princes, furnished him with the means of making these bribes. Ascanio Sforza
and Giuliano della Rovere still resisted him; but the
former gave up his opposition when Borgia sent to his house four mules laden
with silver, and promised him the vice-chancellorship. The latter would not
receive anything, and kept complaining that the Italians were excluded, but at
last he too gave way. Calamity was expected to result from the election. Sinibaldo de Sinibaldi died of grief occasioned by it. It
is said that a tear was seen in the eye of the old Ferrante, whose rule,
established by so many misdeeds, was threatened with utter ruin by this
election. The great Popes of early days provided, after their lights, for the
Church; the later ones had nephews to provide for; and in these days even sons.
Borgia, who called himself Alexander VI, had three, Juan, and Gioffredo of temporal, and Caesar of spiritual rank, as
well as one married daughter, Lucrezia. Men said, “This man, who when Cardinal,
made his son Duke of Gandia, what will he do now he is Pope?”. The Sforza
gained him over to them by giving Giovanni Sforza, lord of Pesaro, to his
daughter for a husband; he dissolved the marriage with her former husband, whom
he satisfied with money. In the presence of one hundred and fifty Roman ladies,
whom these clerics in frivolous play pelted with sweetmeats served up in more
than a hundred silver dishes, the new betrothal was celebrated. Hereupon the
Pope nominated three Cardinals in the interest of the Sforza. After that, he
endeavoured to divorce King Wladislav of Hungary from Ferrant’'s
daughter, in order that he might wed a Sforza; and, as Ludovico was allied with
all his relations at Ferrara, Mantua, Forh, Pesaro,
and Bologna, and had even gained over Venice, and despatched his envoys and his
letter to Charles VIII, Alexander now entered into a league with him also.
Their plan was to put an army into the field under a joint commander. The Pope
approved Ludovico's proposals that he should invest Charles, and thereupon
invited him to come.
That the
adherents of the Aragon dynasty did not despair in the face of such dangers,
was owing to their reliance upon the tried shrewdness of their old king,
Ferrante. But he now appeared to have lost all pleasure in life. He cared
neither for the chase nor for amusements, and would even scarcely take food. No
one could please him in rendering the small services of everyday life. He was
bowed down by the weight of years and the dread of this third war, by far the
most dangerous of all, as the King of France was taking part in it; and he was
moreover harassed by his barons. It was said that an ancient book had been
found in Taranto, addressed to the King alone and his most intimate adherents.
The people believed that therein was prophesied the destruction of Ferrante's
race and dynasty.
Yet he
did not abandon the cause as lost. He thought of paying tribute to Charles as
his vassal, but his envoys returned with the presents he had sent. He next
thought of securing Alfonso by a Spanish marriage, but King Ferdinand evaded
it. His sole safety he now saw in going to Milan, and taking Isabella back home
with him. But grief and fear, as well as the recollection of what he had done,
broke his heart. In crowded assemblies he was heard to give vent to frequent
and deep sighs; in the midst of a conversation he would utter meaningless
words, which, however, had reference to his danger. In this state he died, two
days after his return to the city, on the 25th January, 1494.
When
Alfonso mounted at once his black steed, and, riding through the streets with a
bold air, received the ovations of the people, there were still some who hoped.
But the tradition goes that many were obliged to join in the acclamations under
the point of drawn swords; and meanwhile the old Queen sat with her
sixteen-year-old daughter Joanna in a dark room. They lamented: “Wisdom is
dead, and light is extinguished. In what plight has he left us behind, and to
whom? All power is gone: the realm is helpless and lost!”. Alfonso came to
them, and said: “I shall uphold the kingdom as well as did my father.” But they
were afraid of his cruelty, and only implored him to spare the people.
Alfonso’s
first care was to gain over Pope Alexander, in which endeavour he was so far
supported by the King of Spain, that he married Maria Enriquez, his uncle’s
daughter, to Juan Borgia. Alfonso promised the latter an estate of 12,000, the
younger son Gioffredo one of 10,000 ducats, in
addition to his daughter Sancia; so that the Borgia were thus received into
relationship with the genuine as well as with the spurious House of Aragon. For
the sake of these great advantages, Alexander forgot his former engagements,
paid no heed to the protestations of the Consistory, and allied himself with
Alfonso. This connection first caused alarm to Cardinal Giuliano. On a former
occasion he had once invited the Pope to Maghano. The
Pope came; but on hearing a chance shot fired, he feared it was a signal meant
for him, and returned without tasting food. Since then Giuliano had banded
himself with the discontents in Ostia. Now, when the Orsini also were
reconciled with the Pope, he sailed with two caravels through the pirate ships
of Villamarino across to France, came into his
legation at Avignon, and leagued himself with Charles. Whereupon the Colonna,
under their own standards, as well as those of Rovere and France, occupied
Ostia, closed the Tiber, cared not that their houses were destroyed, and
awaited the coming of the King.
Alfonso
was crowned on the 8th May. His coronation apparel was valued at more than a
million and a half ducats; yet, amidst all the pomp and splendour, he looked
sad and brooding. On this very day he heard certain tidings of the approaching
French expedition. His silver shield could not gladden his hearty for he needed
an iron one. Yet he did not think of awaiting the
attack, as his father had advised. “Shall I hide”, he said, “like a stag in the
wood?” He received the coronation presents and exacted payment of a whole
year's income from landowners and his tithes; the foals from his studs were
trained for military service, and his ships equipped with newly-invented
bombards; he then had an interview with Alexander at Vicovaro.
In accord with the latter, he resolved to attack Ludovico on two sides, with
his fleet in Genoa, and by land in the territory belonging to Milan. In view of
the operations against Genoa, two exiles. Cardinal Fregoso and Obietto Fiesco, offered their
services. They had been expelled in order that the city might obey Ludovico,
and they now placed their hopes in the King of Naples. He hoped to effect an
entrance into Milan through the instrumentality of the Papal vassals, who were
pledged to obey their suzerain ; the upper hand he hoped to gain through the
Guelphs, whose head, Trivulzio, marched with him ; whilst the complete victory
should be his through the devotion of the people to their own prince, Gian
Galeazzo. In August, 1494, thirty-eight squadrons of horse started from the Abruzzi;
they were to take their way through the Romagna, in order to set free the young
Duke of Milan. Infantry they had none; but they had officers with them to
recruit them. The land army was led by Ferrantino, the son of Alfonso; whilst
the fleet, which put to sea at the same time, was commanded by Federigo,
Alfonso's brother. Thus did the war in Italy break out.
Ludovico
awaited the coming of his enemies, already not without French help; he was to
be aided against the landing of troops, which the Neapolitan fleet had on
board, by Duke Louis of Orleans, who had come to Genoa with a few companies of
Swiss.
At last
the beacon-fires flashed from cape to cape; the enemy was approaching. The Aragonese then effected a landing on the Riviera, and
occupied Rapallo with their troops. But what availed these troops, which were
neither picked nor disciplined, today recruited, and tomorrow dismissed, troops
whose highest aim it was to run about and shout the name of the leader, who had
hired them; what availed they against the Swiss battle array? They could not
hold their position; Aubigny and one of the brothers
Sanseverino from the borders of Ferrara offered resistance to the troops
advancing by land. Ferrantino, at all events, was driven back.
3.
CHARLES
VIII IN ITALY
Whilst
the Italian League, as now constituted, was attacking Milan and Genoa by land
and sea, King Charles was ordering processions to be held, and prayers offered
up in all churches, for the success of his crusade against the Saracens. After
the old custom of French kings, he had the bodies of St. Denis and his
companions brought up into the church from the vaults. On the 29th of August,
1494, he attended mass at Grenoble, took leave of the Queen, and started for
Italy. He had arranged who, in his absence, should govern the kingdom, and who
rule each duchy. He had borrowed 100,000 ducats from the house of Sauli in
Genoa; the chamberlains had arranged his journey, and so, with high
expectations, he proceeded from Briançon over Mont Genevre, down the valley of Cesanne,
and through the valleys of the Waldenses to Turin; mules brought up the baggage
in the rear. At the gates of Turin they were received by Blanche, the lady of
Savoy, seated on her palfrey, and by the young Duke, who, though still a child,
had been taught to express himself in graceful language; for close
relationships and frequent appeals for their decision in disputes touching
wardships, had procured for the French kings the dignity of real suzerains in
Piedmont. To the music of clarions and trumpets, the cavalcade passed through
the streets, where Charlemagne's wondrous exploits were represented in devices.
The Princess gave her ornaments in pledge for a small loan. Philippe de Bresse,
the uncle of the Duke, joined the expedition; with a light heart they marched
upon Asti, on the borders of Milan.
Here
Ludovico met the King. “In Italy”, said he, “we have three great powers. One,
Milan, you have on your side; another, Venice, sits quiet. How should Naples
single-handed oppose him, whose forefathers have conquered us all together?
Only follow me, and I will make you greater than Charlemagne was. We will drive
these Turks out of Constantinople ere we finish. “
But
before they had come up with the enemy, Ludovico took complete possession of
Milan. Gian Galeazzo was sick unto death; but Ludovico had received the
investiture of the dukedom from the Emperor, who had a few months previously
wedded his niece. Now if Galeazzo were to die whilst the French army was in the
country, who should then stand in his way? At Pavia Charles saw the sick man,
whose mother had been his own mother's sister, and who apologized even then for
not having come to meet him, for he was too ill; but he offered him homage on
behalf of himself and his children. A Pavian physician,
who accompanied the King, assured Rucellai that it
was evident he had been poisoned. However, Charles bade him be of good heart,
and taking his chain from his neck, hung it on him. He had scarcely reached
Piacenza, when he heard of the young man's death. Sympathy with the innocent
victim was universal, as was the horror felt of him who was considered to be
the murderer. The King invited the citizens to the funeral and gave presents to
the poor, while Ludovico hurried to Milan, assembled the Council of State, and
proposed the son of the deceased as his successor. “We need a man, not a child”,
the Treasurer Marliano replied. All the members were
of one opinion, that Ludovico must be their duke; they handed him the sceptre,
a garment of cloth of gold was brought and put on him; he then rode,
accompanied by the notables of the city, to Sant Ambrogio, and was there
proclaimed duke by popular acclamation. If Isabella had felt that her letter
had caused her father a most perilous war, and her husband his death, what must
her feelings have been now, when she heard that Ludovico was duke, and her
children were without hope and robbed! The first she had endured, but this
crushed her to the earth.
The King
stood on the borders of the Florentine and Papal territory. At Piacenza two of
the Medici had come to him, Piero's cousins of the younger branch, who, though
more generous, more affable, more endeared to the people, and not less rich
than he, were exiles, because, when at play with Piero, they had quarrelled
with him and evinced French sentiments. They told the King he need only advance
into Tuscany, for he had friends in Florence. Among the old adherents of the
Medici, there were many who were discontented with Piero. His father had once
written to him, “Though thou art my son, thou art all the same no more than a
citizen of Florence, like myself.” But the son of an Orsini, whose brother was
Cardinal, whose father had been the mediator of Italy, and who felt himself
even superior to the latter in point of physical strength, good looks, and
graceful deportment, and, it might be, his superior in classical education, for
he expounded Virgil to his brother, and could improvise cleverly, might easily
forget this warning. Like many others, he forgot, over external show, what was
really deserving of praise. He had no liking for agriculture and commerce, as
his fathers had, but only taste for hunting, hawking, and Tuscan games with
hand and foot, brilliant cavalcades by day, and nightly carouses. He had
himself painted in his armour. In civic business, on the other hand, he
approved what his counsellor, Bibbiena, proposed. It
was not until Charles had crossed the high mountains and had arrived at
Pontremoli, that Piero perceived how little the Florentines were inclined to
support him against the King. “I never dreamt I should come into these straits”,
he wrote; “never have I mistrusted such great friends of this city, but I am
forsaken by all, and have neither money, credit, nor authority, so as to be
able to sustain the war.” This he wrote when already on the road to Pisa to
meet Charles, to deliver himself unconditionally into his hands. Only with the
King’s help was it possible for him to maintain himself in the city. The course
he pursued was not so ill-advised as has been asserted, namely, to grant the
King all he wished, the fortresses of Sarzana, Sarzanella, Pietrasanta, Pisa,
and Leghorn, which command the mountain-road and the coast from the Magra to the mouth of the Arno. He meant by
this means to estrange him from his friends, and to gain him for himself. But
he was far from being sure of this when he learnt that his action was condemned
at home. He hurried back to Florence. In order to maintain his authority, he
massed his troops under Paolo Orsini, and proceeded; it was on the 9th of
November, 1494, a Sunday evening, with an armed retinue to the palace. The
assembled Signori were not in accord. One of them, of the name of Lorini,
ushered in Piero, and refused to give up the key to the bell, with which the
others proposed to call the people together. But the latter had the upper hand.
A Nerli and a Gualterotti, both sprung of families
formerly Medicean to the core, stepped towards Piero,
as he entered, exclaiming, “Alone and unarmed, otherwise he does not enter
here.” Others opened the bell-tower. With Piero had returned Francesco Valori,
who had hitherto been envoy to King Charles, and Avas convinced that he would
not support Piero de' Medici. This man mounted his horse, summoned the people
to liberty, and increased their confidence.
Girolamo
Savonarola had for the last four years preached to the same people: “A king
will come over the mountains, a great king, sent by God to punish evil-doers,
and to regenerate the Church.” This king seemed now to have come. As Piero went
across the square, he saw stones flying about him, and the people at the sound
of the bell running together towards the palace and disarming his myrmidons. He
saw these weapons of slavery, the few that had escaped his control, brandished
for emancipation from his own yoke. Giovanni, his brother, shouted in the
street, “Palle!” (Their watchword was “Bullets”). They endeavoured to rouse
their partisans in the suburb of San Gallo; but no one stirred, and Paolo's
troops were afraid. Thus the Medici, Lorenzo's sons, left Florence without
saving anything; their treasures, their jewels, the cups of sardonyx, the most
precious antiquities, the 3,000 medallions, the manuscripts and books, which it
was their pride to show strangers, the gardens, in which Torrigiano
and Michael Angelo were brought up, all were left to the people to pillage.
They yielded up the power which their fathers had possessed for sixty years,
and fled; they durst not turn their steps to Charles, but crossed the Apennines
to Bologna.
The
advent of him, in whom the prophets foretold a Saviour, and whom people loved
to address as “Holy Crown”, set Pisa free also on the same Sunday. How that
came about is not without uncertainty. One historian has much to say of Simone
Orlando, who exercised great influence upon both people and prince”. On the way
back from mass, or on the way thither, the people of Pisa, young and old,
prostrated themselves before the King, complained to him of the great
oppression which they had suffered for the last eighty-seven years at the hands
of the Florentines, and said that they wished to be free and under his rule.
Hereupon the monarch, who had a tender heart and hated all injustice, at once
threw an inquiring glance at one of his councillors, who accompanied him, his
master of petitions, Jean Rabot, and when the latter had judged that they were
right, and when all his knights showed their sympathy, he nodded to them and
promised to maintain them in good freedom. Hereupon the people shouting “Franza!”
“Libertá!” and “Gioia!” threw the Florentine lion
into the Arno, and expelled the Florentine commander. The chroniclers add that
two strangers had a share in this; a Milanese, on account of certain claims of
the Sforza, called Galeazzo Sanseverino, and a Sienese, for the sake of Tuscan
liberty, named Bartolomeo Sozzini, a teacher of law
at Pisa, who had once for a long time been a prisoner in Florence.
So much
for the story told by the Florentines and French. Since the day of its
enslavement there have been no Pisan annals. Charles intended to wrest this
city from Piero; but as yet he could not know how the latter stood with the
Florentines.
These,
against whom he now advanced, were partly his enemies, for their ruler had
waged war against him, and partly his friends, in that they had expelled this
their ruler. Upon the hills before Signa, with the unprotected plain of the
city before him, negotiations were opened. Since Lucca, which was in nowise
under an obligation to him, had received him with offerings in its best palace,
he now demanded the same of Florence, viz.,
perfect confidence and unconditional surrender to his good-will. The
Florentines appeared ready to accede to his terms, and brought him (on the 17th
of November) the keys of the gates. Youths in French garments bore a baldachin
over his head and conducted him, fully armed, just as he was, past the mystery
of the Annunciation to their cathedral, and to the palaces of the Medici. But
the subsequent negotiations did not proceed so smoothly. Can it be true, as is
said, that Piero Capponi seriously challenged the French inside the city to
fight a battle which his party had not dared to accept outside? Certain it is,
at any rate, that the citizens and the French did not agree well together, that
the King feared treachery, and the town pillage. At last an understanding was
arrived at. The principal point of dispute concerned the House of Medici, whom
the King wished to have restored. However, he only so far attained his point,
that the most rigorous edicts that had been launched against the Medici, their
lives and their house were withdrawn. All else was left for the future. Pisa,
Leghorn, and the fortresses ceded by Piero were to remain in French hands until
the conclusion of the expedition against Naples. The French reserved to
themselves great influence, in respect both of policy and arms. After this had
been ratified, the bells were rung, and “feux de joie”
were kindled in the streets and squares. The king caused messages of peace,
favourable to the renewal of liberty, to be affixed to the walls; he then
prepared to continue his expedition to Rome and Naples. Savonarola came and
warned him to lose no time; God had sent him, of this he was assured, but he
conjured him not to allow the insolence of his soldiery to bring to nought the
accomplishment of his object. Charles VIII, in a kind of manifesto, announced
that he had left his wife, his Dauphin and only son, and his realm; that he was
not come to injure anyone, but to take possession of Naples, which had been assured
both to his forefathers and to himself by twenty-four investitures of Roman
Popes and holy councils, and whose harbours and seaboard afforded him the best
base of operations for attacking the Infidels. He demanded a free passage,
otherwise he would proceed by force.
Florence
having been metamorphosed by his advent, he next advanced against his second
foe. Pope Alexander was thrown into perplexity rather than into fear. He said
to Rudolf of Anhalt, who was at that time in Rome: “This King will demand the
name of emperor, as he does the sovereign power. But assure Maximilian that I
would rather have a sword at my throat than agree to it.” Ferrantino was moving
on the one side towards Rome; he had been long since forsaken by the
Florentines and by the princes of Urbino and Pesaro, and by Caterina Sforza
also, now that he had showed himself incapable of resisting Aubigny.
The people declared they did not desire war with the French; they even showed
themselves hostile to him and barred his way. Without divesting himself of his
armour, he took the Roman road through the Romagna. The Pope seriously believed
that, with the assistance of the Neapolitans, he would be able to withstand the
King of France advancing from Tuscany. He did not listen to the assurances of
the Sforza and their adherents. Charles VIII entered Siena through garlanded
gates; he there proclaimed his ban against those who had been expelled, and
left some soldiers behind him. At Casciano he received the youth of Pisa, who
brought him an offering of roes, hares, and other fruits of the chase. Thus did
Charles VIII arrive within the territory of the Church. Cardinal Perrault
persuaded the inhabitants of Montefiascone to receive the King peacefully; for
such had been the old and real promise of the Pope. As early as the 10th
December he was praying before the relics of Santa Rosa at Viterbo; and there
even an Orsini, whose family was closely allied with Piero and Alfonso,
surrendered to him all his castles and supplies. On all sides, even on the Tiber,
the enemy appeared; Comines narrates, as an undoubted fact that a portion of
the city wall had fallen. Ferrantino, on the other hand, had left Rome on
hearing of the King's superior force. Then the Pope sent his master of the
ceremonies, to escort the King into the city. On the 31st December, 1494, he
made his entrance by torchlight through illuminated streets, amid the ovations
of the people. It could not be Charles's intention to bring about a reformation
of the Church by force, or to seize the imperial power; purposing, as he did,
to attack the enemies of Christianity, he dared not stir up the whole of
Christendom against himself. But if he had Caesar, Alexander's son, as a
hostage in his train, he was assured of the Pope. If he occupied Terracina and Cività Vecchia, the chief harbours from the French to the
Neapolitan coast would be in his hand.
There was
at this time in Alexander's keeping a certain Djem,
the brother of Bajazet, who had fled from the latter to the Christians, but yet
had many adherents among the Turks; a man of resolute principles, who would
only kiss the Pope's arm, and not his feet. Charles, by taking this man with
him, considered himself as good as assured of success against the Turks. Having
obtained these advantages, which were moderate, though important, he said,
standing on the steps of the papal throne, “Holy Father, I have come to make my
obeisance, as my forefathers did.” He was present at the ceremony of the
universal Indulgence, received the blessing, and left Rome on the 28th of
January, 1495.
Now only
Alfonso was left to deal with. Whilst in Rome he had entered into negotiations
with the King through the Pope. He had offered him large sums of money; a
million ducats down and 100,000 ducats annually as a kind of tribute. The
Venetian Republic and the King of Spain were to guarantee the payment. But,
certain of his hereditary right, and filled with his plans against the Turks,
Charles VIII rejected all his overtures. Even then Alfonso did not abandon all
hope. Charles would not, he conceived, be able to advance upon Naples before
the spring; meanwhile he would fortify his frontiers, and succour would arrive.
He expected such aid from the King of Spain, who, on a proposal being made him
for his youngest daughter for Ferrantino, had shown himself inclined to accede
to the request. He had offered, through Ram Escriva, 500 lances, and even a
large army under a grandee, under certain conditions. It was known of Bajazet,
against whom the French expedition was so publicly proclaimed, that he was
fitting out a great number of galleys for sea in Constantinople, and had others
on the stocks, and further that the Anatolian army had received orders to cross
the strait by the first of March, and the Greek army orders to get ready
without delay. His envoy accompanied Alfonso from the army to the capital.
But this
winter was just like spring; no rain fell, and even in Lombardy there was no
snow; the French expedition suffered no hardships, and met with no resistance
anywhere. Aquila surrendered as soon as the French showed themselves. The
Neapolitans began to inquire of one another whence all this success came. Many
said, “It is a secret of God”; others, “Their Latin and Greek made them
cowards.”
Alfonso
himself was at length startled at the universal despondency. And when the
people rose up in tumult - no one knew why - and only Ferrantino’s presence
calmed them, Alfonso perceived that he could not stand his ground, and
remembered the prophecies which had been made about him. He hid himself for
three whole days; the consciousness of his wickedness paralyzed his energies.
But when the people again rose with the cry, “The King is dead, for who has
seen him alive?” and he saw that all was lost as regards himself; feeling that
he was loathed and hated with just cause, but that his son, innocent,
uncontaminated, young, and brave, the darling of the people, would assert
himself, Alfonso renounced the realm. They all wept when Jovianus Pontanus drew up the document. Alfonso bade his son mount a
horse and ride through the city in company with his uncle Federigo. Even then,
the horror did not leave him; the spectres of his innocent victims visited him
by night; upon his conscience lay the warning of his father, after whose death
people believed all was going to destruction: “crime entices thee as with an
alluring face, before thou hast committed it; afterwards, when it is done and a
calamity has happened, it still retains its features; but they are now a
hideous picture; for hairs it has snakes; it is a veritable Medusa’s head.” “We
will away from here”, said Alfonso to his stepmother, and when she desired to
wait a little longer, exclaimed, “I will throw myself from the window. Dost
thou not hear how they all shout the name of the French?”. He tarried no
longer, but fled to Mazzara into a monastery of the Olivetans.
With the
intention not to yield, Ferrantino meanwhile joined his army at the pass of San
Germane. With the same intent, Alfonso Davalos held in front of him Monte San
Giovanni, which was considered impregnable. If they could only hold out for a
while on the frontier, the people might be gained over, they thought, and
succour arrive. But they could not hold their ground. One day, after the midday
meal, Charles arrived from Bauco before San Giovanni
and ordered it to be stormed. He did not require to repeat his order, for one
and all were determined to gain honour in his eyes. On renewing their onslaught
for the third time - for they met with staunch opposition - they gained the
fortress, and spared no one; they showed great cruelty. But Charles was on the
Garigliano. The rapidity and fury of this conquest inspired terror into
Ferrantino's friends and roused the courage of his enemies.
The
citizens of San Germano would resist no more. At Teano one night Messer Renaudo came to Ferrantino: “Sire”, he cried, “away hence,
else you will be delivered over to the enemy by your own camp.” No hope
remained, save in the citizens of Capua and Naples. On the 16th of February,
Ferrantino felt himself sure of the Capuans; he
thereupon hurried to the Neapolitans to gain these over also; he called a
gathering of them in Santa Chiara. “Ye Sirs, my fathers and brethren”, he said,
“do ye know me? Among you I grew up and was reared. Now that all forsake me,
and I have no one I can trust, will ye also forsake me? Not yet! Only not for
fourteen days. If I have then received no help, do as ye list.” He stood before
them in tears; they were silent, for many loved him. “Our lord”, said a
nobleman, “we have neither provisions nor guns.” Ferrantino replied, “There are
the keys of the Castel Nuovo, go and take what you need; there are a year's
supplies for the whole of Naples there.” He was still speaking, when a
messenger came with the tidings that the enemy was attacking Capua; in despair
he rushed away and took the road thither. On his arrival at Aversa, he learnt
that of his three chief captains, Trivulzio had gone over to Charles with his
whole army, which had been kept so long in pay for him. This he did on the very
first day that he had an opportunity of reciprocating this outlay with his
service. The other two had fled, and the citizens, on the 16th, and early on
the 17th, had sent envoys to Charles, who begged for mercy with folded hands.
All the same, it is said, he ventured up to the walls of Capua; but here he was
met by the Germans, who had alone remained faithful to him, Caspar’s and
Gottfried’s companies; they had made a sortie against the enemy on the other
side, but had been deserted by the Italians. They had hardly been permitted to
withdraw through the town in parties of ten men each. It was now evident that
all was lost. Perhaps Ferrantino when he turned round to go back to Naples,
still hoped, for had not his grandfather here resisted all his enemies? But he
found that the nobles, instead of equipping themselves for battle, were
plundering the Jews, and that the populace, when he went into the stables to
give horses to his servants, ran after him and stole them. Now all was over; he
felt that the hatred cherished towards his father and grandfather was now
turned against himself. Full of despair, he drew his sword and turned about
with the words, “What have I done unto your children?” But a faithful servant
led him away to his castle out of the throng, for he would otherwise have been
murdered.
Whilst,
then, Alfonso Davalos held the castle with 400 Germans, whilst the houses round
about, the arsenal and some ships were burning, and whilst the old Queen
lamented, “O fate, no lance has been broken, and thou destroyest
this kingdom!” and all were on shipboard, she, her daughter and the young King,
intending to escape to Ischia, Giacomo Caracciolo, without asking leave, opened
the gate to the French herald, and shouted “Franza!”
Hereupon,
twenty deputies of the Neapolitans advanced to meet Charles, with the words, “Holy
Crown, thou hast been awaited these hundred years in Naples. Now thou art come.
Enter as our King and Lord!”. But Charles, whose success had been so brilliant,
and who now saw this kingdom, like the French duchies, united to his crown,
entered as though into his rightful inheritance. Yet in Capua he had fancied
himself wonderfully reminded of his expedition against the Turks; Djem still lived. It was said that the prestige of the
French had prevented the Bassa of Avlona from
crossing, and had scared away the Turks from many islands; even from Negropont
they were flying to Constantinople. When Grimani with
Venetians passed by Lepanto, they thought it was the French, and retired from
the castle and the shore. The peninsula and the mainland gathered fresh
hope."
CHAPTER II
SPAIN AND THE LEAGUE AT WAR WITH CHARLES VIII
1495-1496
I.
UNITED SPAIN
AT this
time Spain was first heard and spoken of; this country had a short time
previously become consolidated into a united and powerful kingdom out of two
disunited and feeble principalities, Castile and Aragon. With regard to
Castile, the manuscript of Alonso de Palenzia records
that there existed a law of Henry of Trastamara to the effect that, “without
permission of the King of France, no Englishman should go to Castile, nor a
Castilian to England.” Such a disgraceful compact was actually kept by these weak
monarchs. John I relied in battle even more upon the French than upon his
Castilians; John II appeared to many to be almost bewitched by his favourite
Alvaro de Luna; the Portuguese, Pacheco and Giron, after overthrowing Alvaro,
obtained control over Henry IV. Henry, though a huntsman, and an enemy of baths
and wine, but deprived of noble indignation and manly strength by early
profligacy, had scarcely turned away from them not to be his own master, but to
take another favourite when they revolted, and with them all the nobles. They
declared his daughter Juana to be illegitimate, and favoured his brother’s
succession, and, when the latter died, that of his sister Isabella; but she did
not desire to be called queen, and was content that the succession should be
assured to her issue.
Near
kinsmen of this family ruled in Aragon, yet with no better fortune, in spite of
their having inherited from Ferdinand I a crown adjudged him by the three
counties of which Aragon consisted, great estates in Castile, and valid claims
to Naples. These claims Alfonso took over from his son, and succeeded in
establishing them; yet he afterwards gave Naples to his illegitimate son, and
separated it from Aragon. The estates in Castile devolved upon Henry; but at
Olmedo, where he fought against John II, and was defeated, they were lost to
the house, and came into the hands of those Portuguese favourites. Even the
crown was in danger, when John of Aragon, to whom it had passed, was attacked
by his eldest son, and by all the Catalans.
Let
us now picture to ourselves how the union and the consolidation of these
kingdoms was brought about. The same men who had seized the Aragonese
estates had procured for Isabella the succession in Castile. Now, when John’s
enemies were dead and he triumphant, and they began to feel alarmed, Isabella
betrothed herself with the man whom they dreaded most, namely, Ferdinand, the
youngest son of John, and his heir. Seated on a mule, in disguise, Ferdinand
came to Valladolid to celebrate the nuptials; then they did not hesitate to
swear allegiance to Juana, and to offer her hand and realm to the King of
Portugal. This was the origin of the war, a war that was waged on all points
between Fuenterrabia and Gibraltar at the same time:
a war in which Juan Ulloa fought against Rodrigo Ulloa, his brother, Pedro
Zuniga against his father, and the Count of Salinas against his sister; while
the cities, which sided with Aragon, fought against their castles, which
favoured Portugal. But at last Ferdinand and Isabella were victorious at Toro,
and succeeded in ridding the country of the enemy. They founded the convent of
St. Francis at Toledo, and proceeded in two directions to pacify the country
the Queen to the Andalusian cities, and the King to the castles on the Duero.
Against the castles for, as a fact, the country had been pillaged, and all
robbers had sheltered themselves in them he was assisted by the cities and
their Hermandad, who, in order to punish robberies and murders in the streets,
squares, and houses, maintained 2000 horsemen and a proportionate strength of
infantry. They lent their assistance, as though their sole aim was the general
peace, yet their object was also a political one in the interest of Ferdinand.
He wrested the castles from his enemies. Isabella, meanwhile, presided at
tribunals of justice at Seville every Friday, surrounded by bishops and
lawyers, and with clerks before her. But here, where the Duke of Medina Sidonia
and Juan de Cordova were of her party, and the Marquis of Cadiz and Alfonso de
Aguilar against her, and where the enmity of the old Christians, the new
converts, the Jews, and the neighbouring Moors, divided streets and families,
her rigour was ineffectual. She resolved to pardon all offences, save and
except heresy. The latter, with which the judgment hall of the Hermandad was as
incompetent to deal as the Dominican Inquisition, which had been long since
abolished, was reserved for another tribunal.
In
September, 1478, she quitted Seville; on the 1st of November, Sixtus IV, who at
the same time revoked the dispensation granted to the King of Portugal to marry
Juana, gave the Kings (under which title Ferdinand and Isabella were now known)
the right to appoint inquisitors against heretics, apostates, and their
patrons. Unexceptionable accounts testify to the fact, that it was the
representations of Tomas de Torquemada, a prior of the Holy Cross, who declared
that “those who had been converted, went by night into the synagogue, kept the
sabbath and the Jewish Easter, and celebrated, barefooted, the day of
Remembrance”, which primarily caused the institution of this tribunal; a
lamentable fatality, if, as Pulgar states, the Torquemadas
were also originally Jews, and it was thus a quarrel between the converted and
the unconverted Jews which brought the Inquisition upon the people of Castile
and Aragon. But if we remember that the influence of the Jews over the
grandees, due to their farming their revenues, their affluence, and their
relationship to them, conflicted secretly and at all points with the Kings’
interests, that the first order of the Inquisitors threatened the Marquis of
Cadiz, an opponent of the monarchs, in case he sheltered the fugitive Jews, and
that it was a Jewish book against the Government that brought matters to a crisis,
the general connection of events becomes clear. The Inquisition harmonized with
the Hermandad in form for they each had originally two judges and a fiscal as
also mainly in aim; viz. the termination of this war and the consolidation of
the royal power, under the cover of a far wider plan; yet the ecclesiastical
power of the one was far more arbitrary than the civil power of the other.
After some hesitation, Isabella had the Quemadero
erected on the plain before Seville, between the four prophets; the convent of
the Dominicans in the city was soon too small to hold the accused, and 5000
houses in Andalusia were empty. But the people began to obey. As soon as
Pacheco consented to resign a great part of his estates, and the King of
Portugal to renounce his claims, and when everybody surrendered, the civil war
came to a close, and the royal power was at the same time re-established. For
these institutions still continued under the pretence of general policy, and
others were added to them. When the grand masters of two of the Spanish orders
of knighthood had died, and the third was inclined to retire, Ferdinand
undertook to manage all three. In truth a goodly power; for the order of
Santiago alone could put 1000 heavy cavalry into the field; and a schedule of the
fifteenth century ranks its grand masters among the princes and independent
heads of Europe. Further, since the Pope had given way in the matter of some
disputes touching the sees of Saragossa, Cuenca, and
Tarragona, the rule was established that no one could be raised to the rank of
bishop upon whom the King had not previously declared his willingness to confer
this dignity.
Let
us now observe: the Hermandad was modelled on a former independent coalition of
the citizens against the nobles, and it now committed the civic power into the
hands of the King. The grandmasterships, through the
Encomiendas, bound the knights who had received them, as well as all noble
families, out of gratefulness or expectation of future favours, to the King.
The latter, by his Inquisition and the election of bishops, became almost the
head of the clergy. We perceive that it was not so much that Ferdinand and
Isabella extended the royal power handed down to them from their ancestors, as
that they gave it a new basis; they placed themselves at the head of the
Estates who might have resisted them, and who resisted their forefathers, and,
concentrating their powers in their own persons, became their real chiefs. In
all this the Church, by handing over to them the Inquisition and Mayorazgos, and by conceding to them by degrees even the Tercias of the ecclesiastical tithes in perpetuity,
rendered them the greatest service, and they had no more dangerous foes than
the enemies and apostates of the Church of Rome. The traditional liberties
still continued; even in Castile the noble might surrender his fief back into
the King's hand, and retract his allegiance, whilst the citizen might shut his
house against the royal officer; but obedience to duty became established. The
rigorous Isabella, who rode in person after the son of the Admiral Fadrique
Enriquez who had broken her safe-conduct and fled; who had the alcalde, who had killed a royal servant,
hanged on the very spot where he had committed the deed; and who ordered the
hand of the grand alcalde Villenas,
to be cut off merely for not preventing it, soon brought it about that
travellers from Spain spoke of it as one of the wonders of that land, that
there no one dared do wrong, not even the authorities themselves, since it was
immediately punished. And thus Isabella sat amongst the images of the saints in
her chapel, with her escutcheon quartered with a castle, a staff, a lion, and
an eagle, behind her; Cardinals, Archbishops, Bishops, and Orators, on the one
side, and the Constable, Admiral, Dukes, Marquises, and Counts, on the other,
the priests in full canonicals before her, all awaiting her sign. Her policy
aimed at absolute power over an orthodox kingdom.
Now
that the internal disorders had ceased, and the government had been
reorganized, the Kings turned their eyes unceasingly towards the outer world,
Christian as well as infidel, and first towards the latter. According to the
example of their forefathers, Ferdinand the Great and the Saint, the four Alonsos, the Emperor, Ramon, the Noble, and the Eleventh,
who ventured not to wage war with the Moors until they had first been
victorious in a civil war, but who engaged in the former as soon as they had
succeeded in the latter, thus did they, under the standard of the Cross, each
division under a crucifix, as the song goes, invade the plain of Granada. They
swore not to leave it until they had taken the city; they centred the attention
and the obedience of the whole nation upon this point, and at last conquered
it. But as the different kingdoms had always been in the habit of dividing
beforehand what they intended to conquer, and were hardly less jealous of what
they coveted than of what they had already taken, so at the present time they
claimed the African kingdoms of Oran and Tlemcen for
the crown of Aragon, and for Sicily, Tunis and the eastern slope of the Atlas.
These claims were also confirmed by the Pope, and they hoped to push on in an
easterly direction to Egypt, and to come as far as Jerusalem. In the West,
Castile claimed all that had formerly been Mauritania and Tingitana.
This led to a war with Portugal. At last they agreed together, that, with the
exception of Melita and Cagaga, Portugal
should be at liberty to conquer the whole of Fez. But this was of minor
importance. For, when Pope Alexander promised the conquest of the whole of
Africa to the united crowns, those maritime expeditions were endangered, in
which the Portuguese, planting their standard ever further and further afield,
had learnt of an Eastern and Christian monarch, the King of Abyssinia, and by
which they hoped to find this potentate for already a Portuguese had been in
Goa and had discovered the Cape and by his help, proceeding along the coast, to
reach the real India and the land of spices. But, finally, the old treaties
remained valid; the right of navigating to Guinea and the coast downwards was
assigned to the Portuguese, and they were entitled to prevent anyone else from
sailing on this route. But Providence willed that something unexpected should
result from these differences; and what actually happened far surpassed human
calculations.
At
Lisbon there lived two brothers from Genoa, Bartholomew Columbus, who drew maps
for the use of sailors, and Christopher, the elder, who had navigated with
varying fortune the Mediterranean and the Atlantic from the Canaries to
Iceland. These two often discussed together what everyone knew, and became
convinced that the safest plan to discover that land of precious stones,
pearls, and spices, that Sypango of which Marco Polo
had written, a land into which Christianity could be introduced, would be, not
by voyaging along the coast of Africa, but by sailing ever westward, and thus
circumnavigating the globe. But no King, no Duke, and no Signoria, would
believe the brothers. At length the two Kings, in their joy over the victory of
Granada, being at Santa Fé three months later, took
the advice of the same Alonso Quintanilla who had first projected the new
Hermandad, and hazarded this venture. They put three caravels at the disposal
of the elder Columbus, and had them manned for the most part by sailors from
the vicinity of Palos. Tradition goes, that these coast-seamen, after spending
week by week between heaven and water, only gazing upon seaweed and seeing no
land, threatened to murder their captain. The captain the while, working by day
with the lead, and by night keeping his eye intent upon the fixed stars, and
even in his dreams full of visions of success, remained firm of purpose and
managed to curb all opposition; until at last looming clouds inspired hopes,
and in the night a sailor shouted, “light and land”; when day broke, hills,
high trees, and green land were discovered; he shed tears, and falling on his
knees, said the “Te Deum Laudamus.”
They erected on the coast an enormous cross, heard the notes of the first
nightingale, saw the timid good people, and returned to tell their king of the
country they had taken possession of in his name.
The
immediate result of this divine favour and the discovery of Columbus was to
continue the quarrel between Portugal and Castile. The wind drove the returning
party to Lisbon. As soon as the King of Portugal saw that the natives, who had
been brought back, looked like the Indians, as they had been described to him,
and heard from Columbus, that he had there been told of a land called Sybang, he began to be afraid that he had been forestalled.
He requested the Kings to send expeditions, not southwards, but northwards,
according to the old compact. They also believed, as he did, that they had come
to the point where east and west touched; they little knew the size of the
world; they bargained long together, and finally fixed a mark, 370 leagues from
the Canary Islands, to the east of which Portugal should conduct discoveries,
and to the west, Spain. This was quite a
different matter from their quarrel about Fez and Tingitana;
but they still went on in the old fashion.
Such
were the operations of the united kingdoms against the Infidels, and, if the
conquest of Granada was celebrated in all Christian lands with feasting and
games, much more did the report of a new earth and a new race of men ring
throughout Europe. These kingdoms now turned their eyes again towards the
interior of Christendom. The grandees had delivered up those crown estates to
which they could show no legal title, and which were, at the lowest estimate,
computed to be worth nearly thirty million maravedis. Cadiz and the Isla were
recovered from the family of Ponce de Leon, and Roussillon was restored by
France. The time had come, in which the idea of a United Spain for the first
time asserted itself. The Pope initiated the title “Serene Kings of the Spains”, seeing that Northern and Central Spain, Baetica, and a portion of Lusitania had become united, in
the sense in which the title “Catholic King” is said to have been originally
framed.
The
renewed unity of the French kingdom impelled Charles VIII to look towards
Naples, and in the same way the unity of Spain, asserting itself now for the
first time, induced Ferdinand and Isabella to turn their attention thither
also. The rights of the former clashed here with those of the latter.
2.
CONNECTION BETWEEN SPAIN AND ITALY
The
two Sicilies had from time immemorial been the source of strife between the
Spanish and French houses, a strife which began with the death of the last Hohenstaufen,
and had not yet been fought out. It was on the point of being taken up on both
sides by third houses. At first it had been carried on between the Angevins,
who had been called in by the Pope, and the Barcelonese House of Aragon, the
heirs of Conradin, that is, between the Provençals
and the Catalans, who are in reality one race, of the same origin, and speaking
the same language. The former took Naples, the latter Sicily, and ever since
they had been in feud with each other.
Secondly,
this long-standing dispute devolved upon Alfonso I, of the House of Aragon, and
the younger branch of the Angevins. Alfonso with the Catalans was victorious,
and gained possession of Naples. Although before the people he took his stand
upon the new right conferred by his adoption, although this had been revoked,
yet he confessed after the victory that his greatest joy was, that he had
regained what had belonged to his ancestors. Connected with this is the war of
Ferrante with John of Anjou.
Thirdly,
when the rights of the Angevins had at length passed to the crown of France,
the united kingdoms, in opposition to them, felt themselves pledged to protect
the interests of the Catalans. Ferdinand had often been urged by the barons to
make war on Ferrante, but had always answered, “He is my brother-in-law.” But
now if Charles was victorious, he would lose one prospect, viz., the
establishment of his rights, and saw even Sicily threatened. The Kings of Spain
were bound by the treaty of Roussillon, but had never approved the enterprises
of Charles VIII.
While
Charles was making his preparations, they proposed to him an expedition against
Africa with their rights to support him when he was already in the Alps, they
equipped a fleet in Biscay; when he turned against Tuscany, they endeavoured to
rouse Ludovico's ambition by offering him an alliance with their house and the
royal title. Charles arrived at Florence; they then despatched Lorenzo Figueroa
to Venice, in order to arrange an alliance, perhaps without any formal proclamation.
But when the French King was in arms in Rome, and had already occupied the
cities of the Church, they laid hold of a clause in their treaty, “reserving
the rights of the Church” a clause which Charles agreed to, so long as
Alexander was a friend to the Sforza and belonged to his party. Ferdinand was
the first to make it important by helping to win over the Pope. If the Catholic
Kings displayed any care for Christendom as a whole, it was agreeably to their
own interests. Relying on this clause, their envoys, one for Aragon and one for
Castile, betook themselves to the States of the Church, met Charles near Rome,
and, on his refusal to accede to their demand that he should restore the cities
and uphold the treaty, tore up the document embodying it. This cannot be
exactly called faithlessness, but a faithful observance of treaties it
certainly was not. Ferdinand and Isabella then took under their protection
Alexander, whose son had long since fled from the French King, and Ferrantino,
who had betrothed himself with their niece Juana, and had fled with her from
Naples, and promised them certain Neapolitan castles as security for their war
expenses. They were now in a position to form a new league against Charles.
Now
after Charles had left Ludovico il Moro, differences arose between them on
account of some transactions in Tuscany, Rome, and Naples. Sarzana
and Sarzanella, which had been objects of contention
between the Genoese and Florentines until Charles's arrival, Ludovico had
vainly hoped to obtain from the latter for his city. He found fault with the
peace concluded with Alexander, because he himself was not sufficiently
benefited by it. He was vexed on seeing his rebels, the Milanese Trivulzio, and
the Genoese Fregoso and Fiesco taken into Charles's
service at Naples, and in consequence refused to allow French ships to anchor
at Genoa. Meanwhile a danger threatened him nearer home. Duke Louis of Orleans,
upon whom there had devolved, through a legitimate daughter of the House of
Visconti, better claims to Milan than were those which the Sforza deduced from
an illegitimate offspring, was at Asti, as though only waiting for a favourable
opportunity to assert these claims. His servants openly declared that he would
soon be Duke of Milan; and as he was collecting troops, and had at least no
resistance to fear from Charles, Ludovico began to tremble for his own power.
He addressed himself first of all to Maximilian, who had only a short time
previously solemnly conferred upon him the investiture, and who, among all
princes, was almost his nearest relative. Maximilian, too, had received
Alexander's message, and might well be anxious for the imperial dignity. His
envoys throughout Italy also complained when they saw the lilies displayed
instead of the eagle, for the suzerainty belonged to the Emperor. Yet most of
all was he moved by this, and was ever repeating it to the princes of the
Empire: that Charles was threatening Genoa, and Louis Milan, so that urgent
help against them was necessary. But the need of the Venetians was more urgent
than Maximilian’s, and quite as sore as Ludovico’s. They feared for their own
existence, now that Aubigny had penetrated as far as
Forli. They raised money when Charles was in Florence; directly he reached
Rome, without meeting with resistance, they gathered a force of several
thousand light Albanian cavalry, their Stradioti; and
now that he had Naples, and the castles had fallen into his hands, and they had
heard of Louis' plans, they were seized with the utmost fear. One morning they
were sitting together, as was their wont, sixty or seventy in number, in the
Doge’s chamber, when the French ambassador entered. They sat, with their eyes
fixed on the ground, and their heads resting on their hands. No one broke
silence, no one looked at him. The Doge then spoke: “Your master has the
castles of Naples; will he remain our friend?”. The envoy assured them that
such would be the case. What troubled
them was not the destruction of the unity of Italy only, but their own danger.
For we must remember that the claims of Louis of Orleans to Milan might also be
extended to a great part of the Venetian possessions, which had once been in
the power of Gian Galeazzo Visconti, his ancestor, and which had afterwards
been conquered by the Republic. If the one were taken, there was certainly
reason to fear for the rest.
We
see that Maximilian, Ludovico, and Venice were natural allies. It was to
Ferdinand’s advantage to join this league, not by himself, but with his allies
Ferrantino and the Pope. But could Ludovico trust Alexander, who had only
shortly before this broken faith with him? Suarez insisted that it was not his
power, but his name that was wanted. And further, could they receive into the
league Ferrantino, who no longer possessed anything or could afford any
assistance? Yet, all the same, his ambassadors went to Worms and appeared
before the Emperor, praying to be included in the league. At length, on the
20th March, 1495, after frequent negotiations had been carried in secret, even
by night, an understanding was arrived at. Suarez exclaimed, “Charles made the
wound, and we have found its cure.” The Venetians now invited the French
ambassador again. “We have concluded an alliance”, said the Doge, “against the
Turks for the peace of Italy and the security of our possessions.” A hundred nobili were
there, holding their heads high, bold and joyous, for they knew that an army of
more than 50,000 men would take the field against Charles. The ambassador
departed, it is said, surprised and perplexed. On the stairs Spinello, the
Neapolitan envoy, met him with a beaming face and in a fine new dress. Coming
down, he begged the secretary who accompanied him to repeat to him what the
Doge had said. It is Comines of whom this is related; he himself will not
confess to it; he asserts that he knew everything. In the afternoon the envoys
of the allies, to the number of fifty, were conveyed in pleasure barks,
decorated with the arms and ensigns of their respective masters, to the strains
of music and song, through the Grand Canal, between the marble halls on either
side. They passed under the windows of Comines, and the Milanese envoy, at all
events, pretended not to know him. In the evening, torches, cannon and
illuminations proclaimed the new League. Ten days later, Venice had 21,000 men
in the field; on Palm Sunday the League was proclaimed in the countries of the
respective allies. Comines and Louis of Orleans wrote six times within six days
to France that fresh troops were needed. King Charles was informed of the
danger that was approaching.
3.
RETREAT OF CHARLES VIII
It
is both the life and the fortune of the Germano-Latin nations that they never
become united. These negotiations and these preparations, with which the real
struggle of the Spaniards and French began, were the beginning of a
far-reaching and long-lasting division, which completely altered the face and
form of Europe. In the first instance, if Charles’s expedition threatened
danger to the Turks, they were certainly advantageous to the latter.
Djem was now dead. An instruction of
Alexander to his Turkish ambassador and letters of Bajazet to the Pope are
extant, of perfectly horrible contents. The Pope is asked to “raise Djem from the troubles of this world into another, where he
might enjoy greater repose; in return for which he, Sultan Bajazet Chan, would
pay him 300,000 ducats.” And it is well that we have reason to doubt the
genuineness of the documents. Djem, however, actually
died suddenly; and whilst the Christian writers speak of poison, the Turkish
annals contain this passage: “Mustapha Bey killed Djem
with the help of the Pope.” Little blame is due to Charles for not having
actually embarked on the expedition he had intended to make, and on which he
had already despatched the Archbishop of Durazzo and the Despots of the Morea.
He would gladly have concluded a treaty with Ferrantino. Federigo, too, before
the League was formed, came once more, found the King sitting under an olive
tree near the new castle, and begged a territory for Ferrantino, and the title
of King; but Charles cautiously answered, “Not here, but in France”; and
thereupon they separated. He contented himself with bringing nobles, citizens
and people of Naples into peace and harmony. All the barons came to pay
allegiance to him, and received back their estates, which they had lost through
the Aragonese kings. With the exception of a few, who
still held out, all cities sent their syndics with the keys, and received marks
of favour: Taranto, for instance, permission to select its syndic from among
the middle class of citizens, the Onorati, and the Neapolitans a like
permission to choose an Eletto with a
council of twelve from their midst. He remitted to the propertied classes
200,000 ducats of their annual dues, and to those who had nothing he promised
12,000 ducats as an annual present. He fed the poorest on Maundy Thursday, and
when he visited the wonders of the land the grotto of Posilippo,
which he was told had been artificially made by Virgil, the wondrous springs,
the chasms in the earth, full of hot wind and gazed on the fatness of the land
in spring : when he sat at the tournament, and saw how French and Italians
tilted in the ring together, and how the Princess of Melfi rode as straight as
a knight on her horse, the red and white feathers waving from her hat, her hair
floating in dainty tresses about her ruff and her knightly tunic of green
brocade; amid such amusements and occupations he undoubtedly felt contented and
happy. With satisfaction he noted in his letters the restoration of good order
and justice in the land hitherto so oppressed, and the homage paid him on all
sides in consequence. They evinced the feeling that he had happily accomplished
a great undertaking. In the midst of these pleasures, the news of the League
and its preparations reached him. The restoration of Roussillon and Artois had,
after all, been in vain. How could the powerful foes in his rear at Milan,
Venice, and Rome have permitted a Turkish campaign? In order not to be cut off
from France, he must of necessity return thither. Once more he entered the
city, with a crown on his head and an orb in his hand, to make and to receive
the vow. The citizens lifted up their sons of five, ten, and twelve years of
age to him, in order that he should dub them knights. He appointed Bourbon,
Duke of Montpensier, viceroy, lord, and commander of the kingdom, took one half
of his troops with him, and returned on the road by which he had come. He
hurried, in order not to be overtaken by the heat.
The
Pope fled before him from Rome to a fortress; those who are well-informed
assert that Charles would otherwise have taken further steps against him. At
Siena he heard the complaints of the Riformatori
against the Nove these were the
factions of the city and took the part of the complainers, who called him their
king and lord. He left a garrison behind him there. On the first day of his
arrival at Pisa, the children greeted him, all dressed in white silk,
embroidered with lilies; and, on the next day, the men they desired to be his
subjects; on the third, the ladies and citizens' wives, but these barefooted
and in mourning, praying that he would see fit to take them under his
protection. These good people had scarcely a piece of fine cloth left in their
shops that they did not give to the commanders of the army. Particularly they
gained over the Swiss, who appeared before the King at the play with their axes
over their shoulders, and begged him to guarantee the freedom of the city.
Charles so far agreed as to say that he would act so that everyone should be
contented. And there he stood again at the foot of the Apennines, where the Bardonian Alp from the Magra
across to the Taro a pass which even the Longobards
thought it worthwhile to fortify with castles and strongholds separates Tuscany
from Lombardy. In Naples the League had been ridiculed in a comedy; and as yet
Charles had seen no enemy, nor feared any. But Savonarola had told him that the
God who had brought him in would surely lead him out; nevertheless, because he
had not ameliorated the condition of his Church, he would be scourged.
The
League had actually already occupied Naples, which he had only just quitted, as
well as the territory of Milan which lay before him. In Naples there appeared
under Gonzalvo de Aguilar, Ferdinand's Biscayans, Galicians, and horsemen.
Gaeta revolted, and Ferrantino pushed forward into Calabria. This first attack
was repulsed by the French, who took Gaeta, not even sparing those who clutched
the crucifix for their protection, and drove Ferrantino back. Only one
Neapolitan, Juan de Altavilla, comported himself bravely. Seeing the King fall
with his horse, he dismounted, gave him up his own, and by a soldier's death
gained the eternal glory of fidelity. All the rest fled. But now Otranto, of
its own accord, raised the Aragonese cry of “Fierro”:
and in Naples, when two persons met in the street, they asked, “Brother, when
comes the Sponsor?”, meaning Ferrantino. The decisive issue was expected in a
short time. On the 4th of July the beacons of Capri announced that he was
really coming. Lombardy was in great commotion on both sides. The Duke of
Orleans, immediately on the outbreak of hostilities, took the field forthwith
with his lances, Gascons, and Swiss, which were sent to the King's assistance.
He was invited to go to Milan and Pavla, for the new taxes that Ludovico had
imposed for the purposes of the war had excited the populace. Following the two
Opizi, he had been received in Novara and proclaimed
Duke. Immediately on the receipt of this news, Ludovico betook himself to the
Venetian envoy, to entreat his good services with the Republic, he pressed a
valuable emerald into his hand. He himself collected all his energies to rid
himself of the enemy. Venice bestirred herself in real earnest. In spite of her
strong army in the field, she issued orders throughout the province that one
man of every family should equip himself for active service. The allies at once
invested Novara, and intercepted Charles's retreat. It was improbable that he would
advance by way of Bologna; yet there also they prepared to meet him. He must
either take the road from Parma or from Genoa. Early in June, a strong force
was in position in the Parmese Mountains; and
Ludovico wrote to Genoa, “We are ready; get ready also.” On receipt of this
message, Conradin Stanga made every preparation for resistance. If Charles took
the road by the Riviera, Louis of Orleans would be isolated; but, on the other
hand, did he take his old road across the mountains, he would be obliged to
forego all hopes of conquering Genoa, his fief, which Ludovico had now
forfeited. He chose the more difficult of the two; he chose to march across the
mountains, whilst Fregoso, Giuliano, and Philippe de Bresse made an attack upon
Genoa. On his road he was continually reminded that he had Swiss with him.
These troops had always caused him much trouble. At the very outset, on the
expedition to Naples, their sack of Rapallo roused almost the whole of Genoa to
arms against them. At Siena their bad discipline again made itself felt. At
Rome it was within an ace that an open battle took place between them and the
Spaniards; and in Naples, on one occasion, the shops had to be closed in
consequence of their tumultuous behaviour. And now, on the retreat, they fell
upon the city of Pontremoli with pillage and murder, in spite of the assurances
of the commanders to the contrary, because they thought that they had something
still to avenge from their previous march through. Their exuberance of health
and physical strength incited them to take disproportionate vengeance for every
little insult. The same exuberance of health and vigour, however, rendered them
amenable to every good impression. In the same way as they had formerly offered
to forego the pay for which they had undertaken to serve, on condition that
Charles would promise to guarantee the liberty of Pisa, so now they soon
regretted having destroyed supplies that were urgently needed, and presented
themselves before the King saying, that if he would forgive them they would
harness themselves to the cannon which he was at a loss how to transport across
the mountains. A brave knight of the King's retinue, of the name of La Tremouille, undertook to lead them. He once, while still a
boy, when Louis XI was fighting with the barons, had, in childish earnestness,
taken the side of the King, and in his early youth he had ridden away from his
parents to serve King Charles. He now threw off his upper garments; and when
the Swiss, in gangs of one hundred to two hundred men, attached themselves to a
cannon, and, pulling all together, dragged it forward a distance, then to be
relieved by a fresh relay, he would himself lend a hand, and address them with
words of encouragement. He had trumpets and clarions sounded until they were
over the summit and down at the bottom of the precipitous incline, where men
and horses rested. He then appeared, black from the intense heat of the sun,
before the King, who said, “You have done as Hannibal did; I will so reward you
that others also shall gladly serve me.”
With
difficulty they made their way from the source of the Magra,
which flows to the one sea, to hard by the springs of
the Taro, which flows to the other. At length the last summit was gained. There
they saw before them Lombardy, covered with ripe waving corn and fruit and
vines, dotted with smiling villages, and intersected with streams. But in the
foreground, not far from the foot of the range, they descried countless tents
and the standards of Venice and Milan an army of nearly 40,000 men.
Nevertheless, unmolested they pursued their way down, and on the 5th July the
King took his repast at Fornovo.
He
was resolved not to make terms, but to accept battle. On both sides of the Taro
the valley of Vergerra broadens out down towards the
Po, surrounded by hills. On the right bank, the Lombards had taken up their
position. What can have been the reason that they did not occupy both banks,
and so directly face the enemy? Their main desire was to protect the Milanese
territory and Parma, which was always in a state of sedition, against attack;
Ludovico himself was strongly opposed to a battle. They were drawn up in nine
divisions and 140 squadrons; for their custom in battle, as in more serious
tournaments, was as follows: the greater number remained in camp and looked on,
whilst the divisions one after another successively attacked, fought, and
relieved each other. Although under arms, they allowed Charles’s army to occupy
the left bank of the shallow river. Forthwith the 3,000 Swiss kissed the earth,
placed themselves with Engilbert’s Germans and the King’s gigantic arquebusiers
in the vanguard, and advanced against the enemy. The rearguard and the “Bataille”,
with the great standard surrounding the King, consisted of the hommes d'armes. The latter made the sign of the cross on their
foreheads and thirsted for the fray. The King sat on his one-eyed black
charger, Savoye, a magnificent animal; the colours of France and Brittany waved
in the plume of his helmet; the crosses of Jerusalem adorned his coat of mail;
his forehead, his eyes, and his whole visage wore a martial aspect. He spoke: “What
say ye, sirs? Will ye live and die with me? Be not afraid, though they are ten
times our numbers. God has led us hither, and he will lead us home.” Whilst he
was creating new knights, some shots were fired, and three divisions of the
enemy, in a storm of rain, dashed across the river; the Milanese against the
vanguard. When the Milanese saw the lowered spears of the Germans and Swiss,
they hesitated to attack. The Venetians under Gonzaga, mounted upon great
horses clad in mail, even better harnessed than the French, were in splendid
array. The Stradioti, who were appointed to fall upon
the flank of the royal army, shouted “Marco Victoria!”. An actual collision
took place only between the regular cavalry of the Venetians and that of the
French. When the first advanced to the charge, the French sentinels cried, “Voilà
l'ennemi!”, and the King was urged to hasten into
battle. He drew the centre and the rearguard together, faced about, came close
to the enemy, and met his first onslaught. The attack was directed against his
right wing, and was dangerous so long as lances were being used, for those of
the Italians were longer. As soon as swords were resorted to, the left wing of
the King’s army, the twenty shields under the standard of Aymar de Prie, the noblemen of his house, and some valiant Germans,
fell upon Gonzaga's flank, which tapered off to a thin end, and afforded no
broad front, as was their habit. When at length the Milanese, who had lost
courage, were broken and hurried down the banks with drawn swords, Gonzaga
himself retired towards the river. A hand-to-hand scuffle took place, in which
even the French baggage boys surrounded the cuirassiers, four or five round
each, and with their mattocks drove holes through their armour. But an Italian
troop charged once again, and penetrated as far as the King, who, however,
escaped through his own gallantry, and by the aid of his horse. The advantage
undoubtedly remained with the royal army; but it was not decisive. Pitigliano,
who escaped from French captivity, and rode back into the Italian camp, kept
shouting, “You have conquered”, until they halted; and, as the French saw many
lances held aloft, they did not venture to follow up their victory. The Taro
flowed with blood. Trivulzio had a bottle of water fetched from it for his
little son, who was thirsty, as though it were red wine. The boy said, “How
salt this wine is!” “My son”, answered his father, “there is no other in this
country.”
The
French had repulsed an attack that was never very seriously meant. They had not
gained any real victory, but they were enabled to continue their march. The
battle took place on the 6th July ; on the 7th, before daybreak, when mass had
been said and while the watch-fires were still burning, the King arose, without
sound of trumpet or war-cry, and took a road, along which all the fortresses
were occupied and their gates shut against him, so that his knights often came
with a handful of hay for they had not more wherewith to feed their horses and
the army marched from early morn until late at night, ofttimes so thirsty, that
wherever there was a pond or a pool they jumped in up to their waists. Along
the whole line of march they left fresh graves behind them. During the same
days two other decisive events took place.
On
the 6th July, Giuliano advanced towards the French into the plain of Santo
Spirito, to attack Genoa. The Spinola and Adorni made a sortie, which was
repulsed; but on the 7th the Genoese assaulted Rapallo, which was in the
occupation of the French, and made a simultaneous attack upon their ships in
the bay both with good success, so that Giuliano lost courage, drew off from
Genoa, and took the road upon which the King had proceeded. The most important
event of all took place at Naples. On the 6th July, Ferrantino appeared with
sixty-nine sail in the Gulf of Naples; though he showed himself neither
resolute nor quick. But, on the morning of the 7th, as he was sailing past
Naples from Torre, as if bound for Pozzuoli, he suddenly heard from within
tumultuous cries, stopped, and approached. He saw the flag of Aragon flying
upon the bell-tower of Carmelo; and then heard the loud pealing of bells. Then
a bark shot towards him, whence came shouts of “Lord King, the city is yours.”
A certain Merculiano, so Jovius narrates, the
previous day crept stealthily in from the fleet and assembled his friends. When
they were about to lay hands on him, the tumult burst forth someone having
produced an Aragonese flag from under his coat;
hereupon general shouting, waving of flags, and ringing of bells. Some ran to
the Maddalena, where the King had alighted, fell at his feet, and brought him a
horse. He rode to the gates between Alonso Pescara and his private secretary Chariteo, who was making Provencal poems the while. The
whole populace came out of their houses. They caught hold of his sword, and did
not heed being wounded so long as they could kiss his hand or his coat; and
ever and anon they shouted “Fierro” so loudly, that he turned to Chariteo and quoted from Juvenal, “It is iron, that they
love.” So they came into the city, whence the French were fleeing and were
being robbed or slain. Gaetans were seen with a
Frenchman’s heart between their teeth. Jean Rabot, who lived in luxury and
opulence, scarcely saved the most indispensable clothing of his household. But
the people kissed the King's feet, the ladies wiped the sweat from his brow,
and maidens threw garlands in his way; all cried, “Long live our true sovereign”.
At the same time the Venetians fell upon Monopoli and took it, and Federigo
captured the city, court, and castle of Trani, and threw its captain, who
defended himself with only eight others, into the hold of his galley. In the
whole kingdom the Aragonese party was astir and
doing. After these events, having at last arrived at Asti across the dyke of Tortona, Charles could no longer dream of conquering he
must confine himself to rescuing the Duke of Orleans, who had meantime been
shut in Novara, and was in great distress.
By
permission of Maximilian, Friedrich Cappeler von Pfirt and Georg von Wolkenstein had brought 10,000 Germans,
probably Tyrolese and Swabians, across the Alps; and these, after having been
reviewed by Ludovico and his wife, lay with the Venetians in one camp, living
in tents full of abundance (there being before the door of almost each one a
spring of water), well paid and contented. In order to procure suitable troops
for the French, wherewith to oppose this force, the Bailiff of Dijon repaired
to Switzerland. On the 24th of August he was seen with large ships, with music,
drums, and joyous cries, sailing up the lake towards Lucerne from the Forest
cantons, where he had been well received. In Lucerne he feasted daily with his
friends, was lavish with his money, and was regarded as a prince. The latest
decrees prohibiting foreign expeditions were not heeded. Where the magistracy
insisted on their observance, the young men climbed over the walls. Where it
was permitted, flags were flown from the gates and the fountains. Even old men,
who had seen Duke Charles at Nancy, joined the bands. And so they marched,
troop by troop, from Martinach, across the mountains,
and down to Ivrea. On the 7th of September, the first detachment, all grand,
martial fellows, appeared before the King in Moncagliere.
And none too soon; for Duke Louis in Novara, who, although suffering from
intermittent fever, was yet obliged to visit the guard every day, and his brave
companion-in-arms, ill from bread made of hand-ground coarse meal from unripe
corn, signalled their great distress by lowering and raising their torches
three times every night on the highest towers. Even this flour was exhausted,
and in the streets there were dead and dying to be seen. Charles now despatched
some Swiss to Provence, to cross thence to Naples; but the greater part of them
he kept in his camp at Vercelli. Their numbers increased daily, and made the
enemy fear for the result of a battle, and therefore more inclined to make
terms. An arrangement between Charles VIII and Ludovico had been already
mooted. The first opportunity for the opening of overtures was made by the
death of the Marchioness of Montferrat, when Charles, on the occasion of
settling her inheritance, sent a message to Gonzaga, expressing his sympathy.
This led to the envoys of both parties incidentally talking of peace. At first,
heralds went over, and concluded a truce, by virtue of which the Duke of
Orleans was permitted to leave Novara, and received food for his troops.
Hereupon negotiations were opened as to the peace itself. There sat in Ludovico’s
chamber, himself, his wife, and the envoys of the League, on one side of the
table, and on the other the French; at the end were two secretaries for the two
parties and the two languages, and the negotiations were carried on between
them. Frequently, when one, two, or three Frenchmen all began talking at once,
Ludovico interrupted them with “Ho, ho! one at a
time”; and thereupon himself carried on the conversation. He brought it about,
that at the expiration of fourteen days, on the 6th of October, all parties
were agreed. He promised to support the French from Genoa, as a fief of
Charles, against Naples, as soon as his country belonged entirely to him again.
Upon these conditions peace was concluded. Early on the morning of the loth,
the Venetians burnt their camp, and marched away. How could it, as Bembo says
was the case, have been so disagreeable to them, when the danger that they had
dreaded was removed, and the expense that they so unwillingly bore was at an
end? The treaty moreover was concluded under their very eyes. The Duke of
Orleans, a part of the French nobility the numbers of his adherents are
reckoned at about 800 lances and the Swiss, who had joined the expedition in
order to enrich themselves, submitted but unwillingly to the arrangement. But
Charles VIII kept saying, “I have sworn to it, and I will keep it.” His
attention was to pacify Upper Italy, in order to save Naples for himself.
He now
came to Lyons, and paid his vow in St. Denis; he found France just as he had
left it; but in Italy the effect of the impulse he had given continued to be
felt. Scarcely ever has a military expedition been undertaken, which, after
such a brilliant beginning, resulted in fewer immediate consequences, and which
was yet indirectly of the greatest influence upon the world. The expedition of
Charles VIII may be regarded as the last enterprise undertaken in the
chivalrous spirit of the Crusades. This spirit now disappeared. But from this
expedition sprang that great rivalry between the Spanish and French monarchies
which from this time forth filled the world, whilst Italy was at the same time
torn to pieces. The ideal unity of the peninsula, which we have traced above,
has never been re-established. Italy became the battlefield of neighbouring
nations, and the sovereignty over it the prize for which they continuously
strove. Even among the Germans the Imperial journeys to Rome, which appeared to
have been almost forgotten, were again discussed.
4.
WAR IN NAPLES, 1495-1496
In
Naples the war still continued. Its object was the possession of the city. This
was gained by the favour of the populace, who drove the enemy into their
castles, paid 500 men for their King, each placing as much as he could give
into a collection box, and even marched against the Swiss at Sarno, and
repulsed them. It succeeded further, because the enemy in their castles
despaired of all help. After the peace of Novara, two Genoese ships arrived,
and the French hoped that Ludovico had sent them to their assistance. But
Ludovico had never intended any such thing. When the Venetians called out to
the Genoese sailors, “Chi vive?”, the latter replied,
“San Giorgio e Fierro! Fierro!”. Hereupon in the city, trumpets, flying flags,
and congratulations on the part of the officers of the galleys; in the castles,
sheer despair. The castles surrendered. Capua, Nola, and the greater part of
the west coast, followed their example; and the Colonna going over, Aquila and
a part of the Abruzzi did the same.
Gonzalvo
had also advanced from Reggio. The whole southern tableland of Calabria, La
Sila (which was conquered by the ambushes, stratagems, and surprises his
soldiers had learnt in the similar country of the Alpujarras)
in a northerly direction as far as the foot of the mountain range, where a
steep road, in winter quite impracticable, hewn in the solid rock, leads from Rotigliano to the Cosentine
villages all this, together with the places lying on both sides, he had taken
either by force or faction. Here he stopped. It was now December. In spite of
their sudden change of feeling, it is not quite correct to complain of the
inconstancy of this people. Whenever a party which has inherited its
allegiance, and which has seen itself the victim of sudden oppression, becomes
roused at the first opportunity, this must be called obstinacy rather than
inconstancy. We will suppose two almost equal parties, united not only by
disposition, but also by property; for the one has often lost its goods to the
other, or wrested them from it in return. In their case, a successful campaign
and battle won, or favourable tidings, may help up the one, whilst a chance
accident, and the crime of an individual, may oppress and dishearten the other;
so that, in order not to subject itself, but to await another opportunity, it
hastens to secure itself on this occasion as far as possible by making terms.
No one will accuse the English of natural cowardice, but in those days they
acted in the same manner, and for the same identical reasons. Where
relationships are sundered by disunion, by an enmity which only aims at the
recognition of a privilege, or a superiority of the one and not the complete
destruction of the other, in proportion as hatred is weakened, martial ardour
is diminished. Often, when they had already taken the field in order to fight,
the Aragonese thought of the losses of their Angevin
relatives, would not engage, and were considered cowardly. Under such
circumstances, the war could not be brought to a close in a moment.
From
the west he turned eastwards across the hills. Here there stretches away the
plain of Apulia, arid in spite of a few rivers, on which, at all events in
those days, not a single tree grew, and where fennel stalks served as fuel.
Upon this plain there was no village, but at harvest time the respective owners
of the soil came from their towns and castles with waggons and oxen, remained
all night in the open, and only returned when they had finished their work. At
times, there grazed upon the royal meads of Tavoliera,
eighty miles in extent, a strange herd of cattle. For towards the winter there
came down from the Abruzzian mountains, passing by Serra Capriola, several
hundred thousand sheep, goats, and oxen, which remained there until the early
spring, when they returned to the fresh herbage of their hills. In those days
they paid considerable duties to the revenue authorities in Foggia the King's
best source of revenue, as they once were of the Roman Republic, bringing in
100,000 ducats. In order to collect this revenue both Ferrantino and
Montpensier hurried across the plain in February, 1496, the former towards
Foggia, the latter towards San Severo. In the little guerilla warfare which
they began there a marvellous deed is recorded. About 700 of Ferrantino’s
Germans, who had taken the road from Troja to Foggia, were suddenly surrounded
and attacked by several thousand French. At once forming a ring, they beat off
the enemy with their muskets; and then, for they wished to proceed on their
way, they opened their ranks, and 200 of them dashed ahead to clear the road.
But their captain, Hederlin, fell; they bound his
corpse on a horse, took it in their midst, and pushed forward. They would then
have remained unharmed, had they not had to cross a river. In so doing they
divided their forces, which made it easy for the enemy to attack them. Over the
whole plain of Massaria, and along the road, lay the
bodies, just as life and blood had left them. They all died. Italians and
Spaniards have sung their praises once or twice since then; but never a German.
This deed is remarkable not for its success, but for the prowess displayed. Yet
Ferrantino immediately after had the advantage again. He had pledged five
places in Apulia, the best situated in the country, to the Signoria of Venice
for their war expenses, and pledging was almost tantamount to selling. The Stradioti, who in return for this transaction joined him,
even took the cattle away from the French, which were being driven for them to
San Severo. Here, there, and everywhere, always attacking and never awaiting
the enemy's attack, they made the King master of the plain, so that both
Ludovico in the west and Venice in the east aided Ferrantino to victory; yet
the Republic afforded by far the greatest assistance. In the south, Gonzalvo,
as early as February, had mounted up to the Cosentine
villages on the hills, had subjected Cosenza, except its castle, and all the
fortresses of the valley of the Crati, whether they
would or no, as well as the whole mountain chain as far as the second passes,
where it slopes down from Castrovillari to Campo Tenese,
and had instituted everywhere Aragonese judges.
The
Colonna had possession of the Abruzzi in the north, the western and eastern
slope of the hills were Aragonese; and so the French
were obliged to pass through their midst into the province of Molise, although
they were disunited, without money, and ignorant of hill-warfare. Ferrantino
immediately went in search of them there. At Morcone
they both again faced each other; at Frangete only a
ditch parted them. A collision appeared to be inevitable. At Naples,
processions were held for two days, because the King would have to fight at
Benevento. In Calabria, too, he was not quite safe. At Laino were gathered the
barons who had fled before Gonzalvo, and who now cherished the plan of joining Aubigny, who was still at Tropea, in order with united
forces to relieve Cosenza. Before they could make up their minds, Gonzalvo
sallied forth at night, seized the passes, occupied the bridge between the town
and castle of Laino, possessed himself of both, and took fourteen barons and
many knights prisoners. Whilst he was coming up from the south, Ferrantino
drove the enemy before him from the north, by way of Ariano and Gesualdo, from
place to place, until he caught them up at Atella. Here he occupied the hills,
covered with woods and vineyards, which surround the valley on three sides. He
only left the road from Venosa open. This road Gonzalvo blocked. When now the
French made an attempt to break through, Ferrantino was the first to break his
lance upon them; and when his knights said to him, “Sir, how dare you expose
yourself so much?”:he replied, “It is my affair also.” In this way he fired the
zeal of his troops, and soon drove the enemy back. The latter hoped against
hope in their King, but he was too far away, and they were perishing from
hunger. They accordingly begged for a thirty days’ truce; if at the expiration
of it they were then unable to take the field, they pledged themselves to leave
the kingdom and surrender their strongholds. The days passed; succour did not
arrive, and at length they were all for Aubigny had
also surrendered conducted to the coast. Here, heat, hunger, and dire diseases
left only 1,500 men out of 6,000, and these took ship in such an exhausted
condition that they had almost to be lifted on shore, if they were ever to
breathe the air of the land again. Others came into captivity, sat behind
wooden and iron gratings in dark cells, where they saw no living creature,
except perhaps the Moor who brought them their food. At last they were set
free. These fugitives might be seen, with the iron chains of their captivity
still about their necks, betaking themselves to holy places and to the court of
the King. They were contented to see his face once more; they took his
presents, and wished him long life.
After
this great victory over the French, Ferrantino returned, on the 5th October,
1496, with his young wife to Naples. The people, whom he had allowed to choose
a fuller as their Eletto, who was
permitted to carry the Mappa on Corpus Christi day,
which had been a privilege of the nobles and who, if he lived, might hope for
many other favours at his hand loved him from the bottom of their hearts. Many
of them imitated him, how he raised and bowed his head, and they believed they
had a hero in him. And now he came back to them; but he was sick to death. The
people spent the whole night before the saints on their knees. Early in the
morning, they carried a wonder-working image of Mary through the streets, and
brought it to him; in the evening there followed in grand procession, clerics
and laymen, men and women, and even the nobles, behind the head and blood of
St. Januarius, which their Archbishop carried before them through the streets,
until they were come to the gate of the palace. Here the old Queen knelt down,
and the people cried, "Misericordia." He spoke to them, and said, “Finish
your prayers; God will do as seemeth him best”, and
then died. “O our master”, they said, “wherefore hast thou left us so soon? Thy
prowess, thy prowess in battle, equalled by no hero of old, where is it now? By
thy death it is gone.” Another said, “How shall I now live, O my master, I that
have borne so many hardships to earn thy favour?”. Some remembered that he had
often been in danger of poison; but he had escaped such a death, and now he had
passed away gently at the goal of his victories. Federigo, his uncle, succeeded
to the throne in his stead.
And
now it almost appeared as though Charles's expedition, which certainly never
vanquished the Turks or took Jerusalem, was not even productive of any lasting
effects upon Italy Ludovico and Federigo were even reconciled. Yet it was not
so in reality. The Florentine Popolari, the Orsini, who now opposed the Pope
instead of the Colonna, as well as the unconquered cities in the kingdom of
Naples, Taranto, Bitonto, Sora, Rocca Guglielma,
formed a strong party, and every day Charles, their suzerain, thought of
returning to them again. These were confronted by the League. The Italian
members of it would have been quite contented with a victory over their enemies
in Italy. The foreign members desired more. Ferdinand was thinking of his
claims to Naples, and made inquiries of the Pope in respect thereof. Maximilian
hoped, with the assistance of this League, to strike a blow at France itself.
CHAPTER III
I.
MAXIMILIAN OF AUSTRIA AND THE EMPIRE
THE
real objects of Maximilian were to aid the League to conquer in Italy, and then
to place himself at its head and attack France.
He was
lord of Austria and the Netherlands. It might have been about 600 years
previously that, in the valley of the Danube, between the Alps and the Bohemian
mountains, the mark of Austria was first founded round and about the castles of
Krems and Melk. Since then it had grown, first in the
valleys towards Bavaria and Hungary, and afterwards through the House of
Hapsburg, across the whole of the northern slope of the Alps to the point of
separation of the Slavonic, Italian, and German tongues, and down to Alsace;
from a mark it had become an archduchy. On all sides the Archdukes had claims;
on the German side to Switzerland, on the Italian to Venetian possessions, and
on the Slavonic to Bohemia and Hungary.
To
such a pitch of greatness had Maximilian by his marriage with Mary of Burgundy
brought the heritage received from Charles the Bold. True to the Netherlander’s
greeting, in the inscription over their gates, “Thou art our Duke, fight our
battle for us”, war was from the first his handicraft. He adopted Charles the
Bold's hostile attitude towards France; he saved the greatest part of his
inheritance from the schemes of Louis XI. He thought day and night how he might
conquer it entirely.
But
after Mary of Burgundy’s premature death, revolution followed revolution, and
his father Frederick being too old to protect himself, it came about that in
the year 1488 he was ousted from Austria by the Hungarians, whilst his son was
kept a prisoner in Bruges by the citizens, and they had even to fear the
estrangement of the Tyrol. Yet they did not lose courage. At this very time the
father denoted with the vowels A. E. I. O. U. (Alles Erdreich
ist Oesterreich unterthan all
the earth is subject to Austria), the extent of his hopes. In the same
year, the son negotiated for a Spanish alliance. Their real strength lay in the
imperial dignity of Frederick, and in the royal dignity of Maximilian, which
they had from the Empire of the Germans. As soon as it began to bestir itself,
Maximilian was set at liberty; as soon as it supported him in the persons of
only a few princes of the Empire, he became supreme in the Netherlands. The
standard of the Kennemer, with its device of bread and cheese, floated before
Leyden for the last time, and the last Hoek, Philip of Ravenstein,
surrendered Sluys to him. It was the same help which secured him the Tyrol, and
enabled him to reconquer Austria.
Since
then, his plans were directed against Hungary and Burgundy. In Hungary he could
gain nothing beyond securing the succession to his house. But never, frequently
as he concluded peace, did he give up his intentions upon Burgundy. He might
have hoped to compass them if Anne of Brittany had become his wife. On the day
that he learned that she was not to become so, he threw himself in a fit of bitter
disappointment into the saddle, and took part again and again in the
tournaments. On this occasion, however, the Empire did not come to the
assistance of his anger. But now that he had allied himself with a Sforza, and
had joined the League, now that his father was dead, and the Empire was pledged
to follow him across the mountains, and now, too, that the Italian
complications were threatening Charles, he took fresh hope, and in this hope he
summoned a Diet at Worms.
Maximilian
was a prince of whom, although many portraits have been drawn, yet there is
scarcely one that resembles another, so easily and so entirely did he suit
himself to circumstances, so little was he controlled by one occupation or one
inclination, a prince of whom his contemporaries have left behind them detailed
descriptions of manners and habits, yet not a single satisfactory history. His
soul is full of motion, of joy in things, and of plans. There is scarcely
anything that he is not capable of doing. In his mines he is a good screener,
in his armoury the best plater, capable of instructing others in new
inventions. With musket in hand, he defeats his best marksman, Georg Purkhard; with heavy cannon, which he has shown how to
cast, and has placed on wheels, he comes as a rule nearest the mark. He
commands seven captains in their seven several tongues; he himself chooses and
mixes his food and medicines. In the open country, he feels himself happiest.
He rides by copses listening for the nightingale, it
may be to the forests of Brabant, to hunt the boar, to the Tyrol mountains,
where he has forbidden the shooting of the chamois because firearms have left
so few remaining. Here he leaves his horse behind, and in pursuit of them
climbs the steep rocks where, if he makes a false step, he may fall four
hundred to five hundred feet, where sometimes, when the climbing iron has given
way, a bush or projecting stone alone saves him from destruction, and where, on
one occasion, in the Hallthal, he hears the avalanche
thunder at his back. The common people tell stories of how he was once let down
by strong ropes from the heights into the valley beneath, and on another
occasion, when this was impracticable, and a crucifix was already raised
towards him from the valley as though to receive his dying prayer, an angel
rescued him from the Martinswand. On his return from
such an expedition, his fowler brings him all manner of singing birds into his
chamber, so that he can hardly hear himself speak. Or, again, he goes to the
wedding of one of his servants, or listens confidentially to the prayers of his
subjects, or it may be relates a story to his councillors and secretaries.
Sometimes he dictates a piece from his enigmatical and almost unfathomable
works, a note for his diary, as, for instance, how priest Lasla
is to compile the Chronicles, or one of his very exact instructions as, for
instance, how, at Beutelstein, with a makeshift
musket one might shoot obliquely into the kitchen, or perhaps a letter. Such is
his character. But this has little to do with history. What really
distinguishes his public life is that presentiment of the future greatness of
his dynasty which he has inherited from his father, and the restless striving
to obtain all that passed to him from the House of Burgundy. All his policy and
all his schemes were concentrated, not upon the Empire, for the real needs of
which he evinced little real care, and not directly upon the welfare of his
hereditary lands, but upon the realization of that sole idea. Of it all his
letters and speeches are full. Yet each individual plan he keeps extremely
secret. There are projects that he communicates to none of his councillors; at
such times he places the foreign embassies in positions where they learn
nothing, and from which they cannot escape; then he sends his cook on ahead
only an hour before he himself sets out. Whenever he fancies his plans are
discerned, the veins in his neck swell, and he becomes wrath. It will sometimes
happen that the matter upon which he is bent, after he has undertaken it, presents
difficulties for which he is not prepared; but, as he has always other schemes,
which lead to the same end, he soon forgets his failures. Thus, in such
matters, he behaves like a huntsman, who is bent upon climbing a very steep
hill, first by this path and then by that, and if he fails, attempts another
and yet another way without losing patience; for it is still early in the day,
and he gradually mounts higher and higher, his sole care being to hide himself
from the wild animal he pursues.
In
March, 1495, Maximilian came to the Diet at Worms. He showed to the full his
knightly prowess, when he himself entered the lists with a Frenchman, who had
come to challenge all the Germans, and conquered him. He appeared in the full
glory of his regal dignity, when he sat in public between the archbishops and
his chancellors. On such occasions, the Count Palatine sat on his right and
held his orb, on his left stood the Duke of Saxony and held his sword; before
him stood the envoy of Brandenburg with the sceptre, and behind him, instead of
Bohemia, the hereditary cupbearer of Limburg, with the crown; and grouped round
him were the rest of the forty princes, sixty-seven counts and lords, as many
as had come, and the ambassadors of the cities, and others, all in their order.
Then a prince would come before him, lower his colours before the royal throne,
and receive his investiture. There was then no perception of the fact that this
mode of investiture denoted a certain compulsion upon the King, or that the
insignia of royal power resided in the hands of the princes.
At
this Diet the King made two important arrangements, which opened up to him
great prospects of advantage. In Württemberg there had sprung of two lines two
counts of quite opposite characters, both named Eberhard. The elder was
kind-hearted, tender, always resolute, and dared “sleep in the lap of any one
of his subjects”; the younger, volatile, unsteady, violent, and always
repentant of what he had done; but the elder, by special favour of the Imperial
court, also managed the land of the younger. In return for this, he furnished
400 horse for the Hungarian war, and despatched aid against Flanders. With the
elder, Maximilian now entered into a compact. Württemberg was to be raised to a
dukedom an elevation which excluded the female line from the succession and, in
the event of the stock failing, was to be a “widow’s portion” of the realm for
the benefit of the Imperial treasury. Now, as the sole hopes of this family
centred in a single weakly boy, this arrangement held out to Maximilian or his
successors the prospect of acquiring a splendid country. Yet this was the
smaller of his two successes. The greater was the espousal of his children,
Philip and Margaret, to the two children of Ferdinand the Catholic, Juana and
Juan, which was here settled. This opened to his house still greater
expectations, it brought him at once into the most intimate alliance with the
Kings of Spain.
These
matters might possibly, however, have been arranged elsewhere. What Maximilian
really wanted at the Diet of Worms was the assistance of the Empire against the
French, with its soldiery who were already
world-renowned and much sought after.
For
at that time in all the wars of Europe, German auxiliaries were decisive. The
troops upon which Wasiljewitsch depended when he led
his Muscovites against the Poles, and those who subjected Sweden to the Union,
were German, as were also those which died in England for the cause of York on
the very spot where they had awaited the battle. Those who made the possession
of Brittany by the crown of France uncertain, as well as those who conquered
it, were also Germans; the defenders as well as the conquerors of Naples; the
subduers of Hungary, as long as it suited them, as also those who saved it by going
home with their booty, all were Germans. But these were the quarrelsome,
wandering portion of the nation, those hirelings whom the peace proclamations
inveighed against. In Germany there still lived peasants, like the Ditmarschers, who awaited a victorious army, under a king
of three realms, behind their walls, and defeated it, and who hung up the Danebrog in a village church. In the cities there dwelt
behind their impregnable walls and their cannon, citizens versed in the use of
arms, who practised their good arts and games until irritated by an enemy, when
they met him, as the Strassburgers did Charles the
Bold before Nancy. Less secure perhaps were princes and lords, yet these had
castles to protect them against the first attack, and feudal tenants and
faithful subjects ever about them. If Maximilian had united the whole of this
power in his hand, neither Europe nor Asia would have been able to withstand
him. But God disposed that it should rather be employed in the cause of freedom
than for oppression. What an Empire was that, which in spite of its vast
strength allowed its Emperor to be expelled from his heritage, and did not for
a long time take steps to bring him back again?
If
we examine the constitution of the Empire, not as we should picture it to
ourselves in Henry III’s time, but as it had at length become the imperial
dignity devoid of any material possessions, the several estates legally
independent, and with the power of election of a sovereign, who afterwards
always maintained certain rights over the electors, we are led to inquire not
so much into the causes of its disintegration, for this concerns us little, as
into the way in which it was held together.
What
welded it together, and preserved it (leaving tradition and the Pope out of the
question), would appear to have been chiefly the rights of individuals, the
unions of neighbours, and the social gradations which universally obtained.
Such were those rights and privileges which not only protected the citizen, his
guild and his quarter of the town against his neighbours and more powerful men
than himself, but which also endowed him with an inner independence; those
rights and privileges which secured his rightful possessions to the greatest,
and his existence to the least; a legacy left by each generation to the
succeeding, unalterable either by emperor or empire who had confirmed them, but
which were without them a mere nothing. Next, the unions of neighbours. These
were not only leagues of cities and communities of peasants, expanded from
ancient fraternities for who can tell the origin of the Hansa, or the earliest
treaty between Uri and Schwyz into large associations; or of knights, who
strengthened a really insignificant power by confederations of neighbours; but
also of the princes, who were bound together by joint inheritances, mutual
expectancies and the ties of blood, which in some cases were very close. This
ramification, dependent upon a supreme power and confirmed by it, bound
neighbour to neighbour; and, whilst securing to each his privilege and his
liberty, blended together all countries of Germany in legal bonds of union. But
it is only in the social order that the unity is really manifest. Only so long
as the Empire was an actual reality, could the supreme power of the Electors,
each with his own special rights, be maintained; only so long could dukes and
princes, bishops and abbots maintain their authority in the eyes of their
neighbours, and through court offices or hereditary services, through fiefs and
membership of the Diet give their vassals a distinctive position to the whole.
Only so long could the immediate cities of the Empire, carefully divided into
free and imperial cities, be not merely protected, but also assured of a
general participation in the government. Under this sanctified and traditional
system of suzerainty and vassalage all were happy and contented, and bore a
love to it such as is cherished towards a native town or a father’s house.
In this
system, the House of Austria had for some time past enjoyed the foremost
position. It also had a union, and, moreover, a great division on its side. The
union was the Swabian League. Old Swabia was divided into three leagues the
league of the Forest Cantons (the origin of Switzerland); the league of the
knights in the Black Forest, on the Kocher, the Neckar, and the Danube; and the
league of the cities. The cantons were from the first hostile to Austria. The
Emperor Frederick brought it to pass that the cities and knights that had from
time out of mind lived in feud, bound themselves together with several princes,
and formed, under his protection, the league of the land of Swabia. But the
division was scattered throughout the whole Empire.
Almost
every German house was divided into an elder and a younger line; and, as
through some fate, it happened that one, generally the younger, attached itself
to the Emperor. Of the Bavarian House, it was at this time that of Munich; of
the Palatinate, that of Veldenz; of the Württemberg
House, the Urach line; of the Saxon, that of Dresden; of the Hessian, that of
Marburg; and of the Guelph, that of Brunswick. The most friendly to the
Imperial House were the Houses of Brandenburg and Baden, which was for a long
time undivided; the most hostile, since Frederick the Victorious, was the
Palatinate. Anyone who steeps himself in these dry studies, and has access to
all the historical documents, especially the electoral rolls of the
ecclesiastical princes, will be able to discover, from Frederick II’s time, a
new history, unlike Haberlin's, founded upon persons and living actions.
But
it is not this upon which the Emperor's hallowed position in the nation
reposed. This was based before all else upon his dignity, the sublimest in Christendom, the keystone of the social order,
and upon the custody of traditional rights a custody, so to speak, of times
past for times to come which lay in his hand, and which was bound up with the
distribution of new rights through the medium of privileges and fiefs. His
position was based, moreover, upon the universal judicial office he filled, as
well as upon the great influence he exercised upon public matters by his
motions, proposals, and party in the Diet. “His name is great”, says a papal deputy;
“in a land of factions he can do much. Everyone looks to him; and without him
nothing can be done. “In this respect there were, however, great deficiencies.
Privileges were often bestowed out of mere personal considerations, and to the
prejudice of others; judicial business was frequently kept in arrear, if the
parties did not come to court with sufficient money; domestic matters were
often made affairs of general policy, and real needs neglected. The princes
complained that the Emperor did not consult them, but his councillors. We can
see that there was much arbitrariness and determination to take all that could
be got, on the one side, and lack of complaisance and goodwill and the
rendering of as little service as possible on the other. Maximilian had first
intended to remain a fortnight at Worms; and then, before Charles had returned
from Naples, with the help of the vassals of the realm, to undertake an
expedition against him. Yet his proposal did not express this intention. It was
as follows: “Whereas the Turk twice each year assailed Christendom; and whereas
the King of France threatened to transfer to himself the prerogatives of the
Empire and the Church, a speedy and, more than this for they had equipped
themselves for a long campaign, a continuous aid for ten to twelve years was
needed.”
But
here lay the chief difficulty, to induce a government only framed for peace, or
at most fitted to carry on a short war, to undertake a protracted campaign at a
distance. To this end either the dormant military power of the vassals,
princes, knights, citizens, and peasants could be utilized, or else the
landsknechts, who were always ready to serve for pay. But the feudal system had
fallen into decay, owing no less to the Emperor, who left the individual unaided,
than to the individuals who did not, on their part, support him. It still lived
on only in respect of meum and fuum, and
not with any view to war; it existed more in claims and in parchments than in
actual fact. It was impossible to unite the vassals in military obedience for
any length of time, so as to undertake a real campaign. Maximilian’s intention,
therefore, was to raise money through his claims upon them, and with this money
to form an army of landsknechts. This was the tenor of his proposal.
This
proposal was received by the Estates at Worms in full assembly at the Rathaus. Hereupon they withdrew the Electors into one
chamber, the princes into a second, and the representatives of the cities into
a third, and began to examine article after article. The printed records do not
quite disclose the relations of the princes to the electors; but of the cities
thus much we know, that their commission was, to agree in the main to what the
electors and princes resolved, and otherwise only to protect the interests of
each city. They would not, even when asked, make known their opinion until the
princes had declared theirs. Often they learnt from the Elector of Mainz what
had been proposed to them, and what they had determined upon. In case they had
any scruples they sent, after lunch perhaps, to him direct. The King, when
confronted by the full assembly, appeared at a great disadvantage. In a case
when he desired a rapid decision, he was even obliged to go out whilst they
were deliberating, and await the result outside.
These
Estates, then, that have in their hereditary independence as little in common
with the representative estates of a military monarchy, as the Empire of those
days with a political state, answered the King, that, before all else, order in
the Empire must be secured. When, in 1486, Frederick pressed them for
assistance against the Hungarians, they cast in his teeth complaints as to his
administration of justice; and when, in 1492, he proposed a French campaign,
they replied, led by Berthold of Mainz: “It was an evil innovation to ask for
assistance in money. Many were excused the contribution; many paid only half;
many, again, too late; those that paid it were ruined; and, finally, it was
spent for different objects than it had been granted for.” All the same, they
did not declare themselves against pecuniary assistance, but they wished to
counteract those two evils by the aid of the tribunals, and by assisting in the
appropriation of the moneys voted. At the present moment, both parties, they
and the King, pursued their own ends. On three occasions, Maximilian was
particularly pressing. The first occasion was in April, when the preparations
of the Duke of Orleans threatened Milan, and Charles's retreat menaced the Pope
and Genoa, and he could still hope to find him in the field, far away from his
country. But the princes took upon themselves to propose to him a Council of
Regency which should consist of a president appointed by the King, and sixteen
members chosen by the Electors, the four archbishoprics, the four territories
and the cities, and which should, in reality, exercise all internal power. In
this first dispute Maximilian gained the day. Berthold of Mainz said: “They did
not wish to mortgage the King’s person for this assistance they voted him; they
would acquiesce in his wishes and trust him.” Acting upon this sentiment, they
promised him that, although he rejected their Council of Regency, they would,
within six weeks, raise 100,000 guilders from the Estates; 50,000 he should
raise himself, and both sums should be covered by a general tax levied on the
country; only he should not leave the land before peace, right, and a tolerable
state of order was established. This was the first time.
The peace was not established, the money was
not paid, and the six weeks had long passed by.
On the second occasion, when Charles was in
Florentine territory, and messengers announced that Milan was in danger, he
declared as follows: “For two days, from eight o'clock in the morning until
eight at night, he had busied himself with the peace project; in two days he
hoped to have settled it; in the meanwhile they should be good enough to vote
him the money.” Many were opposed to this, especially the cities. But he
prevailed upon some princes to grant him the money; and Berthold induced the
representatives of the cities, at all events, to write home about it. He was
successful on this occasion also. It was in July.
After this, at the beginning of August, when
Novara was being besieged, and a victory of the Swiss was apprehended, in case
the landsknechts, who had been sent thither, were not regularly paid, he made
fresh demands. But on this occasion he could prevail upon nobody. On the
afternoon of the 4th of August he adopted the proposals provisionally, and on
the 7th definitely, and received on the 8th a fresh vote of 150,000
guilders.
What can it then have been that the King was
unwilling to face? Certainly not the public peace, that had been so often
proclaimed, but the Cameral Tribunal (Kammergericht), a Court constituted with the advice and
consent of the Diet, and which, moreover, as was plainly evidenced by later
references to the events of this day, was composed in the way in which it was
intended to compose the Council of Regency, so that hereby a great part of his
absolute judicial power was taken from him. Yet in the matter nearest his heart
still greater difficulties presented themselves. It was resolved to raise the
Common Penny, no small tax, as it would amount to the thousandth part of the
property of the public, and in many districts taxes and assessments were at
this time unknown. The object was to bring every individual in all Germany
immediately under the Imperial government, and always to keep a good sum in
reserve for public matters.
This tax was for the King, but it was not
proposed to leave it to his absolute control. Seven Imperial treasurers were to
raise it, and an annual diet was to keep watch over its application. On the
evening before the Feast of the Purification in each year, the King, the
princes, and all the Estates should assemble, and remain a whole month together
to deal with the public peace and justice. This assembly could not but diminish
the King's independence and his whole prestige. What availed him the money,
when another could determine how it should be employed? But on this occasion it
could not be avoided. With but few knights, without any reception, Maximilian
arrived at Frankfurt. On the Grossbraunfels there, he
delivered the simple red judge’s staff with its black handle to the first
justiciary, Eitel Friedrich von Zollern, and then, in
disgust that his chief object had been defeated, betook himself to the Tyrol.
Charles was home again; in Milan peace prevailed, and all his plans had been
thwarted.
2.
MAXIMILIAN’S FIRST EXPEDITION TO ITALY. THE FLORENTINES
AND SAVONAROLA
In the Tyrol, Maximilian was visited by the
ambassadors of Italy; they represented to him that “the King of France was
every day threatening to return. The Popolari at Florence, his keenest
partisans, had been bold enough to attack Pisa. Against the former, as also
against these latter, they prayed him to come and wage war, and not, when they
had so great need of him, to be again detained by a Diet.” Maximilian turned
his attention entirely to Italian affairs, and inclined to the hope that he
would be able, even without material assistance from Germany, to carry out one
of his plans. The condition of things in Pisa and Florence was now as follows.
When King Charles took Pisa under his protection, he forgot that it had ever
been Ghibelline, against the House of Anjou and against his rights, and that
its last action had been to hoist the Burgundian colours. Later, he came to
terms with Florence, and insisted only upon an amnesty for Pisa. Relying upon
this, the Florentines commenced the war. The castles upon the heights of the
Era and Elsa, originally belonging to Pisa, and not far from the coast, were
soon taken. Leghorn was ceded to them, and Charles gave orders to his captain in
the citadel of Pisa to surrender this also. But the captain acted contrary to
expectations. Whether or not it was compassion, bribe, or, as is said, a lady
of Pisa, who pleased him too well, he disregarded his sovereign’s commands.
When the Florentines, upon his invitation, rushed through suburbs,
fortifications, and across the Arno, in order to take the city and to receive
the citadel from him, he fired point-blank amongst them and drove them back. He
was the first to make the people of Pisa perfectly free, by surrendering to
them their citadel. But what sort of liberty is that, which from the first
outset hesitates to protect itself? It was enough for the people of Pisa not to
be subjected to their old enemies. And he who protected them against their foes
was also acceptable to them as their lord and master. When, then, on the
occasion of the renewed attacks made upon it by Florence, Ludovico and the
Venetians took the part of Pisa, they may, perhaps, have intended to injure the
French party; certain it is that Ludovico reflected, that the city formerly
belonged to the Visconti, and that it was favourably situated for both Genoa
and Milan; and certain it is that the Venetians considered what an excellent
acquisition Pisa would be to add to the Apulian cities which were already
theirs, and to Taranto, which had just raised the cry of “San Marco!” and how
it would enable them to plant their flag on the Tyrrhenian sea. At first, as
though no one knew the others’ thoughts, they held together; but every day
Ludovico became more jealous. He retired. His general on one occasion, on being
invited to advance, answered that he must first take his breakfast. But matters
did not progress much in this way, and it was a clever idea of his to help to
transfer this war to the Emperor, his nearest relative, who was an enemy of the
Popolari, and no friend of Venice. When, in May, 1496, Trivulzio came over the
mountains, fortified Asti, and spread the report that close behind him were
coming the Duke of Orleans, and after him the King, with 2,000 hommes d'armes,
and 10,000 Gascons and Swiss, the Venetians were induced for Charles threatened
to avenge their attack at Fornovo to agree to
Ludovico's proposal.
Accordingly, in July, 1496, Ludovico set out
with his court and journeyed through the Valtelline,
and by way of Bormio across the Umbrail to Munster,
there to await Maximilian. The next morning, before daybreak, the Emperor
arrived attired in a black hunting costume, with his golden bugle-horn at his
side, and accompanied by 200 huntsmen with the long poles, with which they
clamber from rock to rock, and by many nobles all decorated with the Burgundian
Cross of St. Andrew. After the meeting was over, he might have been seen
following the chase on the highest peaks of the Piz Umbrail
merely to gaze up at which made the spectator dizzy his feet shod with climbing
irons, where the cleft rocks ran sheer down into the abyss beneath. Meanwhile,
the Duchess sat in a small hut, and chamois were driven down from the ravines
and round the jagged rocks, and the sport went on before her eyes. In this way
they amused themselves. The most important event, however, was, that Maximilian
entertained the proposals of the Italian envoys: “they should pay him 40,000
ducats every three months, and he would then come and wage their war for them.”
But first he must return to Germany. In his ill-humour he had abandoned all the
decrees of the Diet. At all events, he ought, by his presence in the first
assembly, to have inaugurated the new constitution; but when the Feast of the
Purification arrived, he said that in Worms he had been treated as no city
treated its burgo-master, and remained away. A few plenipotentiaries came, but
in a short time everyone went home. In the meanwhile, the Common Penny had been
raised; abbots and ecclesiastics paid it, and the cities also paid it into the
hand of their priests. But as the assembly, which should determine how the
contribution should be expended, had broken up, how was it likely that any
should show great enthusiasm, especially as all were unaccustomed to these
proceedings, and annoyed at their property being investigated. Maximilian,
accordingly, at Whitsuntide, 1496, wrote: “Each one must appear at Lindau with
his soldiers all ready equipped, and with the money
that had been raised by tax to pay them.” Immediately afterwards, just as if
nothing had been pre-arranged and determined, he demanded that, “eight days
after St. John’s Day, the summer solstice, the strength of the nation should
accompany him across the mountains, for King Charles was already on the march”;
and in August he declared that he was full of great hopes for the success of
his Roman campaign; the country should support him at once with loans and the
Common Penny. But how was the war to be begun, without the decree of the Empire
? That no such decree was issued in no way disheartened him. The princes of his
party afforded him some assistance, namely, those princes who at that time were
living at his court at Innsbruck. The deputies of a few Swiss cities
accompanied him. Yet his real army was to be provided by Italy. At Linz he took
counsel with his son Philip. Philip, who now ruled the Netherlands, had come
gladly, sometimes taking part in the bird-shooting of respectable burghers, and
sometimes joining in the patrician dances. At Augsburg, where they made a pile
of maypoles and garlands forty-five feet high for the St. John's Day bonfire,
the fairest damsel with a wax taper in her hand kindled it with him in the
dance, whilst the trumpets, cornets, and kettledrums all brayed to the fire and
the dance. At Linz his father disclosed to him his bold plans. He hoped to keep
the French back from Italy and Leghorn; Florence would then league itself with
him; nay more, aid him to cross over in René's interest
from Tuscany into Provence. This done, Philip should invade France from the
Netherlands and Ferdinand from Roussillon. At Lyons, they might all three meet,
and then Burgundy would be won. With these hopes, in August, he took the 200
horse that he had equipped, and arranged that Albrecht of Saxony should follow
him with some infantry; and in the hamlet of Meda, beyond the Valtelline and Morbegno, among
houses and gardens, he met the envoy of the Pope and Ludovico. In Vigevano they
took counsel together. A few days later, the Venetian envoys arrived. The first
danger, the arrival of the French, was past. In France, Louis of Orleans, when
his baggage was already on the road and he was about to start between evening
and morning, suddenly changed his mind, and Charles did not wish to compel him.
It would have been all the easier to have attacked Asti, but the Venetians
would not give it up to the man who had refused them Pisa. An immediate attack
upon Florence was concerted. In a short time Maximilian, full of his schemes,
stood before the towers of Leghorn, in order first to wrest this city from
Florence. The Florentines at that time owned sway over 800 walled towns,
consisting partly of such as were closed in the evening and opened in the
morning the half at least with a market as well as over 12,000 open hamlets.
One hundred and thirty towns brought them every St. John's Day a taper or a
piece of cloth, and owned the city as their protectress. Such was the power
they exercised over Pistoia and Volterra by party influence; by their commerce
and money over Arezzo, which they had purchased from Coucy
d'Enguerrand; over Cortona, which had surrendered to
King Ladislas and had been bartered by him to them;
over Pisa, which had on one occasion been betrayed and sold to them by Gabriele
Visconti, and on another by the head of the exiles, then the head of the city
for the city had resisted and had called back its exiles into it and, finally,
over Leghorn, which Tommaso Fregoso had made over to them for 100,000 ducats. Now
we must remember that not all the 10,000 fathers of families at that time in
Florence belonged to the ruling classes, for the most of them were citizens
without the rights of citizens. The benefit of the city, as it was called, was
shared in by only 576 houses of the greater, and by 220 of the lesser trades,
and probably never by more than 2,000 citizens. They had also private property;
and the 800 palaces and 32,000 estates in the vicinity of the city were for the
most part in their hands. It was these 2,000 against whom Maximilian waged war.
In
spite of their great affluence and power, they had not as yet forsaken their
original employment, trade, nor abated their innate severity of life. They had
270 woollen factories which imported wool from France, Catalonia, and the best
from England, and exported cloth to South Italy, to Constantinople, and by way
of Brusa to the whole of the East. They had eighty-three manufactories for silk
fabrics, brocade, and damask, for which their own ships fetched the silk from
the East, and which found their chief markets in Lyons, Barcelona, Seville,
London, and Antwerp. The East sent them silk, and the Western world wool; they
manufactured both, and exported their silk stuffs to the West and their
woollens to the East, and thus ministered to the wants of the world. Hence it
came that their first Signori were cloth and silk merchants, and the third a
banker. For their thirty-three banks, having agencies in all parts, did perhaps
the best business of all; they founded the fortune of the Medici. The first
business of such a Florentine was to go to early Mass. This done, in summer
clothed in black Lucco, frilled round the neck, and a black silken cap with a
long point, and in winter in black mantle and sober cowl, he walked through the
streets to his business in the market or in the palace. At midday, after
dinner, he saw his children and related to them a new or an old story. He then
arranged his papers, or went to the Loggie which the patricians had at their
houses. They always addressed each other as “thou”; and only a knight, a
doctor, or an uncle was called “you” and “Messere”. Almost every one bore the
nickname that had been given him by his play-fellows in his youth. The
beautiful language that the whole of Italy learnt from them was formed in their
society. At the hour of the Ave Maria they were all at home. In winter, they
stood with wife and child for a while around the fire; and whilst the lower
orders, and those that lived by the sweat of their brow, made good cheer in the
inns, they themselves partook of a frugal meal at home at the third hour of the
night. Many stayed up half the night at their looms and their spindles. Among
these rich, influential, educated, and austere people, a Dominican friar of
Ferrara, one Girolamo Savonarola, had succeeded in making himself universally
esteemed. He was, it is true, strict with himself and others, a solitary
walker, a friar by inclination, and a man who also knew how to control his
rough voice. He admonished his brother friars to give up all their property. He
spared no one, neither his fellow-citizens, the Brescians
or the Florentines, nor his liege lords, the Pope and Lorenzo de' Medici, and
all this helped to secure him a certain influence. But what made him really
powerful were, before all else, his teaching and his prophetic gifts. His
teaching is indeed worth examining: “Like a piece of iron between two magnets,
so does the human soul waver between divine and earthly things, and between
belief and feeling. Its purity consists solely in withdrawing itself from the
love of things earthly, and in voluntary flight to God. Sacrament and prayer
lead to Him; His nature it is that draws it heavenwards to participate in His
goodness. But the soul has a domestic enemy, an adversary in the form of a
friend, the flesh, that rebels against it, and oppresses it to sin. With its
help the devil lies in wait for it, like the vulture after the heart of its
prey. Since the world began he has deceived and devoured it a thousand thousand times, yea, a number without end and count, and is
not yet satiated, but still lurks and waits like a hungry wolf. The world
accordingly is divided between two banners, of Christ and the devil, a black
and a white one.”
“Now the sinner is like a dead man, reft of life. His face is dark, he durst not open his eyes.
God hates him. A man may pour bad wine from his golden vessel and keep the
vessel; but God breaks both sin and the vessel of sin. And no one begs for
mercy of God, as in Florence no one dares to entreat for an exile.”
“The faithful man, on the other hand, when
he bows his knee, when he follows the commands of Love, when he disregards all
things earthly, and only aims at being merged into God, feels God and is
illuminated by him. In this way, a simple man and a maiden of low estate come
further than Plato and Pythagoras came. But he who is by nature inclined
thereto, and who is quite free of earthly care, by constant habit and watchful
carefulness attains in his old age the greatest bliss, he sees God. Such a man
communes with angels and saints; and the devil has no power over him, but he
over the devil.”
“When the wicked man's day is done, where is
then his pomp? His journeying and his riding? His hurrying and scurrying, and
his golden ornaments? Down, down, where his body is food for worms. But the
soul is free, and begins to think of itself and to lament: 'O woe! who hath
soiled my vesture, which by baptism was made whiter than snow, and made it now
more filthy than pitch?' Satan then comes to it and says: 'My playmate, stand
up, I have done it. For thou hast followed my advice and worked faithfully with
me. Come, follow me into my kingdom. There is hunger without meat, thirst
without drink, there is an unquenchable, dull, violent, smoking fire, and by
the side of it, cold without measure and remedy. Come with me. The devils are
coming to meet thee with their song of lamentation'.”
“But on the other side, the joy of the elect
cannot be described in language. It will be splendid and clear, like the sheen
of the sun, quick like the ray of light that in one moment gleams from east to
west. Being with God he will know all things, present, past, and future; he
will wish for nothing that he cannot obtain; there will be a life and existence
in constant admiration, in sweet delight, in ecstatic love, in the ceaseless
singing of praises, in bliss and triumph, without ending for evermore.”
When Savonarola delivered
this teaching, with an eloquence which is often nothing but rapture, a shout of
joy and triumph, and especially when he corroborated it out of the Holy Writ,
the Florentines, as he himself has said, stood and gazed at him like marble
pillars, with their faces turned to his. It was all the more impressive because
it distinguished good and evil, as in their city Ghibellines and Guelphs,
Bianchi and Neri, had often been contrasted. Besides, they considered him a
prophet. He had foretold the advent and the victory of Charles, and had
prophesied in unmistakable language the expulsion of the Medici. The majority
believed him entirely. He was master of their minds, and in the new order of
things in Florence he attained the greatest influence.
It was Piero’s nearest relatives and friends
who had summoned his enemy to Tuscany, had expelled him from the Signoria, and
overthrown him. It was not that they were minded to share their government with
the populace - when would this ever occur to the ruling party in any city? -
but, because Piero intended to be prince, they hated him. They hoped under
Lorenzino and the junior line of this house to attain to greater influence.
With this idea, immediately after Piero's flight, they summoned a parliament.
They called it a parliament, when they collected the people together in the
square by the sound of a bell, placed armed youths at all the entrances, who
thrust back every one who was displeasing to them, and then, finally, allowed
the collected throng to vote by acclamation. Such a parliament, on this
occasion, with loud shouts of consent, entrusted to twenty men among them the
business of a Balla, that is, the supreme government.
Savonarola, whose theory based the right of government
purely upon agreement, opposed them, and preached his principle that all true
citizens ought to participate in the sovereign power. He even convinced some of
the leading men. Antonio Soderini publicly professed his views; others visited
him at night. Owing to this, differences and general dissensions gradually
arose, which were followed at last by a peaceable and complete dissolution of
the Balla.
The new order of things was framed in
accordance with Savonarola's principles. All those who enjoyed the benefit of
the city, that is all whose fathers and grandfathers had, since the political
government of the Medici, been drawn for the three dignities of Signori,
Gonfalonieri, and Buonuomini, that is to say had been
elected or at least declared eligible, entered into the government under the
name of the Consiglio Grande. Such an arrangement is far from being a
declaration of the rights of man; for Savonarola conceived of social
distinctions and grades to have been original and given by God: to many it will
appear to have been nothing more nor less than an enlarged aristocracy. Only
inside the Council no privilege should be tolerated. It received a thoroughly
democratic constitution. Just as in Venice there were Doge, Consiglieri, and Pregadi above the Grand Council, so here also the Gonfaloniere had the administration of justice, and the
eight Priori and the Council of Eighty the essential attributes of government.
In Venice the greater part of the dignities were conferred for life, but in
Florence for two months and not by a regular election. Only after certain names
in each quarter of the city had been proposed by chance, by lot, did voting
take place upon them. The elections were rather committees and commissions,
than official elections in our sense of the term. "A city is well
governed," says Savonarola, “when the magistracy have short notice given
them of the day when their stewardship shall be inquired into. What otherwise
is the meaning of free election? for every one will only be obedient to the
best.” For this assembly a hall was at once built. It was the largest in Italy,
and yet was finished in a marvellously short time. It was approached by broad
steps. The middle was occupied lengthways and crossways by benches for the
citizens, on each side upon a raised dais three yards high and broad were seats
for the Eighty. At the east end, the Gonfaloniere and
Priori had their places, and here two doors led into the chambers set apart for
secret deliberation, and for the registry of taxes; at the west end there stood
a tribune and an altar with a picture by Fra Bartolommeo, at which mass was
said. The hall had also an ecclesiastical appearance, and Savonarola said: “the
angels have assisted in the work.”
This constitution was in full operation when
Maximilian was investing Leghorn. It is true there was no demand now for
brocade or cloth; the Stradioti laid waste the
country estates; there was no importation either by sea or land, for Siena also
was hostile; but that made little impression upon the citizens. They came in
such numbers to hear Savonarola’s sermons, that in the Cathedral of Sta Maria
del Fiore, in spite of its great size, galleries had to be built at the
entrance, opposite the pulpit, as in a theatre. The fasts were most strictly
observed. The games that the friar condemned were abandoned; and, in view of
the approaching war, they awaited the arrival of the fleet which Charles was
fitting out in Marseilles. But soon they had to learn that this fleet had been
wrecked in a storm. Weiskunig narrates that
Maximilian saw the French fleet arriving; and hereupon, as soon as he had
weighed anchor and spread his sails, there came first a cloud, and from it
wind, and then more clouds, and thereout there arose such a storm, that the
enemy’s ships were driven with him into the harbour, and part in battle and
part in storm were wrecked and lost. Where was now their hope and the promise
of God’s immediate help that the Dominican had made them? Yet they retained
sufficient courage, even at this critical moment, to receive within their walls
a host of fugitives, who had been beggared by the war. They could not do aught
else but carry the image of the Virgin through the streets, followed by all men
and women, clerics and children, with psalm - singing, prayers and
lamentations. They had just arrived with their tabernacle at the Porta Sta
Maria, when they perceived a messenger on a mare careering across the Ponte Sta
Trinità, and waving an olive-branch from afar. They
stopped and listened; some ships fitted out by their merchants, which had long
struggled with the same storm, had at last, owing to the wind having
unexpectedly shifted, been driven right past Maximilian into the harbour, and
so to Leghorn. The news was true. They seized the horse's reins; everyone
wanted to hear it for himself from the mouth of the messenger. We may imagine,
though the historians do not record it, how fervently they thanked God, the God
who had heard their prayers, for these tidings. What saved them, thwarted
Maximilian's plans. The Florentines would now no longer entertain the idea of
being separated from Charles VIII, of whose return Savonarola had always
reminded them. Leghorn was held for them by Swiss legions. Moreover, the
south-west wind levelled their enemy's tents on land, and scattered his ships
on the sea. Maximilian, meanwhile, saw the months, within which the money was
promised him, draw to a close; the Venetian and Sforza parties were already at
variance as to which should hold the harbour when they took it; and he heard of
letters from Venice itself, written with the object of inciting the army
against him. Overcome by the feeling of the impossibility of being able to
achieve anything under such circumstances, he said, “No! against the will of
God and men, he would not wage this war.” He turned towards Pisa, arrived at
Vico, appeared as if he still intended to do something, but did nothing, and,
though invited to the chase, hurried away to Pavla and home to Germany. After
this the Florentines cherished no doubt of Savonarola’s prophetic mission. At
Christmas, 1496, 1,300 children under eighteen years for only with their
eighteenth year were they wont to adopt the long cloak, and to rank as young
men partook of the Sacrament with the priest. On the following Shrove Tuesday
the children of every quarter went to the houses and begged for the “Anathema”,
that is “the accursed thing.” Their distribution into companies, their
processions, and songs at vespers under Correttori
were familiar. The men gave them cards, dice, and dice-boards, the women false
hair, paint, and perfumed waters. Many produced their Morgante, Boccaccio, and
indelicate pictures; some sacrificed their harps, remembering perhaps for what
purposes they had used them. Bartolommeo Baccio took the naked figures for they
should not be where young maidens congregated from his workshop and offered
them. In the market-place a stage was erected in the form of a pyramid with
many steps mounting up to it, and upon this all these things were piled. On the
day of the Carnival, the whole people came together, and the Signori took their
seats. Then came the children from the mass, dressed in white, with
olive-branches round their heads and red crosses in their hands, and sang
Italian hymns of praise. Four advanced to the Signori, received from them
burning torches and lighted the pyramid, which blazed up amid the blare of
trumpets. Meanwhile alms were collected for the poor who were ashamed to
beg.
The
severe religious tendency of this city forms a material link in the struggle
between the League and the French party. By declaring against the Pope, who
regarded himself as the head of the League, it gave the quarrel a new phase.
In
Ferrara, Savonarola's native place, we remark a similar condition of things.
Frequent fasting was observed, blasphemy was punished, and swearing was
prohibited. Beadles were sent through the streets to report on everything.
There is no doubt what was the object of all this. The inhabitants of Ferrara,
who had but little sympathy with the League, because it united both their
natural enemies, Venice and the Pope being, as they were, of French sympathies,
even to wearing French dresses and shoes endeavoured to counteract the Pope's
influence by still deeper piety. In spite of the great perils surrounding them,
they made processions every third day. In the King of France, Charles VIII, we
remark a kindred tendency. He asked his doctors whether or not the Pope was not
bound to hold a Council every ten years; whether, in case he neglected to do
so, the princes were not entitled to summon it; and further, in case all the
others neglected this duty, whether the King of France alone could not summon a
Council. He made known his intention of restoring the order of St. Benedict to
its original form, and of permitting no bishop to absent himself from his
diocese. Savonarola was the head of all enemies of the League and the Pope. He
condemned the wealth and the pomp of the clergy, for thereby the barrier was
broken which separated Church and world. By this means the children of the
world had entered into God's vineyard. But God's Word still endured, and they
were in no way bound to trust a prelate as much as it. Nay, no one ought to
teach God's Word except so long as his works were not prejudicial to the
operation of the doctrine. Acting in accordance with these principles, he
invited Charles orally, and the Emperor and the Spanish King in writing, to
undertake the reformation of the Church. But it was inevitable that he should
arouse hierarchical antipathy against himself. A man named Mariano de Genazzano, who had once preached at his side in Florence to
the admiration of the classical scholars, hurried to Rome to the Pope, and
there began one of his sermons with, "Cut this monster off from the
Church, holy Father!". Whilst Pope Alexander was at that very time giving
dispensation from oaths, in order that his enemies might die in prison, he
resolved at the same time to use his ecclesiastical weapons against Savonarola
and his adherents, as being heretics. But before this, he had another battle to
fight out with the partisans of the League in his own land, the Orsini. The
Orsini were no despicable foes. They killed his son, the Duke of Gandia, to
whom he had committed the staff of the Church to war against them, and he was
obliged to call Gonzalvo to his aid. Gonzalvo had just taken Taranto, which had
in vain flown the Venetian colours for the League would not allow Venice to
take its side and had subjected Sora to Federigo. He now vanquished a pirate,
who had taken Ostia and threatened to starve out Rome, and compelled the Orsini
to make peace. At this time the Neapolitan, Papal, and Spanish flags were all
flying in conjunction on the ships of Villamarino,
which were now victorious everywhere. Even Cardinal Giuliano was obliged to
come to terms. After this, when the Pope had leisure to turn his attention to
Savonarola, it happened that a factious rising in Florence aided him, and he
it. The leading Florentines could not forget the power they had enjoyed under
the Medici in former days, and their sons would not submit to the rigorous
discipline of the friar. Probably under the impression that Piero would now
have learnt to know them better, they allied themselves with his professed
adherents, the Bigi (they themselves were called the Arrabbiati), in order to
effect his recall. They were not successful. Benivieni,
whom the Signoria in their alarm sent to Savonarola, often related how he found
the friar reading in a book from which he looked up and said : “O ye of little
faith, God is with you! Mark ye, Piero will come as far as the gates and will
then turn back.” Nardi adds: “And so it really happened. One of those who had
already been seized by the Medici, escaped and came before daybreak to the gate
in order to close it, whereupon Piero found it closed and all quiet, and went
back again.” But how fierce and violent must this party feeling in the city
have been, to bring such an excellent and pious man, as the friar was, from his
path. To him especially is due the law that where any one is accused of a
political crime, he shall not be judged by the Signoria, or a Commission as a
court of last instance, but shall be allowed to appeal to the Council. This law
mitigated the Italian usage, that every victor should, as of right and under
certain legal formulas, be able to decide the question of life and death in the
case of his adversaries. But in August, 1497, when it was believed to have been
discovered who had taken Piero's part, Savonarola allowed his good law to be
infringed, and the accused were denied the right of appeal. His opponents
became, in consequence, only more violent and secret.
The
Pope now sided with them. The Tuscan Dominicans, whom Savonarola had separated
from the Lombards, the Pope joined with them again, interdicted him from
preaching, summoned him to Rome, and appointed the Lombard Vicar of the order
as his judge. But Savonarola continued preaching, received more brothers into
his convents daily, and refused to recognize his judge, saying “he could not
come to Rome on account of his enemies.” It availed him nothing that in
Florence signatures were collected attesting the fact that his teaching was
sound and productive of good fruit. In spite of all he was placed under ban.
After that his life depended upon the fact that his party never allowed its
enemies to become strong, for, by the then existing law, he could be at once
put to death. The Pope only required the secular arm.
In
Florence, however, towards the close of the year 1497, open dissensions burst
out. Some of the clergy condemned the processions of others, some the Mass that
others celebrated, and some again, as in an heretical city, desired not to
perform divine service any longer. The Franciscans, the old opponents of the
Dominicans, joined the party of the Arrabbiati and the Pope. Sometimes the
friar found his pulpit soiled. On one occasion some young men lifted a heavy
money-box during his sermon, let it fall and fled. He was escorted to church by
armed men, and whilst he was preaching one stood by him with a halbert. But sometimes, when some of the Arrabbiati joined
the Signoria, and the others were timid, he remained in his convent altogether.
Yet he did not lose courage. The moral of his teaching was that a pious and
learned man must not give way to a wicked and ignorant Pope. He comforted
himself in his convent with his successes. “Every day a greater number, out of
yearning for a more perfect life, forsake parents, friends, and goods, and
betake themselves where each must do or not do as his superior wills; where no
one has anything except what he absolutely needs, and where he can for a time
be deprived by his superior even of that. But here every one becomes daily
calmer, and confesses that Christ is his only joy. Only he who prays without ceasing
attains to a holiness, from whose rays his face beams with rapture.” He found himself in the midst of the struggle
between Popolari and Arrabbiati, the League and its enemies, the true and the
Roman Church, between heaven and hell. He openly interpreted those two flags,
the black and the white, in this sense. He felt certain of victory. At
Christmas he published his treatise, “Triumphus
Crucis.” Therein he represented Christ upon a triumphal car, above his head the
gleaming ball of the Trinity, in his left hand the Cross, in his right the Old
and the New Testaments; further below, the Virgin Mary; before the car,
patriarchs, prophets, apostles, and preachers; on either side the martyrs and
the doctors with opened books; behind him, all the converts; at a further
distance the innumerable crowd of enemies, emperors, powerful rulers,
philosophers, and heretics, all vanquished, their idols destroyed, and their
books burnt.
But
the longer it lasted, the more furious waxed the conflict. At Shrovetide, 1498,
his children desired to repeat the celebration of the previous year; but the
torches were torn out of their hands. At first, the children, and then even the
men, stoned each other. A significant instance of the extent of the feud was
afforded by the action of the painters, Baccio and Albertinelli.
They had always worked together, and had had all things in common. They now
left their workshop. The former went into a convent, the other became an
innkeeper. How was it possible that these differences could be settled but by
force? When, at last, a Franciscan friar presumed to declare that he would
prove in the fire that certain doctrines of the Dominicans were erroneous, it
appeared also to the latter that they had found another and the true decision
the ordeal. The Franciscans argued thus: if Savonarola would allow their friar
to perish in the fire, he was no saint; and upon this they built. The others,
who were half mad, who indulged sometimes in the market places in round dances
to the accompaniment of a spiritual song, and who had chosen for their war cry “Viva
Cristo!” hoped to conquer by the truth of their faith. During the sermon,
hundreds cried, “Look! Look! I will go for thy doctrine, O Lord, into the fire.”
Accordingly two piles of oak logs and brushwood, well saturated with pitch and
oil, were built up side by side, 40 feet in length, leaving a very narrow
passage between them, and on the 7th of April the Signoria, on this occasion
only Arrabbiati, sat awaiting the trial.
The Franciscans came quietly, the Dominicans
with burning torches, red crosses, and loud singing, led by Savonarola. The
monks approached the pyre; the Dominican seized the Host. At this moment the
crisis arrived. The Franciscans would not permit him to have the Host, as this
would be a test of the whole Christian faith, but he would not be prevented.
Hereupon ensued a quarrel, confusion, a shower of rain, and a general stampede.
Some rushed into the convent, others resorted to arms. Scenes of violence
followed, and the Arrabbiati would not allow the favour of the Signoria and the
propitious moment to pass by without taking advantage of it. They attacked the
Popolari in the streets and in the convent; and, although they did not take the
convent by storm, they remained masters of the situation. Savonarola took no
part in these proceedings. At first he exhorted his followers from the pulpit,
afterwards he prostrated himself in the choir of the church and prayed. When
all was quiet, he went out, and delivered himself up to his enemies.
There
was now no doubt that the League was victorious in Italy : the Arrabbiati were
as devoted to it as the Popolari were to the French. On the 7th of April the
Arrabbiati asserted their supremacy in Florence; on the 8th, Charles died, and
the League was victorious even in France. Charles was at the last occupied with
the internal affairs of his realm. Of his Grand Council he formed an ordinary
Court of Justice, consisting of seventeen members, something similar to the
later Reichshofrath of the Germans; in all
commanderies he had a general book of customs compiled; he intended to live on
his demesnes, and twice every week he sat to hear the complaints even of the
poorest. Having made all these arrangements, and equipped with better
alliances, he was again about to attempt to assert his right to Naples.
Savonarola, too, had always referred to his return. But on the 8th of April,
whilst passing through a gallery on his way to look at a game of tennis, he
suddenly fell down, and, though a moment before in perfect health, died in a
few minutes.
Many
are of opinion that this event first determined Savonarola's fate. Many
accusations had been brought up against him; and as often as torture was
applied, he confessed all that was wanted. But as soon as he came to himself
again, he denied everything, saying that “on the rack he would certainly
confess to it again.”
Meanwhile
his soul communed with itself. His pride was broken; if he ever had thought
himself holy, he thought so no longer. It often seemed to him as if Despair,
with a strong army with lances and swords, the standard of Justice before it,
and surrounded by instruments of torture, appeared in the town, called him from
afar, and, coming nearer, whispered into his ear all his sins; and then again
Hope, shining with the light of heaven, would comfort him. He spoke to himself
thus: “Thou hast loved the Lord many years, and hast wrought out of love to
Him; then didst thou exalt thy heart; then didst thou follow thine own
thoughts, and live in the vanity of thy mind; then did the Lord take His hand
from thee, and thou art like a sinner plunged into the depths of the sea.” He
had arrived at this holy self-enlightenment, when he was doomed to die; his
body was consigned to the fire.
With his death the essence of his teaching
and his influence was not destroyed. Simone Cronaca,
a good artist, honoured him whilst he was alive, and spoke of him when he was
dead. Even after thirty years, the accomplishment of his most famous prophecies
was expected to take place. But at that time, as we have said, the Arrabbiati
attained the principal offices. They did not now consider the recall of Piero
necessary for their safety. They were so devoted to the League, that all its
members, except the Venetians, considered it better to restore Pisa to
them.
3.
EXTENSION AND ASCENDENCY OE THE LEAGUE
Thus the object of the League was attained,
and Italy subjected to its views. But the extension and ascendency of the
League is fraught with other consequences for the whole of Europe, and for
later times. The alliance of the Houses of Hapsburg and Aragon is one result of
the conditions which obtained during these years. Ferdinand knew how to draw
the maritime princes into the sphere of his alliances, and among them first Dom
Manuel of Portugal. He had protected him whilst he was still Duke, and had made
military preparations in his favour when he inherited the throne after John's
death. But Dom Jorge, John's natural son, of whom all were afraid, was led by
Jacobo Almeida before the King to kiss hands, and war was averted. Ferdinand
promised his daughter Isabella to this Manuel. Isabella, who considered a
second marriage a bad thing, demanded that Manuel should at all events expel
from Portugal the Jews and all those whom the Inquisition had condemned. She
would not consent to be his wife until he had promised her this. After that
day, peace and union existed between Portugal and Spain for a century and a
half. At the same period, in August, 1497, and ever since the treaty with
Brittany, Ferdinand was negotiating with Henry VII of England. If Spain and
France quarrel, England must take part in it. In June, 1496, Henry joined the
League; he received hat and sword from the Pope, and received the envoys of all
the allies. His councillors, indeed, asserted that this was tantamount to
bringing the war to England; but this monarch, who never cared about taking the
field, except it might be against a rebel, well knew what he was about, and
that he was working at the iron wall, with which, as he said, he intended to
gird his realm. But, at present, great dangers threatened him from without: in
Flanders, from Margaret of York, widow of Charles the Bold, who, if she did not
actually incite his first rebel, Lambert Simnel, who declared himself to be Edward
of Warwick, at all events raised him to some importance by means of 2,000
Germans, whom she found means to send to his assistance. No one doubted that
the second rebel, Perkin Warbeck, who called himself Richard, Duke of York, was
also really her creature. The latter found his most reliable support in
Scotland, where King and nation united in their eagerness to cross the Tweed.
James IV allied Perkin with his house, brought him to Scotland, ravaged the
country, and was alternately in his palace and on the border; whilst the
people, whenever a truce was made, broke it on their own responsibility. In
both countries, Flanders and Scotland, the effect of the marriage arranged
between Katherine of Spain and Arthur, Prince of Wales, was felt. Ferdinand was
enabled by it to render the King of England secure on either side. At first,
through the Austrian alliance, the treaty of general intercourse between
England and Flanders was renewed; “rebels were to be extradited, including
Margaret’s territory.” The English merchants came in triumph to Antwerp, and
Maximilian, though hesitatingly, promised to ignore the so-called York. In
Scotland, Pedro de Ayala was playing his negotiations with sly circumspection,
in order to draw the King into the great political league. He understood how to
persuade Perkin and this appears to have escaped the notice of the English
historians that the Kings of England and Scotland had already come to an
agreement, and that there was therefore nothing left to him but to flee; and
when Perkin, on the ship of a Spaniard of San Sebastian, had joined the rebels
of Cornwall, he persuaded King James not to undertake the invasion of England
just at that moment, whereupon Perkin fell into Henry's power. King James then
married Margaret, daughter of Henry VII, whence resulted a long peace between
the Scots and the English, and finally the union of both kingdoms. The close
relationship in which James stood to John of Denmark, who possessed Norway and
claimed Sweden, cemented the peace which the Danes and English had, after a
long war, recently concluded. The chief members of the League were Ferdinand,
Henry, and Maximilian, the old allies of Brittany, yet now united, not merely
by their advantage, but by the blood of their children. All that now remained was that, if not Henry,
at all events Ferdinand and Maximilian should, as they had agreed, invade
France. But this scheme was confronted by the consideration that Ferdinand had
something to lose by it, whilst Maximilian would gain. Between Aragon and France
there lay certain frontiers, where ravaging was so regular, that whenever anyone
went on a pilgrimage, or took to him a wife, he had to submit to pillage at the
hands of both parties. Thus in this war also, Enrique Enriquez crossed the
frontier, and pillaged for three days and three nights; then well-armed
Gascons, Swiss, and French appeared on the other side, and the French succeeded
in surprising the Castle of Salsas. Thereupon, out of apprehension for
Roussillon, Ferdinand concluded a truce. Maximilian was discontented with these
doings. Not only the death of Charles, but a new phase of German politics
aroused him to fresh hopes.
After his return from Italy, his prestige in
the Empire was at first at a low ebb. The Elector Palatine was on good terms
with Charles, sent knights into his service, entreated a good reception for his
merchants, and delegates of both sides held meetings.
The
total setting aside of the decrees of Worms made the Elector of Mainz extremely
disaffected. He openly complained of Maximilian: “From top to bottom there was
little trace of earnestness; contrary to their resolutions Milan and Savoy had
been regranted; he was ill pleased to find that ordinances were made and
sealed, and yet not adhered to; in this way the Empire could not possibly
maintain its position.” Maximilian also perceived that he could not undertake
anything, until he had gained over both Electors and the Chancellor of Mainz,
Doctor Sturzler. He never attended any meeting of the
Diet. However, in consequence of the death of the elder Eberhard of
Württemberg, he effected a change. For Eberhard had appointed for his cousin
and heir a council of twelve men, four from each estate, without whom he could
do nothing, but who without him could discharge the daily business of the
State, and perform even the most important functions, if he did not accept
their invitation to appear; and had entrusted to this Government his
principles, and his devotion to the Emperor. But was it likely that the younger
Eberhard would follow his cousin after his death, seeing that he never cared to
follow him in his lifetime? Immediately after his arrival, he dismissed the old
councillors, took a prisoner, Doctor Holzinger, out of gaol, and made him
Chancellor. Thereupon Hug von Werdenberg refused to
be Chamberlain any longer; the Twelve complained that Eberhard intended to
surrender the country to the Count Palatine; but the Estates were not minded to
agree to that. They took his servant prisoner, and seized his cities. He
escaped with silver and jewels to Ulm. The Estates, the new Chamberlain, the
Councillors, the Chancery, the officials and the courtiers turned against him,
and renounced their allegiance. Maximilian, alarmed for the estrangement of the
country, hurried thither, and heard both sides. But for what purpose? It seems
that he had previously decided upon his verdict, “that the Estates and
Councillors had done right; the young Ulrich should be Duke under the
guardianship of the Twelve, and later should receive Sabina, the King’s niece,
to wife; but that the country should not, if his race died out, pass to the
Empire, as was formerly determined, but to Austria.”
Eberhard
renounced his duchy, repented of his action, fled to the Count Palatine,
assigned to him his silver plate and all right and title to his land, repented
of that also, and was imprisoned at Lindenfels until
his death. But Württemberg was completely loyal to the King.
In
the new prestige which the compact with Wurttemberg had gained for him,
Maximilian appeared in June, I498, at the Diet of Freiburg, which had opened
eight months previously. On this occasion he received from the Estates 70,000
guilders, without reckoning what had been received by the Common Penny tax in
his hereditary lands. It appeared now possible for him to acquire Burgundy, if
not Brittany. With this hope he ordered his army to advance to the borders of
Burgundy. The bold landsknechts boasted that if they were victorious this time,
France and Switzerland also would be in their power.
CHAPTER IV
FALL OF THE HOUSE OF SFORZA-ARAGON
I.
LOUIS XII AND VENICE AGAINST MILAN
The
situation was now as follows. The attacks of the French upon Naples and Milan
had leagued the King of Spain and the Pope with Ferrantino, and Venice and
Maximilian with Ludovico. Ferrantino had mainly been saved by Ferdinand, whilst
Ludovico owed his safety principally to Venice. In the midst of the dissensions
that Charles' advent had produced in Central Italy, a Spanish general from the
one side and Maximilian himself from the other had taken the field against the
French party. This party had been completely defeated. Round France itself
there had become formed, in the interest of the League, an alliance of all the
sovereigns.
Relying
upon this, Maximilian, in the summer of 1498, undertook a three-fold attack
upon France. He sent one corps against Langres, a
second against Châlons, and a third, under the command of his Marshal of
Franche-Comté, Guillaume de Vergy, against Dijon and
Burgundy. Three thousand Swiss were in his pay. He expected the help of the
League, and considered himself assured of success. But the first corps was in
July weakened and lamed in its movements by the heat, which suffocated the
horsemen in armour, and also by a want of provisions, which was increased by
the soldiers, who, impatient to see fire, preferred to burn down the rich villages
to plundering them. The second was driven back by the rains. The third saw the
enemy approach and retire, but concluded a treaty. This campaign was crowned
with so little success, that it has been overlooked by all later historians.
These
failures were due to the fact that the League at this precise moment ceased to
exist. Ferrantino was now dead, and his successor was hated by the King of
Spain. Venice was in feud and almost in open war with Ludovico on account of
Pisa. But the new King of France succeeded in winning over to himself the
defenders of Milan, and the defender of Naples. He drew the Pope to his side,
and repulsed the attacks of Maximilian. He made matters look at the moment as
though there never had been a League. It is our acquaintance, the Duke of
Orleans, now King Louis XII.
He
was standing, the story goes, at his window, without knowing that Charles was
dead or even ill, when the royal bodyguard drew up before him, and shouted “Vivat!”
to their new Lord and King. On this he spoke, as well as he knew how, in terms
of laudation of Charles VIII, sprinkled his body with holy water, and received
the fealty of the grandees.
Louis
was a perfectly developed man, more in the apogee than in the perigee of life,
and already a little afflicted with the gout. That wildness of his early youth,
when his chamberlains dared not chastise him unless disguised - for fear he
should revenge himself - that impetuousness of later days, disclosed at
revelries, tournaments, and in domestic wars, were passed and gone. But he was
still beyond all others a prince, and a true knight. The first thing he
conceived he ought to guard was his honour. Whoever attacked him, or accused
him of the smallest breach of faith, would be refuted by the sword. After that,
his lands and his rights were nearest to his heart. “I will endure everything”,
said he, “save where my honour and my lands are concerned.” He had not such
bold plans as had Charles, and had not Maximilian's love of conquest. Only his
rights he was resolved to assert, and therefore did not select a “Plus Ultra”,
but a porcupine for a symbol. It was he who finely said, “The King does not
avenge what has been done to the Duke.” He preferred to sell his demesnes for
the purpose of carrying on his wars, rather than to exhaust his poor subjects
with taxes. The same feeling made him forbearing and kind towards others.
Moreover, increasing years made him more economical every day. His first action
was to defray the expense of his predecessor's interment at Blois out of the
savings of his own private exchequer.
The
internal government he committed from the first into the hands of the
Archbishop of Rouen, Georges d'Amboise. When at the Court of Louis XI, Georges
had taken the side of the present King, even in opposition to his own brother.
For his sake he had suffered imprisonment, for endeavouring to advantage him at
the expense of Charles VIII. They were only three years apart in respect of
age, and were entirely devoted one to the other; and, especially after the
death of Dunois, Georges had the full and undivided confidence of his master.
The
first duty of the King and his Archbishop was to provide that internal peace
was perfectly assured. Charles's sister, Anne of Bourbon, demanded, at the
least, a compensation for the increment her grandfather, her father, and
brother, had acquired for the Crown. She was content when her daughter Suzanne
was guaranteed an almost relinquished right of succession to all the
possessions of her house. The Prince of Orange regained his sovereignty. All
who were afraid of Louis, because they had oft ended him whilst Duke, perhaps
in his feud with the Queen Regent, were
comforted, when he showed a mark of favour to the brave La Tremouille,
who had formerly taken him prisoner, and marked the names of the others with
the red cross of pardon. Only he would not brook any limitation of the rights
of the Crown. A new tribunal decided against René's claims to Provence. The
weightiest question that he had to determine concerned Brittany, which by Charles's
marriage with Anne had become attached to the Crown, but which, owing to his
death, had now become separated from it again. Louis XII did not scruple to
divorce his wife Jeanne, in order to re-marry with his predecessor's heiress,
Anne. Jeanne was certainly not beautiful, nor had she borne him children. She
now betook herself to Bourges, where, with some sisters in connection of the
order of the Annunciation, she dispensed alms with true benevolence, and was
reverenced as a saint by the people, who always remained attached to her.
Anne
made it a condition that Brittany should neither pay taxes, nor have officials
appointed in it, nor be called upon to make war, without her consent. Louis
united on his coins the arms of Brittany and France.
Upon
other coins, as soon as he had entered Paris, he styled himself King of Naples
and Milan. He was certain of his rights to these countries; he had fought for
both; and now he wished to enforce them. It was a great advantage to him that
the League collapsed, and that half of the allies even took his side. After
Enrique Enriquez had been killed in a riot at Perpignan, and Roussillon was
threatened by the French and was not minded to defend itself, Ferdinand
concluded a treaty with Louis, securing his own interests and the possessions
of the House of Burgundy; yet it did not include Federigo. The Pope hoped to
obtain from Louis so many advantages for his house, that he was quite ready to
pronounce the divorce from Jeanne. The Venetians sent him sixty falcons from Candia
and two hundred valuable furs, as a coronation present.
The
successive enterprises of Louis with the Venetians, with the Pope, and with
Ferdinand, are distinguished more by unity of event than by unity of action.
Never more than one of his allies was engaged at a time; they appear as so many
distinct and different enterprises.
The
first was the expedition against Milan. It was supported by the feud between
Venice and Ludovico.
After
the death of Savonarola, when the Florentines again attacked Pisa, Ludovico
took the side of the assailants, “for it belongs to them”; Venice sided with
the attacked, “for a promise must be kept”. Hereupon, the Venetians won over
Pitigliano, and Ludovico the Marquis of Mantua. The former threatened a French
alliance; the latter replied that such would be to their own damage. In the
Council of the Pregadi conflicting opinions were
expressed; some old fathers could not conceal their apprehensions; others were
for combating Ludovico unaided. Others again, those who hated him most
cordially – “for if ever they had a secret plan did he not at once adopt public
measures to thwart it? and a neighbour, served by their traitors, was the most
intolerable of all -: this third party proposed an alliance with France. How
could Ludovico believe that they, who had waged a great war against a man,
because they would not have him for a neighbour when Duke, would call him in,
after he had become King? He did not fear this.” He continued his hostile
operations against Pisa, without paying any attention to the Venetians, who
supplied it with both money and men.
In
this quarrel he really retained the upper hand. Through his influence Paolo
Vitelli was entrusted with the command of the Florentines, and, with his
assistance, he succeeded, between June and October, 1498, in taking castle
after castle round about Pisa, as well as Vico and Librafatta,
and in reducing the city to extremities. Against him the Venetians tried first
of all their own resources. They knew that they were deceived by the lords in
the Romagna, and nevertheless they took them into their service. Thus they were
enabled to place a large body of cavalry in the field, though not without the
heaviest expense; 16,600 horse in all. They then, now by Bologna and now by
Perugia and now again by Siena, attempted to threaten Florence itself which lay
on the other side of the Apennines. On one occasion Alviano succeeded in
crossing over, and opposed Paolo Vitelli. But though their men hurried by day
and night to his succour through the Ferrarese territory, Ludovico's cavalry,
under the brothers Sanseverino, with no less despatch, spurred their horses,
and rode day and night to come to Vitelli's aid at Forli, Imola, and Faenza. At
last great detachments, as many as 300 men at once, deserted from the Venetian
camp, which by these means had been surrounded in the hills, “for they had
neither straw, nor money, nor bread”. Others dashed after them to take from
them the recruiting-money, until the whole army became disbanded; so that this
undertaking resulted in failure for Venice. In their indignation at this
ill-fortune, “for which Ludovico was alone to blame”, they resolved on a
campaign against him himself. They left Ercole of Ferrara, who was not
particularly friendly to them, to settle the Pisan affair. Meanwhile, they made
a proposal to King Louis: they offered to assist him with 6,000 horse in an
expedition against Milan, on condition that he would guarantee them a portion
of the territory of Cremona and the Ghiara d'Adda. The King no sooner heard the conditions than he
acceded. On the 10th of February the agreement was arrived at, and the man who
had attacked Ludovico, and the city which had mainly defended him, were now
both leagued together against him.
Ludovico
was not dismayed. He considered himself the cleverest man in Italy. On one
occasion, when the papal master of the ceremonies wished to explain to him how
he must address a cardinal, he answered, “Have you ever seen a Duke of Milan
who has done what I have done? I shall know also how to act on this occasion”.
In Milan there might often be seen a painting of a rose branch, with the motto,
"With time”, or a painter's brush with the motto, “With merit and time”.
The mulberry tree, “which does not shoot forth its leaves until spring is at hand,
and then quicker than all other trees”, he may perhaps have regarded as the
emblem of his cleverness. He said, “In one hand he had peace, and in the other
war; but even in war the pen could do more than the sword.”
Time
was the only thing his shrewdness took into calculation; in other respects it
employed the boldest schemes and the most dangerous means. Alfonso of Calabria
was made to assist him against Venice, and Venice against Alfonso. His country
was on one occasion defended for him by the Duke of Orleans, notwithstanding he
desired it for himself, and on another by Maximilian, to whom it belonged of
right. His cavalry had emblazoned on their standard a Moor with his right hand
holding back an eagle's wing, and with the left strangling a dragon. Ludovico
was a gambler, who staked the whole of his existence upon a throw of the dice;
for he knew the dice obeyed him. He only accepted advice from the stars. He
never concluded a truce, even for three days, without consulting his
astrologer.
I
cannot say what his astrologer may have told him on this occasion; but, as
things were, he needed not to be much alarmed. His brother Ascanio - a man ever
full of schemes and secrets, and untiring - was with him, and kept the
Ghibellines, as he himself kept the Guelphs, on his side; under these
circumstances, he was justified in feeling assured of his country. Should he
then fear an attack on the part of Venice? In the Turks he could arouse an
enemy to that city, who would keep it sufficiently employed. Or should the
lances of the French strike terror into his breast? He had other and stronger
fortresses to throw in their way. It would be more dangerous if Louis enlisted
Swiss; for no Italian infantry could stand against them. But Ludovico also was
firmly allied with Schwyz and Unterwalden, and with Bern and Lucerne; and in
case these could not prevent an enlistment being made by the French, they
could, at all events, easily provide him with an equal number of their men,
whom he could lead against the King. In this way he was on an equal footing
with his enemies. Through his alliance with Maximilian, and through the
landsknechts who, in consequence, were at his disposal, he was even superior to
them. Besides, it did not so much depend upon the collective strength of the
States, as upon how much money each could employ. Ludovico was thus of good
heart. Three years previously he had had coins struck, one of which bore a
device of a snake, his emblem, guarding a lily, and another that of a snake
bending down the cup of a lily, a sign of his power over France: at this time
he had a picture in his hall representing Italy full of cocks, hens, and
chickens - intended for Gauls, Frenchmen - and in the midst of them a Moor
sweeping them out with a broom.
2.
SWISS AND SWABIANS IMPLICATED IN THE WAR
Maximilian
was as much interested in this struggle as Ludovico.
Valentina,
Louis' grandmother, had a hundred years previously helped to kindle the deadly
enmity between Burgundy and Orleans. An Orleans was now reigning in France, and
even possessed Burgundy; and the head of the House of Burgundy was King of the
Germans, and demanded Burgundy back. The Sforza, whom the former attacked for
his grandmother's sake, the latter was bound to defend for the sake of his
wife. The Duke of Gelderland, who was related to Louis, Maximilian wished to
destroy as a rebel to him; so that they were enemies on three accounts.
Although
Maximilian's son, Philip, had been obliged to promise never to attempt to take
Burgundy by force of arms, and moreover to serve King Louis against every soul
without any exception, yet he was never inclined for peace: “peace was like
corn that had been harvested while yet unripe
by peace he would never conquer his land.” In vain René and Frederick
the Wise endeavoured to mediate. Forthwith in the country of the Duke of
Gelderland, who had received French aid, the war was continued which had been
already waged at Leghorn and on the Saone.
It
is evident how closely Ludovico and Maximilian were allied. Ludovico desired no
treaty with France, if the German King had none, for he would not sever himself
from the fortunes of his ally. Maximilian repeated : “the Duke would be able to
defend himself without foreign aid; but, in case he could not do so, he would
in person come to his assistance with the whole strength of the Holy Empire,
and protect Milan as well as the Tyrol.”
Since,
then, Ludovico's superiority was due to this alliance it was important for the
French King to try to occupy the German King in another way. He could cause him
trouble in Germany, and there are letters extant, wherein he reminds the Count
Palatine of the century-long alliance of their House, and promises one of his
sons a pension at his Court, and to another high ecclesiastical dignities. But
how if he found ways and means of attaching the Swiss to himself, so as to be
enabled to avail himself of their infantry; to ally them so closely with
himself that Ludovico would receive no assistance from them, and at the same
time to involve them in war with Maximilian, so that he would have to fear for
himself, and would not dare to come to the assistance of another?
Without
any action on his part, the desired opportunity arose. The accident that in the
year 1498, Georg Gossenbrod of Augsburg, Royal
Councillor in the Tyrol, journeyed with his wife to the watering-place of Pfaffers, and there met an enemy, Count Jorg of Sargans, and that the latter tried to take him prisoner,
was ordained to determine the course of public affairs, and bring this great
struggle to a head.
Count
Jorg had once schemed to bring the Tyrol to the crown of Bavaria, and on that
account had been outlawed by the King. Unconcerned thereat, he lived with one
cook in the castle of Ortenstein by selling his
estates, and slept in the tower, where his bed may still be seen; for he was on
terms of friendship with the monks of Chur, and made common cause with them.
The Abbot of Pfaffers, to whom Gossenbrod
owed his preservation and who was also a friend of Maximilian - the latter
confided to him his schemes and successes - was forced by Jorg to leave his
monastery. Now between Chur and the Tyrol there had existed, since time out of
mind, differences, which had lately been revived. These differences affected
the Engadine as far as Pont'alto,
where their frontiers touched, the administratorship
of the Minster in the Münsterthal, to which both laid
claim, as also the hereditary office of cup-bearer, which Maximilian declined
to receive, as former Counts had done, as a fief from Chur. Gossenbrod
availed himself of this feud to take revenge. He mocked the people of the
bishopric of Chur, and encouraged the Tyrolese, until the latter, who had been
posted by him in strong detachments on the border, invaded and occupied the Münsterthal; the others at once sallied out and recovered
it. Upon this, both appealed to their allies; the people of Chur summoned to
their aid the Upper League and the Ten Jurisdictions, with which they formed
the Grisons Confederation, and the people of Uri, with six other Swiss cantons,
with whom they had allied themselves in 1497, “until the end of all things”;
and these called in the others who were members of the Confederation. The Tyrol
called to its assistance the princes, lords, and cities of the Swabian League.
In a trice the whole frontier was in arms; on the one side the Swiss, and on
the other the landsknechts; each waited to see what the other would do.
This
was not a plot of the King of France, yet the event relieved him of perplexity.
It was still doubtful whether there would be war or not; for Maximilian could
not be anxious for it, and, moreover, on the 5th February, 1499, the recess of
Lucerne declared that terms had been arrived at, and that it was doubtful
whether the cantons which favoured Milan would join the others. It came to pass
quite spontaneously. In German countries it frequently happens that among
neighbours, questions of cattle and landmarks, and especially boundaries of
properties, aided by boasting, scoffing, and diverse claims, create hatred such
as that which exists between two brothers who have quarrelled - the more
intense as its origin becomes more and more obscure. The least stimulus arouses
it. So here, when the Swiss, thinking peace was assured, retired from their
frontier and passed through Gutenberg, the German landsknechts crept on all
fours over the walls and lowed at one another like cows. Where the Rhine separated
the two peoples, the Germans dressed up a cow, danced with it and cried that
they had the bride, and the others should send them the bridegroom. In Bendre
they christened a calf “Amman Reding”; and amused themselves at Constance, Diessenhofen, and elsewhere with variations of the same
joke. Enraged thereat, some troops from Zurich and Zug crossed the Rhine on the
6th of February, routed the enemy, and ran across hedge and ditch away to the
Lake of Constance, where they again attacked the landsknechts, whose leaders
had become despondent and wished to return, with such onslaught, that they
drove some of them into the ditches, where they were drowned, others into the
morasses, where they died of cold, while others fled before them to Ulm and
Augsburg, where they told their tale of terror.
This
event made war a certainty and united the Swiss. Schwyz and Unterwalden,
Lucerne and Bern had previously joined the League; and Glarus wanted to make a
fifth. They had joined in Maximilian's interest, who, owing to this, had Swiss
envoys with him on his Leghorn expedition, and Swiss soldiers in his war with
Burgundy. The same cantons were allies of Ludovico. But now it was a case of
another alliance, directed, if not expressly against Ludovico, at any rate
against Maximilian, by whose councillors the feud had been caused, and whose
landsknechts had made it burst forth. The Confederation held better together
than the League; all the cantons united for war. Louis saw it, and as he had
come to terms with Venice and the Pope, and as in the interior of Germany the
Houses of the Palatinate and Bavaria-Landshut, both opposed to the House of
Austria, entered into a close alliance, he offered the Swiss his alliance.
Although Ludovico let it be known that he “had never supported the Swabians,
and he desired to be mediator between them and the Swiss”, for he too saw the
danger, and although there were many among the Swiss who were opposed to a war
with Austria, yet the contrary opinion was the prevailing one : “for what had
the House of Austria ever done for them, save abuse in words and war in deed;
but that was the way to bring its plans to nought.” On the 21st March, 1499,
they all concluded a treaty in these terms: “The King promises to assist them
in their wars with men and money, and to give in peace, besides, to every
canton 2,000 Rhenish guilders annually, in return for which they concede to him
free enlistment, and to no one else in opposition to him”; and appended their
ten seals to the document. They then emblazoned the Crucifixion on their
standards and guarded their frontiers.
High
among the mountains, where spring the sources of the Inn and the Adige, along
the Rhine valley lying between Sennwald in Appenzell
and the red wall of the Vorarlberg, on both shores of the Lake of Constance,
down to where the Rhine finishes its upper course and leaps downwards to the
plain, they stood; men from the Orisons against the Tyrolese and troops from
Appenzell and St. Gall against the King's landsknechts and countrymen, the nine
districts in Thurgau against Constance and the cities of the Swabian League,
Zurich and Solothurn, against the nobles of Sundgau
and Hegau. Between them flowed the Rhine, both its
banks adorned with the gorgeous mantle of spring. But among them many a Swabian
might have been heard to boast, how he would fire and burn in the enemy's
country, so that St. Peter would not for the very smoke be able to find the
gate of heaven; and, should he die, his comrades were conjured to crush his
bones to make powder wherewith to exterminate the foe. The Swiss, on their
side, swore by the saints that they would take no prisoners, but slay all their
enemies, as their fathers had done before them. The former only wished to vent
their hatred, the latter to protect their freedom that was threatened j and
thus they waged their war.
At
the same time, the Confederates on one occasion crossed the Rhine to attack the
men of Wallgau, whilst the Leaguers crossed the
bridge of Constance and marched towards the Schwaderloch.
Hereupon the landsturm was called out; on the Swabian side by the firing of
shots, and on the Swiss side by smoke, and the people ran to their places of
rendezvous. The men of Thurgau, Bischofzell, and St.
Gall assembled at the Schwaderloch to the assistance
of the whole Confederation, and sallied forth to find the landsknechts. These
were already on their way home, their waggons full of corn, and their muskets
and field-pieces hung with pans, kettles, and all manner of pillage. But their
enemies, by taking shorter roads through the woods, caught them up and engaged
them in bloody encounters; and when the leader of the infantry, Burkard von Randeck, who was considered the bitterest foe of the Swiss,
had fallen, and the leader of the horse, Wolf von Fürstenberg, had taken flight
after a chivalrous struggle, the landsknechts left both their muskets and booty
behind, and fled towards the city-bridge, and to the ships in the lake. This
was the battle of Schwaderloch.
Meanwhile
Swabians, with men from Algau and Etschland,
collected at Frastenz. The miners came out of their
pits, arrayed themselves in steel, vaunted themselves greatly, and came to the
battle. They did not dare to follow up their enemy, but entrenched themselves
behind ramparts, and so awaited their onslaught. Above, on the top of the Lanzengast were posted 300 arquebusiers, and at its foot
the miners. The Swiss advanced against them in two divisions; the main body
against the rampart in the valley, whilst a detachment of 2,000 scaled the Lanzengast. At the first pause Heini Wolleb
rode in front of the 2,000; he then dismounted, ordered them to kneel, and said
the Lord's prayer : he cried, “in God's name follow me.” He led them through
the ravines, where each one had to draw up his fellow by his lance, first into
the fire of the arquebusiers, and then into close quarters with them, until
they were routed; this done, they attacked the miners, and drove their first
and second line behind their entrenchments; and here, already victorious, he
met with the main body. With united forces, they scaled the great barricade,
and saw the enemy drawn up in three bodies, in act of preparing their guns for
action. For one moment they threw themselves flat on the ground, until the
shots had passed over their heads: they then wanted to rise up. “Not yet,
confederates!” cried Heini, 2wait for another shot, and then at them.” They all
knelt down except himself. He, a tall, powerful man, stood up in the midst of
all to maintain discipline; careful for all, but fearless for himself. The bullets
flew again, but all missed save one, and this laid him low. “Lay me by and
attack them”, he cried. Within two hours the Swabians had been driven from
their camp. The corpses with their red crosses floated down to Feldkirch. The men of Wallgau
came even upon the battlefield to the victors with the sacrament, priests,
women, and children, and begged for mercy. The Swabians took comfort and said, “Where
is now your Wolleb?”. The Swiss replied, “He is
playing dice with Randeck.”
The
Swiss were everywhere in advantage. From Thiengen the
landsknechts retired before them in their shirts, a white staff and a piece of
bread in their hands. The lady of Blumeneck carried
her husband away from the castle as the dearest treasure that she was allowed
to take. On the Malserheide the three bands of the
Tyrolese fled before the men of the Orisons when the horn of Uri echoed from
afar. The King's troops, on the other hand, climbed the topmost hills
commanding the Engadine, and pursued the enemy down
the side. But when they had reached the valley, they found the bridges, across
which they had to go, on fire, villages, in which they intended to pass the
night, in flames, and stores that they wanted to eat, all destroyed. They, the
plunderers, had to pluck grass to satisfy the cravings of hunger, and were half
mad from want; the fresh waters of these mountains were their sole comfort.
Such
was the character of this war: there was no question on either side of conquest
or attack. No! it was merely defence and revenge. They entrench themselves,
sally forth, pillage, plunder, burn, and return home again. The neighbouring
cities might easily, at that time, have joined the league of the Confederates;
but these were as cruel as their enemies, and throughout the whole of Swabia,
on every Wednesday evening and every Saturday, after the sermon, they prayed
for the League, the widows and orphans, and the general peace. Conquest was not
the intention of the Swiss either; their war served no one save the King of
France.
For
in this way it came about that Maximilian became involved in an arduous war.
Ludovico had to forego all assistance from him, and found himself, as his ally,
even deprived of Swiss aid. Danger threatened him, if the French succeeded at
the same time in leading Swiss against Milan. To effect an arrangement with the
Swiss, Ludovico sent Galeazzo Visconti with thirty horses across Valais to
Bern. Schwyz, at all events, declared for him, but all to no purpose: he could
not bring about any arrangement. There was only one way of escape, viz.
if Maximilian were to engage the Swiss in such a conflict, that they would
forget to lend their aid to others.
In
June, 1499, Maximilian came upon the scene. The daily invitations addressed to
him by his people had at last induced him to leave those enemies in Gelderland
whom he was for ever pursuing, and never catching. In an open letter to the
Estates of the empire he enumerated the crimes the Confederates had committed
against the Empire and Austria; and he succeeded in raising a considerable
number to assist him. In a short time, a strong army of the Empire and the
League was assembled at Constance. The soldiers of Gelderland and Burgundy were
at Dorneck under the command of Count Furstenberg. He
felt sure of success. If the Swiss ever really offered him, as is related, that
they would serve the Empire, and wage his wars against the Turks, it must have
been on this occasion.
He
threw them into great alarm and trepidation, but did not succeed in preventing
them from joining the French. Yet when Louis XII made them a proposal in these
terms, “He was taking the field, in order to take his hereditary land of Milan;
how if his allies showed themselves on the hills with only three thousand men?”
the cantons refused him this request; but a few thousand individuals were
induced by his pay - for their country had nothing to give them - to forget
their country, and, in spite of all, to join the King's hommes d'armes, who were collecting at Asti.
The
decision on both sides now depended on arms and open war alone. If only
Maximilian was victorious over the Swiss, Ludovico could join the Swabian
League, and this might come to protect Milan.
On
the 13th July, 1499, with his artillery, and accompanied by his knights in
coats of mail and waving plumes, Maximilian advanced over the bridge of
Constance towards the Schwaderloch. Scarcely
recognizable in his old green tunic and his great hat, he rode about and gave
his commands. The Eagle of the Empire waved in the hand of the Cupbearer of
Limburg. The astrologers prophesied success. He waited for the enemy to come
down from the mountains; but they did not come. He therefore resolved to hunt
them out in their native hills; and many of his followers expected, as he
himself did, to strike a grand blow. But his nobles remembered Sempach and Charles the Bold. Should they risk their noble
blood against peasants? The captains of his Württembergers
declared that, “they were tired out with marching, and must wait for the
strength of the whole League to come up.” They would not follow him. The King
threw away his glove, and rode off; they returned hastily to the city.
After
this Count Fürstenberg, at all events, resolved to make a raid from Dorneck. One day a provost of the Cathedral at Basel had a
banquet prepared in the Cathedral tower, in order, with his friends, to look
out upon Dorneck in flames. The same day, Nicholas
Conrad, bailiff of Solothurn, sat at table at Liestal,
when he learnt that the castle was threatened. He did not wait for other
confederates, but with his own followers mounted the heights above the enemy's
camp. The horsemen were scattered about the villages; the landsknechts were
drinking and dancing, or else shouting and quarrelling; their captains made
themselves comfortable in undress. Upon this camp Conrad fell, and the Bern and
Zurich soldiers followed him. At first it looked as if they must succeed. But
when the experienced landsknechts had drawn themselves up in line, and were
supported by their cavalry, it was doubtful, and some Swiss fled into the woods
near the Scharfenflue. All at once horns and shouts
and the sound of feet. Both sides looked up to see who was coming, and which
party's lot was to be victory and life, and whose defeat and death. There
appeared a flag, folded like a banner; it was the flag of Lucerne. The brave
fellows, from Lucerne and Zug, had been informed of the battle that was raging
and had seen the fugitives in the wood; they forthwith hung up their knapsacks
on a great pear tree, came, and fell upon the enemy. The confederates,
thereupon, took courage, and the landsknechts lost heart. Count Heinrich fell,
and four thousand men with him. Maximilian's hopes were over. At first he shut
himself up in his castle at Lindau, and would not admit any of the princes; but
soon he composed himself. In the evening he opened his door, and dined in
public; he then gazed from his window at the stars, and spoke of their nature.
He was inclined for peace; he accepted Galeazzo's mediation, and agreed to a
conference at Schaffhausen.
But
before any terms were arrived at - nay, even before any regular meetings had
taken place, even whilst fighting was going on in the Hegau,
and Laufenburg was being threatened -, the French
threw themselves upon Ludovico.
Ludovico
saw his fate approaching. Against him was arrayed, on the one side, the same
Trivulzio of whom only three years previously he had publicly announced that “a
halter awaited him as soon as caught”; against whom he had roused warrior upon
warrior to prove to him his treachery and cowardice; of whom, finally, he had
had a picture exhibited in all his cities, representing him as hanging by the
legs. Now, however, Trivulzio had 1,500 lances and 15,000 men on foot under his
command. On the other side, the Venetians were arming against him. He had hoped
for assistance from the Swiss, but they were leagued with his enemies; from the
Germans, but they were fighting against the Swiss; even a little from the
Arrabbiati at Florence, but they were engaged on a campaign against Pisa.
Finally, he had relied upon Bajazet; but how could Bajazet help him? for Venice
was fitting out two armies, one against the Turks, and one against him. At this
critical moment, all his foreign alliances, which had made him what he was,
failed. The pen availed him nothing; the sword could alone decide. He still
relied upon his castles, and those favourites in them, whom he had from the
first honoured more than his party; he still trusted to his two armies on his
two frontiers, who were not to engage the enemy in open battle, but to come to
the assistance of the menaced castles; he relied, finally, upon the fidelity of
his Milanese, whose beneficent lord he had ever been.
But
even this calculation proved false. For castle after castle surrendered as soon
as Trivulzio showed himself. Those favourites of Ludovico were Guelphs, and
their head, Trivulzio, was more to them than he was. The garrison of Valenza
had just prepared itself to give the enemy battle outside the walls, and
awaited their attack, when the commander, Donato, let them in through the
castle, and they saw themselves taken in the rear. At one stroke, Tortona, Voghera, and the whole
country across the Po was lost. It was said that Trivulzio had brought with him
300,000 ecus for the commanders; that Donato received 5,000; and that there was
no castellan, and no official in any castle in Milanese territory, who had not
been bribed.
Everything
now depended upon the preservation of Alessandria, and into it Galeazzo
Sanseverino threw himself with one of the two armies. Ludovico meant to exert
all his strength to keep it. He summoned Francesco Sanseverino, who was in
command of the other army, to come to the aid of his brother. Many warned him,
and this commander's name was mentioned among fifteen others suspected of treason.
"Whom shall I trust if not Francesco?" he exclaimed. He had loaded
him with favours, and had treated him as a son. Yet, when Francesco had arrived
at the Ticino he refused to cross and come to his brother's assistance.
Ludovico, indeed, persuaded himself that he was unable to do so without risking
a battle, and this must, under all circumstances, be avoided; but everybody
else said that Francesco's treachery was patent.
In
this strait, Galeazzo thought also on self-preservation. He saw his walls
crumbling under the enemy's fire and his foes making ready to storm the city.
He would not surrender, and neither would he defend himself to the last push.
He arranged with Constantin de Montferrat, one of the leaders of the enemy, for
permission to march off privily: and, accordingly, on the 28th August, 1499,
between the third and fourth hour of the night, Galeazzo and his hommes d'armes took to flight. They took different roads; some
the direction of the Po, in order to gain the main road, others the road to Montferrat,
to reach Milan by way of Genoa. They were four hours gone, when the reveille
sounded in the French camp, and the pursuit of the fugitives began. Galeazzo,
two of the Sforza, the Count of Melzo, and Luzio
Malvezzi escaped across the Po. But in Montferrat, Constantin could not keep
his plighted word; the hommes d'armes were
deprived of their horses and weapons.
The
city had fallen; the country was defenceless; and Galeazzo's army was
annihilated. “Haste”, wrote Ludovico to Visconti: “haste to his Imperial
Majesty; announce to him this calamity. Kneel before him and implore him not to
allow us to perish, but to come at once to our aid with as great an army as he
can muster. In this citadel we will shut ourselves up and wait until his
Majesty comes to deliver us.” That was Ludovico's first resolve, and he still
relied upon the Milanese, whom he considered faithful to him, and whom he had
already organized into companies. But their feelings towards him proved
unreliable; they were willing to remain faithful to their lord, but it should,
if possible, be to their advantage, and certainly not to their harm. To risk
life for him, life that was to them the greatest of all goods, never entered
into their calculations. When the Venetians were come across the Oglio and would entertain no new proposals, Guelphs and
French sympathizers showed themselves even in the capital. On the 30th August,
the Treasurer, Landriano, was attacked on his way to
the palace by an insolent fellow who had twelve horsemen in his pay, and was
thrown wounded under his horse. This occurrence showed Ludovico plainly that he
could not count upon the Milanese, and could not trust himself and his family
to them. On the following day he lifted up his sons, Massimiliano, aged nine,
and Francesco, aged seven, kissed them, gave them into his brother's keeping,
and sent them with his treasure to Germany. This done, on the 1st September he
chose four men; these again co-opted eight others from the first families, all
Ghibellines. He granted each of them an estate, and committed the government
into their hands. He too intended to cross the mountains. After having
committed his castle and his jewels to the keeping of Bernardino da Corte, whom
he had brought up and raised from the dust, and had received the kiss of fealty
from him, all was arranged, and he said to his companions, “God be with you.”
He then went forth alone to the Church of the Madonna delle
Grazie. His wife, Beatrice, the companion of his
prosperity, with whom his good fortune had died, lay here entombed. Here
Leonardo da Vinci had painted them both, him with the elder child on his lap,
and her with the younger. The beams of the setting sun slanted through the
windows. He stood at the foot of her grave. The monks of the convent escorted him
out of the church. He looked once more around. What a fabric, closely woven of
coloured threads, which can never be altered, happiness and fortune, guilt and
calamity, is this mortal life! He burst into a flood of tears. Thrice he
turned, and then stood long, lost in thought and motionless, with his head
bowed to the earth. In the castle yard, meanwhile, the bustle of horses and
men, who were to escort him on his way, was heard. The next morning, at break
of day, they all took the road to Como. Of all other cities the people of Como
were the most Ghibelline and ducal in their sympathies. Once again they
welcomed their Prince, and gave him quarters in the episcopal palace. The
following morning they came together at his command in the garden by the lake.
He stood amongst them on a rising knoll and addressed them. “Citizens, my most
faithful subjects! My fortune stood high, but now it has changed. I have spared
neither energy, nor friends, nor strength. Yet all in vain; no one can resist
treachery. I will now give way a little to fate, and will not struggle against
God, will not destroy so many peoples, and still save my own. I go to my
nephew, the august King of the Romans, and I hope, with his assistance, in a
short time to return as conqueror. Follow, then, my advice. When the French
come, do not oppose them, but obey them. But preserve your allegiance to me, so
that when I come I may not be received as an enemy, but as your true and first
lord and master. If I can do you any favour, tell it me, for I am still among
you.” Codito, a citizen, answered him in these words.
“With thy departure, O Prince, we pass from day to night. If thou wilt still do
us a favour, relieve us of toll for ten years, so that we may each day praise
thy generosity, and deliver the citadel into our keeping.” He did not hesitate
to grant the first request, but at the second he showed some hesitation. They
shouted loud: “Go not away from us. Prince! we will have no other lord but
thee. But if thou wilt go, give into our hands the castle, wherein is our
safety and our destruction.” As he granted this petition, a cry was raised that
the enemy were already in the Borgo. He instantly embarked, sailed down the
lake and journeyed up the Valtelline. Having arrived
at the baths of Bormio, at the foot of the Umbrail,
on the frontier of his land, he rested once more, and then crossed over into
Germany.
Thus
Venice had avenged and, at the same time, compensated itself for the loss of
Pisa: for Cremona surrendered and in the cathedral there an altar was raised to
S. Marco. And Louis XII had acquired the inheritance of Valentina. Bernardino
da Corte in the castle quieted his scruples, on the King making him rich
presents and a yearly allowance, and assigning to him the treasures and the
artillery of the fugitives. He kindled no torch and waved no flag, as he had
promised his lord to do, to announce good or bad tidings. Unattacked
by the enemy, he surrendered to them the impregnable fortress, the sole refuge
of his benefactors. By this treachery he drew down upon himself the contempt of
the one side and the curses of the other. But he could not endure it long; he
went forth and hanged himself. The King now came into his new country. Attired
in a white mantle and cap, he rode through the white draped streets of the
city: and some were heard to call him the Great King, their deliverer. In order
to win the most influential classes over to him, he allowed the nobles to hunt
big game, gave the professors greater incomes, and made the appointments of
officials permanent. He then caused it to be publicly announced in the open
squares and streets of Milan, that tolls upon wine, wheat, maize, millet and
nuts, should from thenceforth be no more levied in the town and suburbs, or
within the ecclesiastical district of Milan, whilst other burdens should be
removed in the whole dukedom. He lowered the taxes, moreover, to 622,000
livres; he thought thus to satisfy everybody. Genoa, too, recognized his
suzerainty. After Corradin Stanga had been recalled,
and the Adorni showed themselves more and more violent, many became alienated
from Ludovico. Now that he had fled away, the Adorni were also obliged to
abandon their castles, and to flee. When the King arrived, the city sent
twenty-four men to him, who arranged a capitulation, and thereupon received the
oath of the new governor, Philip of Ravenstein, to
it. He now ruled as far as Lesbos, where the Genoese had formerly held sway.
The less powerful princes joined him. The Marquis of Mantua entered into his
service, and Ercole of Ferrara, whose falcons and leopards he had had brought
to him at Milan, put himself under his protection and claimed his friendship.
The Popolari at Florence approached him by sending an embassy. When it came to
war, the young Arrabbiati chose them a leader, whom they called “Duke”, and the
Popolari another, whom they called “King”, and they both performed plays in the
market-place, displaying their respective tendencies. The party of the
Popolari, owing to Ludovico’s fall, gained the upper hand, and came to renew
their old relations with France. Venice is Leonardo’s lion, whose breast opens
and is full of lilies. As the Pope also was dependent upon the assistance which
the French rendered him against the Sforza of the Romagna, and as the Angevins
in Naples longed for the arrival of the King, he, hitherto only lord of Asti,
had suddenly become by far the most powerful potentate in Italy. Having happily
accomplished all those things, he returned to France.
The
quarrel at Milan had not, however, as yet been finally disposed of.
Ludovico,
far from giving up his cause for lost, thought of Ferrantino; how he once had
fled away and had returned to his own, chiefly owing to the people of Naples
and the favour of the Milanese. As late as November, the King heard in Milan
the cry of “Duke and Moor!” and, in December, a coin was seen bearing the
device of a Moor and a Turk, with the motto: “In winter we will fiddle; in
summer we will dance.” Here also public opinion was manifested in play; when
the boys, representing the two parties of the King and the Duke respectively,
played together, the Duke's adherents were always the conquerors, and brought
the leader of the royalists, who played King, back to the city dishonoured,
tied to the tail of an ass. Ludovico considered himself sure of Milan. In
Switzerland, Galeazzo Visconti negotiated, to his advantage, a peace with the
neighbouring Germans. Ludovico himself was obliged to pay the fine levied upon Wallgau and the Bregenzerwald, and to undertake to pay the
20,000 ducats, without which Constance would not cede the jurisdiction in the
Thurgau to the Seven Cantons, which demanded it. It was only after this was
arranged, that the other differences were on the 22nd of September submitted to
arbitrators at Basel; where a thanksgiving service was held in the cathedral
and the peace ratified.
On
the conclusion of peace, the Swiss Cantons again evinced their old tendencies
and dissensions. Ludovico had here also a faction favourable to his cause, and,
as he could again avail himself of the landsknechts, he determined to venture
on a second struggle.
On
either side of the St. Gotthard are the green Alpine valleys of Urseren and Leventina; the
inhabitants of the latter formed eight Italian communes, originally connected
with the cathedral and the leading houses of Milan, while those of the former
were a German settlement, ruled by the people of Uri. The valleys were
frequently in feud, usually about the pasturage, and each called its patron to
its aid. But, sometimes, when the people of Uri drove their oxen through the
Val Leventina to the market of Varese, they
themselves were insulted, and became thus the more enraged. On such an
occasion, in 1402, the Val Leventina was forced to
acknowledge the protection of Uri. That was no sufficient advantage for the
people of Uri. The pass near Bellinzona is so narrow that the town, with its
three gates, could entirely close it. They acquired Bellinzona also, partly by
force and partly by purchase. Since then they had had, on this account, many a
quarrel with Milan. There was a time when they had given up both. Francesco
Sforza had restored the Val Leventina to them (“in
gratitude for this they had to bring every August four falcons and a new
crossbow to Milan”), but not Bellinzona. They conceived that they had an
established right to this place also, and followed the Duke of Orleans to
Novara : they were always on his side, because he had promised it them. But now
that the Duke no longer thought himself bound by his promise, which was made under
other circumstances, Ludovico, who had changed sides with them, was inclined to
promise them something. Like the oxen of Uri, the horses of the Valais had also
their market in Milan; thence the inhabitants of the Orisons procured a
definite quantity of corn and wine. They could not live without the Dukedom,
and enjoyed old privileges from the Sforza. Ludovico knew how to turn all these
conditions to his account.
First
of all, it appears, he availed himself of the state of affairs in Uri. For at
the self-same time, in October, 1499, he promised Bellinzona and Val Bregna to the people of Uri, and Galeazzo collected some
troops for an incursion into the Valtelline. But on
this occasion - for the Bailiff was also at this moment enlisting troops, the
cantons were calling back their sons who had gone away, and the King was
promising the people of Uri various possessions - the troops were disbanded as
soon as collected. But one advantage accrued to Ludovico therefrom. The Bailiff
dismissed many in the midst of winter without pay, and some were frozen to
death on the tops of the mountains. By these doings he made himself and the
King enemies enough.
Galeazzo
availed himself of these enemies, the universal dissatisfaction, and the
relations existing between the Grisons and the Valais, to make a second
attempt. The Valais declared that the King was an intolerable neighbour; 2,000
men of the Grisons enrolled themselves at Chur under his standard. All whom the
Bailiff had wronged or rejected he welcomed to it. In January, 1500, he was
enabled to venture over the mountains between the Engadine
and the Valtelline. His advent was victory. At the
first cry, Chiavenna opened its gates; the
Ghibellines of Lugano and Locarno rose; the people of Bellinzona reconquered
their castle for the Duke. The French fled from Como, in dread of Ascanio's
arrival. Giovanni Orelli marched into Pavia, and, as there was a lack of corn,
provisioned it with chestnuts. All depended upon whether the Duke's party in
Milan would be able to hold that city.
In
Milan, the Ghibelline families, the Landriani, Marliani, Visconti, Cribelli, and
especially some ecclesiastics amongst them, would never obey Trivulzio. On one
occasion, even, they made common cause with the French prefect against him.
Between the Ghibellines and Guelphs there existed an open feud. Sometimes no
one dared to speak of terms; sometimes the leaders had a conference and
concluded a formal peace. Trivulzio, who behaved himself as these party leaders
were wont to do when they were victorious, ever kept alive the arrogance of the
rest. When then, on the 1st February, 1500, the tidings arrived that the Sforza
were there, both rushed at once to arms. Trivulzio, with his Guelphs, was the
first to occupy the square between the cathedral and the palace. The
Ghibellines showed courage, and surrounded him and his men. The two parties
kept up a contest of words. As long as Trivulzio spoke them fair, saying that “he
desired no better fortune than to share Milan's fate; he was willing to die for
his country, but they must be faithful, and then they would obtain great
liberties”, his opponents only replied with mockery; “was he not the same
person, who had always sought his own advantage in his country's calamities?
Was he not the old fox that had ever deceived them? He was only now making them
promises which he would never be able to keep.” But when he began to command
them to lay down their arms, threatening that the King would destroy the city,
they also became violent. “If Guelphs could carry arms, Ghibellines could do
the same; instead of giving orders, he would now have to receive them; but why
was he still allowed to live? If his life was the ruin, his death would be the
saving, of his country.” One Ghibelline or other was for ever shouting these
words; every hour, as the Sforza drew nearer, their courage waxed stronger. The
next morning, Trivulzio retired to the park and the castle. In the city nothing
was heard but “Duke and Moor, and death to the Guelphs!”. All the shops were
closed, and the streets barricaded; Trivulzio saw that the city was lost,
provided for the castle and fled to the Ticino.
These
tidings, with the invitations from his party, reached Ludovico in Innsbruck. He
was not yet ready, he had not landsknechts enough, and Maximilian did not
approve of his starting at that moment; but Ludovico could not be restrained.
He took Claude de Vaudrei's Burgundian horse, and as
many landsknechts as he had, and crossed the Alps. They came from the villages
and towns to meet him, saying, “All hail, Ludovico, our prince!” The people of
Como brought him in triumph into the Duomo. All the nobles in a body met him
before the gates of Milan. As a sign of his mercy, he carried a green ensign,
displaying a Moor, dressed in gold, touching the shoulders of four barons
kneeling before him. Thus did he enter the city. After this, the people of
Cremona only waited for an occasion to revolt from Venice, and in Genoa the
rulers did not dare to commit the watch to any Italian, for the city was full
of the report that, "Giovanni Adorno had written and was on the march with
succour from Naples”. In Ferrara itself three hundred boys followed the drum of
a Servite monk; they thundered at the door of the Venetian Visdomino,
and shouted “Moor!”. The whole country would at one stroke have come into
Ludovico's hand, had not the traitors given their castles over to the enemy;
these must be retaken, were he to assert his supremacy. He raised his army, in
spite of their small pay, to 12,000 men and 2,500 horses; his brother Tommaso
followed him with the guns that he had just had cast in Germany. He said to the
people, “I will be your prince and your brother; but you must help me with
money.” And although many thought that they had made sacrifices enough for him,
and others did not believe that they could rely upon his good fortune, most of
them perceived that his need was their need, and assisted him. Hereupon Ascanio
besieged the castle of Milan, and Ludovico the castle of Novara.
Trivulzio,
in the face of this movement, had retired along roads which the peasants
endeavoured to render impassable by trees and stones, in return for which he
left their villages desolated in his track, and proceeded despondently - for
his own party upbraided him - past Pavia to Mortara and Vercelli. Thither the
King despatched La Tremouille to take the supreme
command; thither also came a few Swiss, who had been in the pay of Caesar
Borgia. But to withstand an army as great as that which Ludovico had with him,
fresh recruiting must be resorted to. For this the Florentines and Venetians
gave money, and the Archbishop of Sens and the Bailiff started at once for
Switzerland.
The
Swiss of those days were bold in the face of steel, but weak in the presence of
money. They were united as soon as they had an enemy before them; but before
that disunited, as also in negotiations. As they had no great general interests
to consult, they blindly followed each special and momentary advantage. If
those who joined Ludovico's colours remained faithful to his cause, whilst
others were allowed to give their oath of allegiance to the Bailiff
representing the opposite side, the murder of relatives by relatives, and a
domestic war, terminating with the break-up of the Confederation, might ensue.
It was, perhaps, owing to these apprehensions that they did not agree to the
first offer of the Bailiff on the 21st February: “The King”, they said, “should
first of all pay up all arrears and confirm the terms”; and so, grumbling to himself:
“it will be a matter of crowns, and so I suppose I shall have to open the purse”,
he left the assembly, and went through all the cantons. On the 11th March they
again assembled. Maximilian represented to them that: "in their terms with
the French King, the Empire was excepted from those countries against which
they were to lend assistance; but Milan was now a crown land, and Ludovico a
subject, a vassal, of the Empire”. That was at that time no unfounded
assertion, as Ludovico had completely allied himself to the German King of the
Romans; but now that they had received their money, they would not listen to
any counter reasons. The Zürichers chose a captain and Venner for their
companies; the Freiburgers sent their councillors
with them. Although the enlistment was at once prohibited in Bern, the people,
in spite of the prohibition, followed the drum. They marched, some up the Saone
and across the St. Bernard, others over the St. Gotthard, and came to Vercelli.
They did not know what they were doing. Many a one had a brother, a
brother-in-law, or a father opposed to him in Novara.
Either
the oath would have to be broken, or the Confederation was at an end.
Ludovico
still considered his camp to be blessed by good fortune; he still hoped to draw
all those who had crossed over the hills to his standard, He thought to take
advantage of the wishes of the people of Uri, and sent a message to the Swiss
to this effect: “Bellinzona, Mendrisio, Lugano,
Locarno, and Val Maggia he would cede to them, give them 40,000 ducats at once,
and pay a yearly sum of 24,000, if they would only rid him of the King.”
Thereupon, the common people of Bern, in town and country, having, as they
probably had, relations on both sides, implored their councillor, their
Bailiff, to see that peace was made. This councillor proposed to the
confederates to dissuade both princes and both lords from using the sword, else
great damage and great strife was unavoidable in this direction the German
envoys likewise exerted their influence. As a matter of fact, a decision was
arrived at on the 31st March, such as Ludovico desired: “On the 8th of April
two deputies from each canton should meet in the inn at Uri, and thence haste,
in God's name, to bring the two princes to an understanding.”
But
before the decision was known, the French sallied out. Ludovico was bold enough
to oppose himself outside the walls to an army three times as strong as his,
and to draw up Swiss to face Swiss. But both stopped; they refused to fight
each other. He retired to Novara, his enemies after him. He awaited, it appears
to me, the decree, from which he hoped everything, and the reinforcements,
which on the 9th of April had arrived at Como. At length the decree arrived;
but it was not so unequivocal that the French could not make use of it. People
in Lucerne were not quite at one in the matter; the ducal party had gained
something, but not everything, and the essence of the decree was quite
contradictory in terms: “The soldiers should be warned by both sides to return
home, or, at all events, to go over to one side.” It is evident that this
determined matter. The French could rely upon faithful men; Ludovico had to
deal with captains who defrauded him of 500 guilders in a single levy. These
latter went over into the enemy's camp, and let the enemy into theirs. The two
became almost one. It was soon resolved to interpret the decree in favour of
the French. The cry was raised, “It is all over with the Duke.” The French then came so close to him that
they might almost have taken him prisoner in a room. When he complained of the
conduct of his captains, they asked: “When did they ever promise to fight
against confederates?”. If he only wanted advice, they told him that he should
apply to his wise councillors; but if he would take their counsel, he would
mount a good horse, and ride off to Bellinzona or the Eschenthal.
In this state of embarrassment, he entered into negotiations with the leaders
of the French, and Ligny was for allowing him to escape; but the others opposed
this, and Trivulzio said: “He is as good as ours.”
The
enemy without, treachery within; for his Italians also became slack and drew
back. There was only one way of escape, namely, that which Aemilius Paulus
advised to Perseus, and of which Cato gave an example to the great Romans - the
last expedient in the struggle with fate, before one succumbs. But Ludovico was
not the man to perceive it or seize it.
On
Friday morning, the 10th April, 1500, Ludovico Maria Sforza, called the Moor,
sat in his room at Novara, read, and appeared to pray. Galeazzo Sanseverino
entered and said: “he had only looked for two hundred Swiss to give him an
armed escort, but had not found a single one”. Then came certain Swiss captains
and said: “they were obliged to go. If he would venture to escape in their
midst, he must disguise himself and come”. He hardly heard them, but went on
reading. They came again to him, “All is ready”, they said. They found him
still hesitating. So throwing a Swiss blouse over his scarlet skirts, they sat him,
partly by force and partly with his will, upon a horse, put a halberd in his
hand, concealed him in their thickest company, and rode out of the gate. The
French stood on both sides with lowered spears, and with guns ready pointed, so
as to find him and not allow him to escape. Some of them fell upon the
landsknechts, and upon the Burgundians, and took Jacob von Ems prisoner. Others
rode up to the Swiss: "they had him, and for dear life they should
surrender him; they must point him out, or they would be destroyed. The
cavalcade stopped. The Duke, now as a Minorite, and now as a Swiss trooper with
a halberd, once taken, but again let go, as he was not recognized, was here,
there, and everywhere, and few knew him. At last the Bailiff rode up and
offered 500 ducats to him who would point him out. Thereupon a man of Uri,
named Turmann, who was standing behind him - a man of
whom nothing evil had ever been known before - was allured by the proffered
reward, and lifting up his hand, said in a low tone, “There!”. No one resisted.
The Bailiff seized and recognized the Duke, and struck him with the flat of his
sword across the shoulders. Trivulzio stept up to him
and said, “Sforza, you have your reward.”
At
the first report, the Milanese rushed terrified from their houses to the
palace. Ascanio went out to them and said, “The Moor is a prisoner”. He said
nothing more. He had forgotten his eloquence. He thought only of his own
escape. Francesco Sforza had had five sons, all excellently endowed by nature
and well brought up by their wise mother; but the first was murdered by
conspirators; the second fled away from his sister-in-law and was drowned; the
third died in exile. The fourth was Ludovico, and Ascanio, too, the fifth, did
not avoid his destiny. He fell into the hands of Venice. No city was able to
defend itself. They came out everywhere to meet the victors with olive
branches. But the victors treated them as great criminals. The Vogheresi also waited for Ligny, their lord, but he rode by
them, as though he did not see them. They began to entreat him, but he would
not hear until Louis d'Ars interceded for them. They
brought him silver plate, and he gave it at once to Bayard. The latter said:
"God forbid that the gifts of such wicked people should come into my hand”,
and distributed it among others. In this way they took possession of the
country. In Milan the heads of the leading Ghibellines were fixed on the palace
gates, the rest were spared. But the two Sforza were sent to France. Bourges
and Loches lie not far apart on the left bank of the Loire, Bourges with its
high round tower, commanding the country for miles round; thither came Ascanio;
Loches with its towers and bastions built on a steep rock, and surrounded by
such deep moats that the English declared it to be impregnable. Here Ludovico
was imprisoned. Here he often spoke with his servant from Pontremoli of his
sins and his fate. “That is the star of Francesco Sforza”, said the astrologers
in Italy; it means fortune for one man, but disaster for his descendants.”
As
Maximilian was engaged in this war, he was also affected by this disaster. On
that same momentous 10th of April on which Ludovico was taken prisoner, he
opened a Diet at Augsburg. His prestige in his Empire did not depend only upon
internal development; it depended almost still more upon his war and peace, and
upon his foreign successes. Now that, since the diet of Freiburg, the four
military enterprises in which he had been engaged had failed, viz., in
Burgundy, in Gelderland, in Switzerland, and Milan, he was forced to acquiesce
in a Council of Regency, such as had already been proposed at Worms. It
consisted of twenty members, one elector, one spiritual and one temporal
prince, one count, one prelate, and fifteen deputies. These twenty had the
right of summoning the princes in small numbers or collectively, of deciding
upon war, of recruiting infantry and horse for the Common Penny, which they
were to administer, even of disposing of any conquered territory, and finally,
of making peace again. What then remained of the royal dignity? “They would
have liked to depose us”, said Maximilian, “but a certain person required time
and leisure.” On the 2nd of July, 1500, this Council of Regency was resolved
upon. On the 21st, Louis XII went to meet an embassy sent by it; he had to
expect more assistance from it than resistance to his plans. He had gained a
complete victory over Maximilian.
3.
POPE ALEXANDER VI AND HIS SON AGAINST
THE VASSALS OF THE CHURCH
Had
the star of Francesco Sforza really possessed the significance assigned to it,
its pernicious effect would have extended to the whole House of Sforza-Aragon.
To his ruin it was disclosed for what purpose the Pope had entered into a
league with Louis XII. But, in order to understand how the Pope was situated,
it is necessary to begin with a general sketch.
Laws
and customs, representing the unity of society in each individual member, do
not merely exist for the purpose of protecting others against you, or you
against others, but also for the purpose of protecting you against yourself.
Moderation and self-restraint, the neglect of which entails self-destruction,
and which, nevertheless, natural inclination and pride will never tolerate,
become by means of them a habit, and lead him, who submits to them, unharmed
and peacefully through all the days of his life. Yet, as the human race ever
needs new laws, someone must be raised up to originate and to guard them, and
over such a one their restrictive force cannot have power.
A
great danger this, and yet one which high and low ever vie with each other in
arrogating to themselves, and which the German-Christian nations, while yet
united, reposed in a single individual, an old man chosen by old men; a man
who, with the exception of his name, had given up all connection with the
world, and whom they believed God’s Spirit did not allow to go astray. But
inclinations are exceedingly deep-rooted and obstinate, even in old men; and
who is there that could be dead to the world and yet rule it? It was fortunate
that the Popes were not entirely without fear, either when they fought with the
Emperors, or when the Ghibelline party was at its height, or when they were at
Avignon in the power of the French kings. After this, they were held in check
by the schism, the fear of a fresh schism, or by the proximity of the Turks.
It
was only when they had become accustomed to this constant fear, and when, in
the whole of the Western world, there was none who could withstand the
coalition even of the few whom the Pope could always command, that he became
quite fearless. Two things tended to make this a particular misfortune; corrupt
election, and the prevailing infidelity. If a strong man, whose mind in the
course of a long life had become impure by sensuality, greed, and all the vices
of the world, attained this position, and suddenly found himself honoured as
semi-divine, would he use his power to a good or an evil end? A fear of Him, of
whose very existence he was uncertain, could not restrain him. Alexander every
Maundy Thursday imitated the Author of the faith by washing the feet of twelve
poor men; but the feet had first to stand in a golden basin full of perfumed
herbs, and a Cardinal had first to pour water over them out of a golden vessel,
and not until then did he touch them. Diaries, the truth of which it is
impossible to doubt, accuse him of a sensuality which found its gratification
even in that of others, of a cruelty which employed murderers by day and night,
and of such premeditated villainy, that he would by means of promises induce a
man, good in other respects, to confess to something that he had not committed,
and then punish him as if he had been guilty of it. A man who had once spoken
ill of his son, he punished by cutting off his hand and the tip of the tongue,
and causing the latter to be exhibited stuck on the tip of the little finger.
Through
his son Don Juan, to whom Federigo had promised a principality in return for
his investiture, Alexander had become closely connected both with Federigo and
with all the House of Sforza and Aragon. But, in consequence of Juan's sudden
death - his body was found in the Tiber - this connection began to be severed.
Juan, as a German chronicle relates, was Alexander's joy, and his soul was
wrapped up in him. He now sat from Thursday to Sunday shut up in his chamber,
without food, without sleep, and always in tears; he thought of abdicating, for
his wickedness was the cause of his son's death. On Sunday he came forth, went
on foot to St. Peter's, ordered five cardinals to make new arrangements for his
court, and bade his children leave it. But his children controlled him. All his
passions were in still greater intensity found in his son Caesar: sensuality,
thirst for power, bloody revenge, also the power of concentrating all his
mental forces upon a single object, his princely generosity and his apparent
magnanimity. Caesar was an active, well-grown man, skilled at throwing, riding,
and at slaying the bull when running with a single blow; his dark-red face was
full of pimples, which readily festered and gave to his eye keenness and
brilliancy and a snake-like movement, which he only restrained a little in the
presence of women. After his brother's death, which was attributed to himself,
his tastes were all for arms and princely honours. Instead of removing from the
court, he proposed to his father to relieve him from the office and dignity of
Cardinal, and to endow him with a principality. The Church is built up upon the
inextinguishable character of the priestly state, and it was quite without
precedent that the highest rank in it should be given up. But the Pope cared
little for this, and he, in fact, proposed to Federigo that he should give his
eldest daughter and Don Juan's possessions to Caesar. Now Gioffredo
Borgia and Lucrezia Borgia, the latter of whom had been torn away from the side
of Giovanni Sforza, lord of Pesaro, and married to Alfonso, Duke of Biseglia, were already allied to the house of Aragon by
marriage. But Federigo knew Caesar. A quiet, moral, noble gentleman as he was,
and a father who loved his daughter so tenderly, could not sanction this. The
Sforza plied him with entreaties upon entreaties, representing to him that the
Pope would otherwise take other steps for the destruction of Italy. But his
reply was that: “nothing in the world should induce him; rather would he die a poor nobleman, and endure all the ills of the world,
than do this. Let them not speak of it anymore.” From that time Alexander began
to enter into serious negotiations with France. After Louis XII had promised Valentinois to Caesar, the latter came into the Consistory
of Cardinals: “in spite of always having been addicted to the world, he had yet
always been raised to spiritual dignities and benefices. His propensities would
not be curbed. He now gave back his benefices, and begged to be relieved of his
office”. How could he be refused what had long since been determined? In short,
in October, 1498, he made his public entrance as Prince into Chinon, where Louis was holding his court. Sixty-six laden
mules preceded him; he himself rode in, covered with jewels from his hat, in
which gleamed ten rubies, down to his boots. His horse was shod with silver
shoes; and behind him there came twenty-four mules caparisoned in red velvet.
The Pope was soon heard to say that, “he would give a fourth part of his papacy
if only Caesar would not return”; and again -for he believed himself offended –“If
only Caesar were there, he would act differently”; and hence we can perceive
how completely he was in Caesar's power. In France, Caesar received Valentinois, the bishop of which styled himself Count, as a
Dukedom, and in May, 1499, Charlotte, Alain d'Albret's
daughter, to wife. Through this marriage he became related to the Kings of
Navarre and of France. He next schemed to attain a larger lordship. If Louis
attacked the Sforza in Milan, he, on his part, would destroy the despots of the
Romagna, and all the vassals of the Church.
In
September, 1499, Ludovico fled for the first time; in November, the Pope declared
his great-nephews to have forfeited Imola and Forli. Caesar did not recollect
that their father, Girolamo Riario, after having
risen to power, lived as he himself did, and what his end was. With French and
Swiss assistance, Caesar made war upon Caterina, Ludovico's niece and
Girolamo's widow. The lady had no support. Florence and Milan had formerly been
her allies: the former, because her court was full of Florentines; besides, her third husband, Giovanni di Pier
Francesco de' Medici, had come from Florence, and her son had at times been in
the service of the city. Milan was so devoted to her that, for a time, Giovanni
da Casale, Ludovico's agent, had the whole government in his hands, and was
present at her most secret audiences. Aided by both, she had in the previous
year resisted the Venetians, and in this year had supported both,
especially Ludovico, with troops. But now Ludovico was an exile, and her enemy
was master of Milan. Now, too, in Florence, instead of the notables, who were
her friends, and the friends of her late husband, Giovanni de' Medici, and of
her child, the Popolari were supreme; and although she went thither saying that
“her feast was the eve of that of the Florentines”, they still considered it
dangerous to resist the French and Caesar. In consequence of this state of
things, Imola, both city and citadel, was soon lost, and the nobles welcomed
the enemy into the city of Forli. The citadel of Forli, which had been so
strongly fortified by Pino Ordelaffi as to appear
impregnable, still held out. Caterina, who, since her husband's death, had
withstood all her enemies, herself commanded it, went about on the walls, and
was nothing daunted. In order to compass her rescue, a musician took a poisoned
letter to Rome, and desired an audience of the Pope. His chamberlain was a
native of Forli, and with this chamberlain’s help he thought he would be able
to succeed. Yet he betrayed him. “Didst thou think to escape, in the event of
succeeding?” “At all events”, was the answer, “I should have saved my Princess;
she reared me up, and I would suffer a thousand deaths for her”. Caesar had
promised 10,000 ducats to the man who would bring her to him alive; but amongst
such faithful adherents he could not hope to find a traitor. She took no notice
of the Pope's promise to grant her an annual allowance; she met Caesar's attack
with energy. At last the wall was pierced by 400 shot, and was scaled. She
defended herself to the last; but at last she was taken, and brought before
Caesar. The French captain demanded the 10,000 ducats; Caesar then spoke of
2,000. “Wilt thou break thy word?” answered the former, and was on the point of
killing her. After this she lived many years at Florence, and enjoyed much
honour.
The
return of Ludovico delayed this undertaking, for, on account of it, French and
Swiss had to turn towards Milan.
After
a while a messenger brought the tidings of Ludovico's captivity. The Pope gave
him 100 ducats. The Romans shouted “Orso e Franzia”
in the streets. Caesar, who had since received the mantle, hat, and staff of Gonfaloniere of the Church, advanced against Giovanni
Sforza at Pesaro. Giovanni relied upon his people, upon Venice, and Urbino. In
his hall, the nobles and citizens at his request had promised him allegiance
and assistance; immediately afterwards he discovered a conspiracy. He hurried
to Venice, which had always protected him; but on this occasion he was reminded
of how he had received Turkish ambassadors. The Duke of Urbino gave him poor
encouragement, saying he ought to keep himself for a better opportunity. When
Caesar approached, he fled, and abandoned to him both city and country.
Pandolfo Malatesta also would not await him at Rimini. Before that year, Venice
had sent a Proveditor to protect him, so that Caesar
had retired, whilst he hurried to the feet of the Signoria, to express his
gratitude. But now Venice had declared for the Pope, who had granted to her
ecclesiastical revenues wherewith to fight the Turks; his people hated him, and
so he also fled. Hereupon, since everything appeared to succeed, in November,
1500, Caesar advanced against Faenza.
The
Faentines were distinguished among all the Romagnols for their unanimity and their industrial
cleverness; their linen was the whitest; their potteries had acquired a special
reputation; and they had, moreover, been renowned for their loyalty, ever since
they had defended the Bolgherelli against Frederick
II's superior force, and had saved them from harm. At the time of which we
speak, there lived two youths, descendants of their, old princes, the Manfredi,
of whom the elder, Astorre, aged fifteen years, was
an angel in cleverness and beauty. Their sole ally was the winter; but they
made such good use of it that Caesar retired on the tenth day. In April, 1501,
he came again. They killed 1,000 of his men to sixty citizens on their side;
1,400 they blew up in a bastion; and the Pope sometimes was so angry that he
did not go to chapel. But Caesar was not weakened by his losses, as the
charitable offerings of piety were at his disposal, and the Faentines
were ruined by their success. At last, utterly exhausted by three successive
attacks, they surrendered, after Caesar had guaranteed them safety, and liberty
to their princes. After this Caesar was called Duke of the Romagna, and up to
this point Louis acquiesced in his undertakings. But when he threatened
Bologna, Giovanni Bentivoglio, under French protection, resisted him, and
escaped with a few fines. When after this he made an irruption into the
Florentine territory, as though intending to restore the Medici, the King and
the Pope warned him to depart; and he was obliged to content himself with money
and a condotta.
When he made a descent upon Appiano of Piombino, the
King would not have been displeased, had Genoa previously acquired the fine
fresh-water harbour by purchase. But Caesar was too quick; and as soon as he
had Elba and Pianosa, its Prince was obliged to
relinquish to him Piombino, and take refuge in the valley of the Scrivia, on the estate of a Spinola. Even Alfonso of
Ferrara was not strong enough to resist him, and was obliged to make terms, by
marriage with this family.
Caesar
is like a wolf in the fold that has made friends with the shepherd. His
soldiers wore a belt from the right shoulder to the left thigh, representing a
scaly snake, picked out in gold and colours, darting downwards with its seven
heads. But what symbol could express the damnation of a man who, during these
struggles, came once to Rome, caused the Via S. Pietro to be closed, and six
human beings brought into it, and hunted with arrows, whilst he stood by and
shot them until they died like hunted game; who promised Astorre
his liberty, and then outraged this innocent boy, this noble blood, in an
unnatural manner; and, still fearing him, at last caused him to be thrown with
his brother into the Tiber with a stone round his neck.
God's
judgement was over Italy. Destruction was abroad, and stalked from one palace
to the other. Only the true Aragonese, Federigo and his
house, still survived; but destruction was in their wake. At the first attack
upon the Sforza, Alfonso di Biseglia, Alexander's Aragonese son-in-law, fled from Rome. If he had only never
returned! But now, when crossing the Piazza di S. Pietro in broad daylight, he
was attacked by murderous bands, and carried to his house wounded in three
places; but, as he did not succumb at once to his wounds, Caesar employed his
executioner, Michelotto, to despatch him in bed. Beatrice, daughter of Ferrante
the elder, and wife of King Wladislav, was far away in Hungary. After losing a
better husband, she had brought the crown to this one. But Wladislav was long
since tired of her. Alexander, who had always hitherto been prevented by some
consideration or other, now pronounced his divorce from her. Anne de Candale, of the royal house of France, took her place. In
Federigo himself, the life of this dynasty was threatened. When Milan was first
conquered, the French levies boasted, they were now in the midst of a hundred years'
war without a day's peace; they had still to war against the Turks, and to
cross the Alps, but first of all to Naples. Federigo had sometimes attempted to
negotiate, but he only found himself dallied with. In April, 1501, the
preparations were no longer a secret; and, in May, Louis communicated his
intention to the German Imperial Council, which had concluded a truce with him
until the 1st of July, and had tied Maximilian's hands. In June, the army
advanced into the Florentine territory; and in Rome shelters were erected for
the men, and stables for the horses, whilst a residence was prepared for the
King.
Many
thought then how closely Ferdinand was related to Federigo, and how the former,
even in breach of his treaty, had come to the aid of Ferrantino, and saved him;
now Gonzalvo was in Messina ready for action. A long war -possibly a reversal
of the whole of the French successes -might be expected. Federigo had asked
Gonzalvo if he could depend upon him, and he answered: “my master is your
friend.”
Yet
it was not so. Ferrantino would scarcely have been so energetically supported
had he not been married to Juana, Ferdinand's niece. For the old kinship, from
the time of the first Alfonso, was hateful to Ferdinand, since it had ousted
his line from Naples, and it went for nothing with him. Federigo, also, had
looked for a new alliance and had begged for Ferdinand's youngest daughter, or
his niece Juana, for his son; but he refused the first proposal and for the
second demanded an exorbitant dowry. He now began to think of his own claims.
He had already negotiated with Charles VIII upon the matter of compensation for
his claims to Naples, in case Charles should again invade it, to take the form
either of Calabria, which should be detached from the kingdom, or of a
partition of the whole of Italy between the French, the German, and himself the
Spanish King. Charles died, and therefore, at the beginning of Louis XII’s
reign, he concluded a treaty with him, without regard for Federigo.
When
then this King was making ready for his campaign, Mosen Gralla, Ferdinand's
ambassador, visited Cardinal d'Amboise, and said to him, as though only
expressing his own ideas: “How if you were to come to some arrangement with us
respecting Naples, as you did with Venice regarding Milan?”. Amboise had always
feared the Spanish claims, and so replied, “We two shall have to keep up the
friendship between our kingdoms”. But Gralla had long since received his
instructions from his master. On the 22nd September, 1500, a real treaty was
arrived at, in these terms: “The territory of Naples to be divided into two
halves; one half, comprising the Abruzzi and Lavoro
with the title of kingdom, to belong to Louis; the other, consisting of Apulia
and Calabria, as a dukedom, to Ferdinand.” A further arrangement especially
respecting the Dogana to be made after the conquest. This treaty was still
unknown when the French entered the Florentine territory. But on St. Peter’s
day, 1501, both envoys submitted it to the Pope, who at once invested both princes.
These were the first tidings that Federigo received of what was proceeding
against him. Thereupon Gonzalvo sent him a message to the effect that: “he
renounced his fief in Naples, for he was obliged to renounce the oath he had
taken in respect of it”. And the Pope rejoiced when he saw the French army,
2,000 horse and 12,000 infantry, with 42 guns, file past in the garden of the
Castle of St. Angelo on its way to the Neapolitan frontier.
When
Federigo looked about him, he found nothing upon which he could rely. The east
coast was in the hands of Venice, and the fortresses, by virtue of old
treaties, in those of Spain. Should he trust in his barons, who would not even
all be present at his coronation, who outlawed in their respective territories
all who adhered to him, and whom he could only possibly have subjected with
Gonzalvo's assistance? The Colonna alone were faithful, but they alone were of
no account, entrusting, as they did, their possessions in the States of the
Church to the cardinals. Their stewards were compelled to swear allegiance to
the Pope, and an assembly of Roman citizens resolved to destroy their city of
Marino. Federigo's sole hope lay in the cities, and he had their walls repaired
and hand-mills provided, whilst the peasants were driven in and located in
barns.
There
is no spectacle more depressing than a country which allows itself to be
conquered without drawing the sword. Gonzalvo was master of fifteen towns,
without transporting a single horse thither. After Capua had held out for a
moment, thanks to German mercenaries, the Count of Polenta rode out, as though
he wished to see how things stood with the enemy, and, whilst doing so,
surrendered a gate. The city fell. Now Federigo lost all hope of being able to
resist. The two great kings were his enemies, and on the march against him; the
Pope was leagued with them, and his vassals were in revolt. He now only thought
of how he could save himself and his family, and prevent his country being
given up to the ravages of war. Before the gate of the arsenal in Naples, the
King assembled his citizens and nobles and addressed them: “since fate was
driving him away, he released them from their oath”. He himself came to the
following arrangement with the French: “if within six months he could not
appear at the head of an army, he would retire to France upon estates which
should be assigned him, and thither would bring also his treasures, his
acquaintances and friends”. Hereupon he
betook himself to Ischia. Thither came also Beatrice of Hungary, and Isabella
of Milan, his whole family and the few who remained faithful to him. He was
never again able to show himself at the head of an army, and so passed the
remainder of his life in France. How different were his expectations and all
anticipations thirty years before, when, in the flower of youth and hoping for
the hand of the daughter of Charles the Bold, he passed through Rome! He was
neither king nor heir to the throne, but the cardinals strove together as to
which should be the first to welcome him. In him the Aragon dynasty was
extinguished, as was the House of Sforza; both of which a short time previously
had flourished above all others in Italy. If we inquire what they achieved, the
answer is that it was owing to them that, almost for the first time in their
history, the Italians remained for a while free from the influence of foreign
nations. If Francesco Sforza had not become lord of Lombardy, the French would
have been: had Alfonso not given Naples to a spurious son, a Spanish viceroy would
have been even at that time established there. It was due to this assertion of
their independence that the Italians, untrammelled by foreign influence,
and in progressive movement and rivalry within, were enabled within a somewhat
limited sphere to develop their intellectual energies to a degree that the
Germanic-Latin nations have always regarded as the highest perfection of
culture to which they ever attained. They acknowledge the fact that every new
science and art traces its birth to this era. These two families had to
separate, chiefly on account of two women; the one called in the French, the
other the Spaniards: after they had weakened each other, union availed them
nothing. The two invoked forces joined hands, and destroyed both. They both sprang
up together, flourished together, and perished together.
After
this event, it was possible to journey under French safe-conduct from the
Pyrenees to Naples. The Spaniards made further progress in the south of Italy.
In order not to be completely ruined by this powerful enemy, Maximilian was
obliged at Trent to promise the King of France the investiture of Milan. Three
independent and pre-eminently active members of Christendom were now
annihilated, and only three large States still existed in Italy. That was the
result of Charles VIII's movements. To us, however, it is a matter of regret;
for we must always feel sad when a particular existence, one of God's own
creations, perishes. But one consideration may tend to calm our feelings.
If
we remember that Otranto was once in the hand of the Turks, and that a certain Boccalino, on another occasion, ceded to them Osimo, that at Naples sometimes the kings and at other
times the barons summoned them to their aid; that at Pesaro in the States of
the Church, their agents were well received, and that, on Ludovico Sforza's
invitation, they made an incursion into Friuli; if we remember how unanimous
and powerful they always were or soon became, and how disunited and weak the
Italians showed themselves, we cannot deny that Rome might just as readily have
fallen into their hands as Constantinople, and that the same fate which befell
the Hungarians might easily have overwhelmed all Italy, and primarily Naples,
to which the Turks already laid claim. But now more powerful neighbours
occupied the frontiers, and offered them resistance.
The
Turks themselves, and almost the whole of the Mohammedan world, were involved
in this war.
Abuayazid, whom we know as Bajazet,
induced by the messages of Ludovico the Moor, considered that Louis XII after
conquering Italy would probably carry out the other plans of his ancestors;
that Venice forced the Turkish ships to salute hers, which was an insult to
him; and that he had remained five years quietly in Stamboul,
and the day had at last arrived when he could take Inebecht,
that is Lepanto. Entertaining this idea, he gave Andrea Zancani,
who entreated peace of him, only an Italian letter of compact, which he did not
consider binding, and not a Turkish one. Whilst Andrea went joyfully on his way
home, thinking that "the Othman of the Othmanis,
the Grand Turk, had assured him of all good will” the latter equipped 270 ships
for sea in the Hellespont, collected 250,000 horses in Adrianople, and
despatched them in June, 1499, to pillage Zara. But in August they set out, he
by land, and his fleet by sea, both bound for Lepanto. Antonio Grimani awaited the fleet near Sapienza. Antonio, from
being a prosperous merchant, in whose hands earth appeared to turn into gold,
had become supreme commander of the Venetian forces, and they believed they had
in him an Alexander or a Caesar. He had kept back in harbour a ship of pilgrims
about to sail for Jerusalem for this holiest deed, namely, to do battle against
the Infidel; he had already issued his orders to the effect that "he
would, with God's assistance, attack the enemy”; but when the Turks sailed out
from Portolungo, and the Christians from Sapienza,
both sides showed themselves but little inclined for the combat, and, after
manoeuvring about, turned back. At length both became more resolute. The
largest Turkish ship put out for action. Two other Christian ships had just
made ready to engage her, when there came from Corfu that valiant hero Andrea Loredano and joined the fleet. The crew shouted their acclamations,
and after having asked the general whither he wished him to go, he embarked on
one of the two ships. They put out and grappled the Turk. All three caught
fire. Whilst the Turks hastened to rescue their men in boats, the Christians
stood thunderstruck. Loredano made no attempt to
escape; he said: "Under this flag I was born, and under this flag will I
die," and threw himself into the flames. The rest jumped into the water,
and were taken prisoners. Thus was this battle lost. Grimani
retreated; the Turks attacked Lepanto both by land and sea, and took it. Two
thousand others pillaged in Friuli, so that in Treviso, and even in Mestre, the
inhabitants dared not to open their gates. Zancani
who was sent against them dared not venture out of Gradisca.
Zancani was banished; Grimani was also banished. In the following year, Melchior
Trevisano, Grimani's most bitter enemy, went against
the Turks, but he was neither able to capture Cephalonia, nor to relieve Modon, but Abuayazid took Coron, Modon, and Navarino.
It
must be recorded that at the same time the Moors of Granada rose against the
Kings of Spain. Ximenes, Archbishop of Toledo, had won over some Alfaquins by
gifts of silk dresses and red hats, and one Zegri by
imprisonment and presents, and then baptized them, as well as a large number of
others from the Albaycin. But when he had burnt upon
a pile nearly five thousand of their books, all beautifully wrought in gold and
silver and artistically decorated, the people revolted, killed his servants,
and scarcely spared him. The King came sorrowfully to the Queen: "their
monk had undone all their conquest”. Three days later, the Moors living in the
city recollected themselves; in order to escape punishment they allowed
pictures to be hung in their mosques and submitted to baptism. But the Moors of
the mountains, who dwelt upon the impenetrable peaks of the Alpujarras
of the red, white, and snow-bound Sierra, could not be pacified.
Two
brothers, Aguilar by name, took the field against Moors and Turks; the elder,
Alfonso, against the Moors, and he was slain. Since a great number would on no
account become Christians, they were sent to Africa, and every day galleys went
backwards and forwards to transport them thither. Troops were left to hold the
remainder in check. The younger brother, Gonzalvo, the Great Captain, went to
the assistance of the Venetians, and his advent brought them good fortune. Abuayazid, who was lamed by gout, had returned to his
palace to study Averroes, and Trevisano had just returned from his pursuit,
full of pride that within sight of Europe and Asia he had succeeded in hanging
some of his enemies on the gallows. Gonzalvo combined forces with him in order
to capture the castle of Cephalonia; he sent in word to the Turkish commander Gisdar: "that it was the conquerors of Granada who
were attacking him". The Turk answered, "Has not each of us seven
bows and seven thousand arrows? Moreover, the day of our death is from the
first written on our brow," and in this conviction he defended himself
with his accustomed weapons. The Biscayans withstood all his arrows, scaled his
castle, and killed him. This done, Gonzalvo turned towards Sicily and Naples.
But afterwards Portuguese ships and even papal troops came and took part in the
Turkish war, and the French troops stormed Mitylene eighteen times. The
Christians did not succeed further than to surprise Santa Maura, and even this
they were obliged to restore as the price of the peace. What Venice lost
remained lost; she gained but little advantage from Cremona; and Ludovico
comforted himself in his prison with the reflection that, at all events, one
ally had not broken faith with him.
BOOK II . 1502-1514
The
position of the Latin and Teutonic nations at this time may be briefly
summarized as follows:
Italy
had been visited by a great disaster; it was not political unity, which the
country had really never possessed, that was imperilled, but that internal accord
and independence in dealing with foreign countries, which might have stood in
its stead. These were lost and gone, and this result had been effected, not so
much by the expedition of Charles VIII and its immediate consequences, as by
the feuds between Venice and Milan, and between the Pope and Naples. The papal
authority, which was paramount in Naples, was mainly instrumental to this end.
Alexander VI cannot aptly be compared with the Popes of the thirteenth century,
who, when hard pressed by the enmity of the Hohenstaufen, appealed to the
French for aid to rid themselves of them; in his case, the marriage of his
infamous son, an alliance supported by the one and opposed by the other side,
was the motive for delivering Naples at once into the hands of the French and
Spaniards. The after-consequences of this step swayed the destinies of Italy in
the ensuing centuries.
Of all
princes of that time, Louis XII was the most powerful. Among the ordinances by
which he guaranteed the French an appropriate constitution, and gained for
himself in their esteem a place between St. Louis and Henry IV, the following
is, perchance, the most characteristic:
“A
tribunal should never be venal: in the event of his commanding such a thing,
the Chancellor should not seal it; and, in the event of his having sealed it,
neither Bailiff nor Seneschal should obey”. Such was the ordinance which by the
King's unbiassed judgement placed law above caprice. In this way he kept his
people well inclined towards him. From Italy not merely his own subjects
flocked to his court, but the deputies of the independent States in almost
still greater numbers. Every day there arrived mounted couriers bearing
letters, instructions, and money; every one was
desirous of currying favour with a member of the King's Council. No prince or
city in Italy felt themselves secure without being first assured of French
protection. Florence was itself powerful, yet was not in a better position than
the rest. In addition to politics, the daily occupations of Louis were hunting
and hawking. With the month of May, the huntsmen made their appearance at the
court all in green, and each with his horn and his hound. In September, when
the stag-hunting was over, the falconers appeared in their cocked hats, and
took the place of the others. Louis followed them both, through field and
through wood.
His
principal allies were Alexander VI, the kings of Denmark and Scotland, and
certain German princes.
Alexander
had assigned the legation at the court of France, the most important office the
Pope had to bestow, to Cardinal Georges d'Amboise for life; and this was
considered such an extraordinary act of favour, that the University of Paris
opposed it. The neighbours and vassals who enjoyed Louis' protection, were
taken likewise by the Pope under his. The Duke of Urbino allowed exiles and
refugees free asylum and social intercourse at his court; Alexander had
guaranteed him his nephew's succession. Giovanni Bentivogli, relying upon his
new treaty with Caesar, founded ironworks in the mountains near Bologna, and
cut canals in the plain; he believed he was acting for his children.
The
Baglioni, Vitelli, and Orsini, were in Caesar's pay. Pandolfo Petrucci, the
head of the Nove, and, through the three privy councillors, chief of the whole
municipality of Siena, became also, in the persons of these his friends, allied
with the Pope. Ercole of Ferrara proceeded to build palaces, to ride in
processions, and to enjoy the pleasures of the theatre, without anxiety; his
son was married in the Lent of 1502 to Lucrezia Borgia. Alexander remained the
devoted friend of the King.
James
IV of Scotland, who, since his marriage with the daughter of Henry VII, had
forgotten his English wars, was building in Falkirk, celebrating tournaments at
Stirling, and receiving constant visits from French knights. Both expeditions
of the King of Denmark were unsuccessful; that against the Ditmarschers,
whom he, in league with France, had attacked against Maximilian's wish, at the
time of the Milanese War, failed, by reason of the enemy's bravery; that
against Sweden was completely foiled by Sten Sture, and in 1502 he was forced
to rest. Several German princes maintained an open understanding with France;
since the treaty of Trent, they paused in their opposition to Maximilian.
This
combination was confronted by another, formed by the house of the Catholic
Kings, and cemented not only by league, but by blood-relationship, a genuine
family union. In the year 1497, all the children of Ferdinand the Catholic were
together, with the exception of Juana. Juan, with his consort, Margaret, was
destined for the Spanish throne; Isabella for the Portuguese; Katherine for the
English; and Mary for some other throne, which was at present the object of
negotiation. At the court all was still; all who desired to gain favour, went
about with downcast eyes and modest pace; the royal pair had prescribed the
strictest ceremonial, extending even to the interchange of kisses on hand and
mouth, between the ladies of the court. But here changes now took place, which
were of great importance for the State, and had still greater influence over
its future.
Just
as every one was hoping to see the unity of Spain
established for ever under a native sovereign, by a son of Juan, Juan himself
died. He had been the hope of the realm. A native prince of good disposition is
a great blessing. But now black flags floated over the walls of the city, and
for forty days all business ceased. All the inhabitants were dressed in black.
If a grandee rode out, it was only his horses' eyes that were undraped. The
child, too, of which Margaret was delivered after Juan's decease, died as soon
as born.
Hereupon,
Isabella who had since become Queen of Portugal, returned with her husband, and
after receiving at Toledo the allegiance of the Castilians, as successor to the
throne, she came to Saragossa, in order to obtain it likewise from the
refractory Aragonese. The whole peninsula would in
course of time have thus become united; but whilst at Saragossa Isabella also
died, and her son Miguel shortly after her.
Thus
the succession devolved upon Juana, the consort of the Archduke Philip, and
passed to the house of Hapsburg with all the greater certainty, since on St.
Matthew's day, 1500, she gave birth at Ghent to a son, Charles. "The lot
fell upon Matthew”, said the old Queen of Castile, and rightly, for round the
life of this child was centred the greatest combination our nations have for
centuries known. In the year 1502, Philip and Juana were in Spain; now received
by the Commanders of Orders, so gorgeously attired that even their stirrups
were of gold, and anon welcomed by the Biscayan nobility, who begged for a
bounty in order to be able to celebrate high festival. The succession was then
assured them; in Toledo by the prelates, grandees, and procurators of the
cities of Castile; in Saragossa, by the bishops, by the thirty-two Ricos hombres, and the deputies of the Caballeros
and Infanzones; in Aragon by the Jurados of the cities.
Meanwhile,
Katherine had gone to marry Arthur, Prince of Wales; Mary to marry Manuel of
Portugal, and Margaret, Juan's widow, to marry the Duke of Savoy. All these
houses formed a natural union.
The
French League and the family of the Spanish Kings, confronted each other.
Philip, at once vassal of France and heir to the throne of Spain, made a
compact with Louis to the effect that their children, Charles and Claude, who
were both as yet in the cradle, should one day marry; and thus he became the
mediator between both parties. This induced Maximilian to abandon completely
the interests of the Sforza, and, in October, 1501, to promise the King of
France the investiture of Milan. Philip journeyed through France on his way to
Spain, sat among the peers in the hall of justice, came before the King, and
readily comported himself as a vassal. Juana, on her part, gave Claude a large
diamond, in testimony of the new alliance. Philip also prepared to return
through France.
At
this time our nations ruled over hardly a single foreigner, and were subjected
to none. We find even the Grandmaster of Prussia now refusing allegiance to the
King of Poland, and this action of his gained the support of many German
princes. Ivan Wasiljewitsch's attack upon Livonia in
the year 1501 was repulsed by the general, Walter von Plettenberg, in two great
battles; peace for fifty years being thus secured.
Certainly,
at this juncture a general campaign against the Turks, who were now engaged in
war with Venice, would have been a feasible undertaking. Immediately after the
treaty with Maximilian, and when Christendom was enjoying universal peace,
Louis proclaimed this crusade. For this, both France and Italy, and Upper and
Lower Germany, but especially the latter, had been prepared by a marvellous apparition
of certain coloured crosses, which were said to have suddenly made their
appearance everywhere, upon linen and wool, and upon dresses and all manner of
cloths. Maximilian, in anticipation of this war, founded a special order of
knighthood. But, as yet, Italian affairs, as well as those of the usurping
powers, were not so firmly established as not to give occasion for a fresh
quarrel, a quarrel destined to spread even more widely than the former.
CHAPTER I
I.
THE WAR IN NAPLES AND THE ROMAGNA
In
Naples a fresh war broke out between the Spaniards and the French. The
immediate cause was the treaty of partition, which they had concluded together.
In this partition Lavoro and the Abruzzi were guaranteed
to the French, and Apulia and Calabria to the Spaniards, whilst four smaller
provinces, the two Principati, Basilicata and Capitanata, had not been expressly divided. Now, seeing
that, according to the fundamental institutions of the countries, institutions
inaugurated by the Emperor Frederick II, the Principati
shared their court of justice with Lavoro, whilst the
other two had their court in common with Apulia, a little good-will, after the
Dogana question had been settled, would have sufficed to settle this dispute
also, had not there been other motives for quarrelling, notably, the internal
factions of the country. The Colonna, whose possessions lay in the French
portion, placed themselves under the protection of Spain, whilst several towns in
Apulia raised the French banner. The Angevins summoned the French to Calabria,
whilst the Aragonese called Gonzalvo to the Abruzzi.
The same factions were already engaged in fighting for Manfredonia and
Altamura. It turned out, that, live in whatever division they might, the one
party would only obey the French and the other only the Spaniards, whilst these
powers were always ready to help them to gain the ascendency. The attitude of
their respective armies was decisive for the issue. When, on one occasion, the
Spaniards had made an incursion as far as the springs of Troia, and a skirmish
was the result, Ives d'Allègre sent a message to
Mendoza, inquiring: "Whether this meant an open breach, and was intended
to rouse them from their tranquillity; if so, he was ready to give
satisfaction”. Mendoza replied: "We came to Italy, I and my army, not for
peace, but for war. We would gladly engage, even without orders”. And this was
the feeling of the majority. At this time the two commanders, Gonzalvo and Nemours,
who had advanced close to each other, the first to Atella, and the latter to
Melfi, often met at the high altar of a chapel dedicated to St. Antony,
situated on the ridge of the Apennine chain which lay between them. But, in
spite of all their orders to the contrary, the struggle broke out quite
spontaneously.
On
the 12th June, 1502, when the Spaniards forcibly entered Tripalda
-alleging it was a widow's portion, belonging to Juana, the sister of their
King- and when Aubigny set forth from Naples to
recover it holding that it belonged to the French portion- open war could no
longer be avoided.
Gonzalvo,
who had under his command but few of his 5000 men -for he had brought so many
with him- was at once obliged to fall back. In Apulia lay one of the four castles,
which were considered the strongest in the whole of Italy, viz.
Barletta, and thither he proceeded. The French pursued him. They forced Pedro
Navarra to retire from Canosa, though with honours. In August they took
Quadrata and Biseglia; and by September they had on
their side all the Sanseverino of Bisignano, Bitonto,
Melito, Capurso and Acquaviva di Conversano. Of the whole of Apulia they left
the Spaniards nothing but Bari, Barletta, and some surrounding places. These
districts also were attacked by the French, and first and foremost Barletta,
"for the honour of their chivalry”; for Bari was being defended by a
woman, Isabella, the widow of Gian Galeazzo.
"We
are still six leagues away”, wrote Nemours on the 19th November, "and keep
the enemy shut in; the King shall see that we defend his rights staunchly, and
that everything is going from good to better”. In December, Aubigny
advanced to Calabria. He fell upon the Spaniards -for here also they were much
too weak- at the very moment when they were in the act of retreating across the
Aspromonte and through the passes to the Retromarina.
They managed, however, to make good their escape; but the whole of Calabria,
with the exception of a few castles on the sea-board, was lost to them. They
held their ground in Gerace and in the Mottas.
The
rest of the Spanish possessions (like the plank of a ship fought for by
drowning men) were the object of a chivalrous war, waged with good weapons.
Here were the heroes whom Ariosto had seen when he began to sing of his Rogeros and Rinaldos. In Calabria
we meet with that Imbercourt to whom, whenever there
was a battle to fight, the heat of an Italian noontide seemed like the cool of
morning, and with that Aubigny who, in order to
ransom him, although he had been chosen before himself, sacrificed his silver
plate. Before Barletta were the discreet La Palice,
to whom the enemy first gave the title of "Marshal”, and Montoison, who, though bowed down by weight of years, was
still, when on horseback, the falcon of the fray; there, too, was Fontrailles, called the "Fearless”, as well as many
others of those who, if there was a battle to fight and they happened to be on
shipboard, contending with contrary winds, would land and march one hundred
leagues in three days. Among them also was that Bayard who, from the very hour
when his mother came down from the tower to give him her small purse at parting
and to commend to him four virtues -the fear of God, truth, kindliness and
generosity- had never neglected a single day to practise them. He always
prayed, before leaving his chamber, and no one ever heard him praise himself.
Once when he had captured 15,000 ducats, and another, though he had no claim,
demanded them of him, he first of all established his legal right ; this done,
as soon as the money had been paid down, and his adversary remarked, "I
should be happy for all the rest of my life if I only had the half of it”, he
replied, "Then I will give you just half”; and thereupon gave him the one
half and his followers the other. "O, my lord, my friend”, cried the
other, upon his knees, "no Alexander was ever so generous”. Bayard's life
was as clear as crystal, his heart ready in every danger, and his soul mild and
gentle. The Spaniards resemble the French; but the resemblance is that between
the Moorish and Christian knights of Ariosto. Among them was the small, thin
Pedro Navarra, who had raised himself from a common soldier to the dignity of
Count; no rock was so hard that he could not mine it; his mouth tightly closed,
his nose pointed and severe; a thick and pointed beard fell from his chin.
There, too, was Pedro de la Paz, who, when mounted, could scarcely be seen
above the head of his horse; a squinting, withered and deformed dwarf, yet the
boldest heart in the world. He, accompanied only by his Moor, each with a
torch, he himself with a naked sword in hand, ventured into the ill-famed
grottoes of the Gaurus, in order to dig out hidden treasure; for he feared
ghosts as little as he did the enemy in battle. Their leader was Gonzalvo
Fernandez Aguilar de Cordova, whose plumed crest had, in his first battle, been
seen thick in the midst of the fray, now a true captain. He never interfered
when Spaniards, who made disgraceful conditions, were slain by their fellows
for degenerate conduct; but that an enemy retiring under treaty should be
robbed of a gold chain, this he would not tolerate, and himself pursued the
robber into the sea. He said, "I would rather tame lions than these
Asturians”; but yet he tamed them. His infantry consisted of those whom the
Spanish soil would no longer tolerate, on account of their crimes; but he made
them all loyal to his King, eager for honour, untiring in besieging and
defending, and dauntless in the battle. He was the first to combine in a single
corps Spanish, Italian, and German soldiers, an organization which proved
irresistible for a century and a half. At the head of men like Leyva, Pescara,
Alva, Farnese, and many other famous leaders, who for one hundred and fifty
years hardly ever quitted the field with that army whose nucleus he had first
formed, he may fairly be called the Great Captain. These, now, and their
comrades, fought, not merely for victory, but for the prize of strength,
dexterity, and chivalrous bearing. Sometimes individuals would engage in a
single-handed combat; they first knelt down and prayed to God, threw themselves
flat upon the ground, and kissed it, and then appealed to the sword. It might
happen that the French would announce that on the morrow they would prove that
their hommes d'armes were superior to the
Spanish; whereupon the Spaniards would come in like numbers to the appointed
place, in order, as they said, to fight for their King's, their country's and
their own honour. Or both sides, the one coming from Ruvo, and the other from
Barletta, charged each other on horses with iron masks about their heads and
plates on their breasts and shoulders, and struggled together until one side
was exhausted and gave way. Or they would have recourse to stratagem in order
to gain the advantage; the French, for instance, would fly, but only to the
ambush which they had laid, whereupon the Spaniards on their part would retire
also, but only behind their ambush, so that the French were again compelled to
fall back, yet not unwillingly, for they had still a third ambush in reserve,
and this was their last, enabling them to remain the victors. In this rivalry
of the knights the Italians also joined. In Barletta, which Gonzalvo defended
against the besiegers with his Spaniards and Italians, a French prisoner once
observed to a Spaniard, that the Italians were cowards by nature, and their
allegiance but empty air. "Were ye not there, we should extinguish them as
water extinguishes fire”. This roused the Italians to challenge the French to a
combat of thirteen against thirteen on the plain lying between Andria and
Barletta. This encounter took place on the 13th February. The Italian
historians and poets have graphically described it; how both sides confronted
each other like two tall forests, between which flowed a small brook, and how
the French attacked in vain -for Ferramosca
restrained the ardour of his Italians- and how the latter at length made their
onslaught, like a subterranean mine, that seethes internally until at length it
bursts its bonds and sends rock and castle into the air, and conquered, driving
twelve as prisoners before them (the thirteenth was slain); whereupon they were
received with the ringing of bells and salvos of artillery, and with the cry of
"Italia" and "Hispania."
Thus
was the war protracted from June, 1502, until February, 1503. The Spanish were
at a disadvantage, but they held their ground. During precisely the same
months, Alexander also warred in the Romagna in the same cause, yet in how
different a manner and in what a different spirit! He well knew that the King
required, if not his help, at all events his sanction, and he knew how to
extort from him both sanction and help.
Caesar
renewed his campaign in the Romagna with insatiable greed, duplicity, and
violence. In June, 1502, he planned an expedition against the Varani of
Camerino, and borrowed for this purpose Guidobaldo of
Urbino's artillery. Guidobaldo had, besides, made him
a present of a few thousand men and a horse splendidly caparisoned. Caesar, in
return, saluted him as the best brother he had in Italy; yet he did not long
rejoice in this name, for this expedition was primarily directed against him.
On the 20th of June he was sitting at supper in the shady vale of Zoccolanti, when at sunset a messenger appeared and
announced that "Caesar's cavalry was advancing upon his city Fossombrone”. He struck the table and sprang up; he felt he
was deceived. At that instant other messengers arrived with the news that:
"the enemy had been seen in the vicinity of Marino and San Leo, and that
Caesar himself was advancing upon Cagli”. Guidobaldo saw that he was defenceless, and caught in a
net. He assembled the citizens of Urbino and addressed them. "A year has
365 days, and a day twenty-four hours. Of these days one, and of these hours
one will surely at some time be auspicious for my return”. Thereupon he took
flight. On the mountain roads on which he sped, hired peasants shouted after
him the murderers' war-cry of "Carne Ammazza!".
Soon he heard bells ringing, the firing of shots, and the crackling of fire all
around, intended to rouse the whole country to find him. On one occasion he was
only saved by a girl, who was coming from market and gave him some information;
but he succeeded in eluding the enemy. His country, his city, and his library,
in which he frequently studied with his tutor Odasio,
fell into the hands of Caesar.
In
July Caesar also took Camerino. Old Giulio Varano, who has been compared to
Priam, because he only saved one son in a foreign country, he allured to his
side with all his other sons by specious promises, and then caused them all to
be strangled. In August he allied himself afresh with Louis XII; which done, in
order both to make Bologna the capital of his duchy, and also to give his
father the glory of having in his day conquered a city which no former Pope had
been able to conquer, he turned against the Bentivogli.
For
these ends he made use of the Baglioni of Perugia, the Vitelli in Città, di
Castello, of Oliverotto of Fermo, and of all the Orsini.
All these were warriors by inclination and profession. Of the first named, it
was said that they were born with the sword at their side; the second had been
the first to introduce Swiss arms into Italy. They pursued each their own aims
and ends, as, for instance, Oliverotto, who, by
murdering seven leading citizens of Fermo, who were related to him and had
brought him up, made himself master of the city. Thus acted the others also,
who were desirous of restoring the Medici to Florence. Caesar indulged them in
this. But now that he had allied himself with the King, and had begun to oppose
their enterprises and to attack the Bentivogli, whose case was almost like
theirs, they were filled with apprehension that, "the ruin of all the
lords in the States of the Church had been resolved on”. They thereupon sent
envoys and assembled. They entered into a close alliance with Petrucci and
Bentivoglio, and at last at Magione decided to make
war upon Caesar.
They
resolved on war; the people of Urbino began it. The signal for its outbreak was
given on the 5th October by a carpenter, who let a beam, which he was
instructed to convey to the castle of San Leo, fall upon the drawbridge there.
Thereupon, in an instant, armed men rushed across the bridge and took the castle.
Thence the cry of "Feltre e Duca" spread through the whole duchy, and
roused it in revolt. In the city the peasants, who had come to market, first
seized the cannon, and then gained the castle. Guidobaldo
returned, and even those who only saw him lying on his bed -for he was at that
time suffering from his malady, the gout- went away satisfied. Camerino
summoned the last of the Varani.
But
what could have been the reason that the allies of Magione,
menaced as they were and warlike as they were by nature, did not attack Caesar,
who was all defenceless at Imola? They did not wish to destroy him; they wanted
only to show him how indispensable they were to him. Caesar knew that full
well. "They wished to secure themselves, nothing more”, said he. He sent
and asked them why they had deserted him, urging that only the title belonged
to him, and that the possession of all his past and future conquests belonged
to them: "he sent them a blank sheet of paper with his signature, and only
waited for their conditions”. And now that Alexander had remarked to Cardinal
Orsini that he would resign the papacy in his favour, they believed that they
had attained what they wished. The Cardinal smiled and said: "The Pope
needs me, we are always good friends”. On the 25th October, Paolo Orsini came
to Caesar about the matter of the treaty. Caesar now said: "They are
ogling me; I will abide my time."
At
Imola he received not only the assurances of King Louis, the proposals of the
Florentine Popolari, and money from his father, but in June he gathered round
him 230 French lances, 2,500 soldiers, half French and half German, 2,500
Italians, a Bolognese refugee with mounted arquebusiers, and some Albanians;
all in his pay. Meanwhile, Paolo journeyed with the draft of the peace proposals
from Imola to Perugia, and thence to Magione and the
camps of his friends; no trouble deterred him, and he persuaded them one after
another to sign it, and although Vitellozzo Vitelli
remained a long time obdurate, he too at last followed suit.
On
the 2nd December the following treaty was agreed to : "Caesar to receive
back Camerino and Urbino, but to give a pledge to the Bentivogli by arranging a
matrimonial alliance between their house and that of Borgia, and to use the old
weapons again”. Hereupon Caesar ordered the barons to take the field against
the revolted districts and against Sinigaglia; he
himself remained with his army at Imola. He only gave audience to very few,
from whom he expected to hear important news; he only admitted three or four servants
to his presence, and never left a certain chamber before nightfall. It was
never possible to learn from him what his purposes were; but his confidantes
said, "We have been wounded with daggers and we are now to be healed with
words: even children would laugh at such terms”.
The
treaty with the Orsini restored forthwith to Caesar both Camerino and Urbino,
the only condition being that the people and Guidobaldo's
private possessions should be protected. Sinigaglia
was next prevailed upon by four heads of the Orsini, namely, Paolo, Vitellozzo, Oliverotto, and the
Duke of Gravina, to promise to surrender its castle, but only to Caesar
himself.
The
time he had longed for had at length arrived. On the 31st December, 1502, he
advanced with his army upon Sinigaglia. Vitellozzo did not wish to await his coming: but as the
others trusted Caesar, and Paolo coaxed him to remain, he did not care to break
the league. Unarmed, and attired in his citizen's cap with its green lining, he
mounted his mule and rode forth to meet him. Their troops were quartered in the
outlying villages, with the exception of Oliverotto's
companies; and these latter dispersed at Caesar's request, "for they might
otherwise quarrel with his troops about their quarters”. The four chiefs escorted
him to the lodging prepared for his reception. He would not part from them, “as
he had something to say to them”. Full of apprehension -but they could no
longer refuse- they entered his apartments with him. Now he had them in his
power. His principle was: "He who does not avenge himself, deserves to be
always insulted”. He said, it is right to deceive those who are experts in all
treachery and treason. Moreover he had always sought after territories, but
never only after the land but against the head of its lord as well. When the
door was closed behind them, Michelotto, the trusted executor of all Caesar's
murders, stepped forward with a few armed men. Each of them was addressed with,
"Sir, you are a prisoner”, and forthwith they were thrown into prison.
Their troops were surprised and slain. Caesar, talkative and vivacious once
more, rode through the streets.
The
work begun by the son was continued by the father. He invited Cardinal Orsini
to him, as if to narrate to him the story of the fall of Sinigaglia;
but on the Cardinal looking down into the courtyard from the room into which he
had been shown, he saw his mule being unsaddled and led off into the papal
stables. He and all his friends with him were captives also.
And
now for murder and conquest, and the final accomplishment of these
undertakings. Oliverotto and Vitellozzo,
bound back to back, the former accusing the latter -it was the anniversary of
the death of the Seven of Ferrao-, and
the latter praying for the spiritual blessing of the same Pope who had
condemned him to die, were, on the first night of their captivity, strangled
with one rope; the other two suffered shortly after. The Cardinal's mistress,
in male attire, brought the Pope a valuable pearl, his mother sent a sum of
money, and the Cardinal promised a still more considerable sum. But all these
endeavours could only attain a momentary alleviation of his lot. His life could
not be saved. When he died, all the world was convinced that he had been
poisoned by order of the Pope. The houses of the Orsini in Rome were pulled
down; and an old lady of the family, eighty years of age, was compelled to seek
shelter under a public archway. Almost all their castles, the cities of Perugia
and Città, di Castello, as well as many villages, fell into the hands of the
Pope. Caesar compelled the Sienese to expel Petrucci. Never in history had a
Pope been so powerful in the States of the Church as Alexander. Both factions
of barons had been expelled, if not annihilated; there was now not a lord in
the land, save his son and his son's family -for the Bentivogli and the Este
had been received into it- Siena was conquered, Florence friendly, all
successfully accomplished.
It
was primarily the name and assistance of France that achieved this result. When
Caesar was in peril, Louis said : "Whoever helped Caesar he would love the
more the quicker he did it; he would give the Pope and his son the whole of the
States of the Church”. As the Orsini were in negotiation with the Spaniards,
their destruction was also to the advantage of Louis. It was expected that the
troops of Caesar would come to the aid of the French in Naples.
2.
THE DECISION IN NAPLES
In
February, 1503, Gonzalvo, now shut up in Barletta, appeared to be in a sorry
plight. Neither the German nor yet the Spanish troops, for which he had
written, made their appearance. The transport of supplies was impossible so
long as the French galleys under Préjean held the
sea; and yet troops and supplies were both urgently needed.
A
change for the better began when, under the very eyes of the Venetians, some
Spanish sloops and galleys succeeded in gaining possession of the coast so
completely that Préjean hurriedly threw his guns
overboard, set free his slaves, forsook his ships, and escaped by land. Six days
later, Gonzalvo ventured once more to leave Barletta. Whilst Nemours had gone
to subdue a revolted town, he himself succeeded in reducing Ruvo, after a siege
of seven hours, and taking many brave men prisoners, among them La Palice. His spirits rose, but as yet he was much too weak
to make an attack in full force. But lack of provisions impelled him to risk
it, and he was preparing to try his luck in a sortie on the following day, when
a Venetian ship laden with wheat, and immediately afterwards a Sicilian corn
ship, put into harbour. Three others brought 7,000 tumbanos
of corn with them. He was thus enabled to wait for reinforcements. On the 8th
March, the Spaniards arrived at Reggio with 3.000 Catalan, Galician, and
Asturian infantry, and 300 heavy and 400 light cavalry. On the 10th April, the
2,500 Germans -the contingent Maximilian had promised, and Juan Manuel had
raised- at length arrived at Manfredonia, under the command of Hans von Ravenstein. The Spaniards were now equal, if not superior,
to the French in numbers. They were in a position again to carry on the war in
earnest. Serious encounters had already taken place in Calabria. Near
Terranova, the Spaniards from Gerace and Reggio were collected under the joint
command of Andrada Caravajal, Benavides, and Antonio
Leyva. In the plain below, but across the river which intersects it, Aubigny showed himself, and sent his herald Ferracut up into the Spanish camp: "They should come
down into the valley where he had once vanquished the most gallant king”. The
Spaniards gave the herald a silver dish and a golden goblet, replying:
"They would come". They then came down, and the infantry, covered by
the cavalry, crossed the stream in the plain. At this moment Aubigny attacked Benavides”. In Ubeda and Baeza the lion of
the Benavides and the black standard of the Carvajals
had often met in conflict. But now Carvajal forgot the old feud, and with his Ginetes made an onslaught upon Aubigny's
rear. The French were defeated. Aubigny, surrounded
by his body guard of Scots, escaped to Gioia.
This
took place on the 20th April. On the 27th of the same month Gonzalvo marched
out of Barletta with all his forces also to do battle. The French, stationed at
Canosa, saw him depart and likewise set out, but neither side very willingly.
Gonzalvo had received provisions, but no money; he scarcely succeeded in
quieting his Spaniards with promises of rich booty and with the small sum of
six carlins for nine months' pay. The French had received express orders from
their king to finish the business forthwith, otherwise he would summon them
home again to their wives, and send other hommes d'armes
in their stead.
Here
stretches away the treeless plain of Apulia, where the month of April is always
very hot. Of Gonzalvo it is told how his Germans in early morning licked the
dew-drops from the high fennel stalks, and fell down at noon exhausted from
thirst; how he refreshed them with the last drain of Ofanto
water the bottles contained; and how at last he let the most weary mount behind
the horsemen. Nemours must have had to contend with scarcely less considerable
difficulties on his march. Yet, after ten months of weary waiting, the
satisfaction of at length finding themselves in the field enabled them to
endure their hardships, and, on the 28th April towards evening, both arrived in
extreme exhaustion before Cerignola. The Spaniards,
who were the first to arrive, threw up light entrenchments in a vineyard. But
as soon as the French came up, and both armies saw each other, they forgot
exhaustion and thirst -the soul conceals within it secret wells of ever new
refreshment- and the armies prepared for battle. On either side, the infantry
was in the centre, and the cavalry on the flanks. Nemours would not for a long
time consent to attack; but he was compelled to undertake it by the pressure of
Ives d'Allègre, and the other captains. In order to
show, as he said, who he was, he dashed at the trench behind which the Germans
were posted. He came up to it, wheeled about, came up to it again and cried,
"We must get over this rampart”. As he dashed at it, a German gun laid him
low, and his comrades, who met with an equally hot reception, began to retire.
Further to the left, the Swiss attacked, though somewhat later; but as soon as
they perceived their commander, recognizable by his white plume, and at the
same moment many others also, laid low by the Galician bullets and javelins, they
likewise turned and fled. Allègre, who led the left
wing and was furthest in the rear, did not venture then to attempt anything
more. The Spaniards were left victors on the field, and passed the night in the
French bivouac. Nothing further was now needed to give the Spaniards the upper
hand in this kingdom, rent and torn as it was by factions. The understandings
which Gonzalvo had maintained from the Abruzzi as far as Castel a Mar awoke to
life and energy. On a single day he took thirty castles, and on the 13th May
with the cry of "Spagna, Spagna”, the Count of Tramontano opened to him
the gates of Naples. Inigo Davalos brought the keys of the castle of Ischia.
Rocca Guglielma, which since Charles VIII's expedition had held for the French,
fell in June. Meanwhile, Andrada took stronghold after stronghold in Calabria,
and at length Aubigny himself surrendered to him.
With the exception of Gaeta, whither the French army had fled, almost the whole
kingdom was now in the hands of the Spaniards. At the end of July Navarra went
to that stronghold, in order to try the same means as had opened to him the
fortress of Naples.
We
shall consider immediately the great change which was brought about by the
death of Alexander VI, which took place in August of this year. During the
agitation for the election of his successor, French and Spaniards fought
together. In Rome, even the troops were on one occasion arrayed against each
other. This event, however, exercised no immediate influence upon the war in
Naples. The decision there depended solely upon the superiority of arms.
In
October, 1503, a fresh French army, under the Marquis Gonzaga, made its
appearance on the Garigliano, in order to invade the lost territory. The
Spaniards were resolved to prevent their crossing the river. Accordingly, both
armies marched backwards and forwards for a while, intently observing each
other, until Gonzalvo threw a bridge across at Sessa, and, under cover of his
guns, which mounted on barks swept the river, actually succeeded in gaining the
opposite bank. As soon as he had crossed, a battle began, in which Gonzalvo
fought on foot, and a Spanish ensign who had lost his right arm exclaimed:
"Have I not still the left?", and again seized the standard. In this
encounter the French held the bridge and the head of the bridge, but they never
advanced a step further.
But
the opposing armies were not kept apart so much by the river, although it
actually separated their camps, as by the swampy ground on either bank - for
the season was very wet, and the country as far as Mondragone
almost one great morass. Some of the Spaniards kept the outer lines of the
trench they had dug; the rest were encamped under huts made from oak trees. The
French endeavoured to find shelter in the neighbouring villages, at all events
for their horses; the Swiss companies lay alternately in the camp and in the
same villages. Both armies were in need of provisions, money, and clothes. This
depressing state of things resulted in the very reverse of the merry war before
Barletta. Words of abuse were heard more than the ring of arms. The Spaniards
were abused for their stealing and hanging proclivities; the French were called
drunkards; the Swiss were called cattle-vultures, and the Germans "Schmocher”; whilst the Italians were called "Bougres”.
The
question was which of the two would hold out the longer. Gonzaga, hearing
himself called "Bougre" by the French, and
all disaster attributed to him, would no longer tolerate this want of
discipline, and so drew up an account of his operations, and after having it
signed by his captains, left the army. Gonzalvo, on the other hand, who was
beset by his bravest officers, stating that they could not and would not endure
this state of affairs any longer, replied : "Rather a step forwards to
death, than one backwards to victory”, and so held out.
At
length the enemy crossed over and attacked. On the 29th December, 1503,
Gonzalvo made an onslaught upon the French bridge, and a simultaneous attack
upon their camp with his main army, which, with Alviano's
assistance, he had been enabled to bring across the river. This battle decided
the fate of the kingdom. Bayard fought like a hero, but all in vain; the French
disorganization was too great, and the onslaught of the Spaniards overwhelming.
Gonzalvo was victorious on both banks. In Gaeta, too, whither French had at
first fled, the Spanish standard was flying by the 3rd January, 1504. The
French were obliged to retreat homewards; many by sea -the ships set sail as
soon as they were filled, none waited for the other- the rest by land; the
latter said to Gonzalvo: "Give us strong horses to bring us back again”.
Yet
this favour was not to be their's so readily. The
superiority of the Spaniards was due to their greater proximity, owing to the
possession of Sicily, between which and Naples existed an old natural alliance,
as well as to the prudent and cautious treatment of the factions opposing one
another in the south of Italy; for this was Gonzalvo's peculiar merit, that he
controlled different factions and nations by the deep respect in which he was
held, as might be seen in the manner in which he succeeded in uniting Colonna
and Orsini in one and the same camp. He did not spare his enemy. The remainder
of the Angevin army in the Abruzzi and Otranto was vanquished by Morgan and
Pedro de la Paz; the Marquisates of Bitonto and
Salerno were seized, and many barons dispossessed. Gonzalvo rewarded his
captains, including those of the Orsini family, with the estates of those thus
expelled, and ruled the kingdom entirely in the spirit of the Aragonese party.
At
the same time, the French and Spanish forces were opposing each other, not only
on the Neapolitan frontier, but also on the borders of Roussillon. Here
Ferdinand, in person, protected those garrisons, which wrote to him saying;
"they were ready to die, but he ought to see that he did not lose many
brave men”, as well as the frontiers of his own empire. On showing himself on
French soil with 20,000 infantry and 8,000 lances, he obtained in November a
truce for Roussillon.
In
the February following their reverse, this truce was also extended to Naples,
where the French still entertained the greatest hopes.
3.
CHANGE IN THE PAPACY
The
former good understanding between the French and the Pope did not long endure.
The French complained that he had appropriated the purchases of supplies made
by their commissioners in the States of the Church, and consequently, that
their troops had been compelled to fight at an inconvenient season; that he had
despatched troops to Aquila, but only for the purpose of seizing it for
himself; and, finally, that he had taken good care that Caesar's army should
not support the French. If we inquire what it was that could have estranged him
from the French alliance, to which he owed all his successes, we find the
reason in the state of affairs in Tuscany. Caesar had twice threatened to
attack Florence, and on each occasion Louis XII had dissuaded him. Louis had
granted all that he was capable of granting. His most faithful allies, the
Popolari at Florence, could not possibly be sacrificed to the Borgia. But this
very city of Florence, on the other hand, Ferdinand the Catholic was ready to
hand over to the Pope. He had long since proposed to the German King to make
Caesar King of Tuscany. Here we can perceive how great the prestige of this
Pope was. The King of France was desirous of making his son lord of the Marches
and of the Romagna, whilst the King of Spain even wished to make him King of
Tuscany. In the struggle between the two princes it was of vital moment to
which side the Pope would incline. Hitherto he had been regarded as a supporter
of the French. But now, when a French envoy could be attacked and almost slain
in the streets of Rome, when envoys from Pisa (the enemies of the Florentines),
who had long since offered their city to Caesar, had the entrée of the
court, and when the Pope most energetically opposed the union of Florence and
Siena, which Louis XII exerted himself to compass by the restoration of
Petrucci, it was palpable that the Pope was abandoning the French cause, in
order primarily to subdue Pisa, Siena, and Florence. When Francesco Trocces, the favourite of the Pope and his privy
chamberlain, attempted flight, and was seized and put to death the same night,
this act was ascribed to the suspicion that Trocces
communicated to the French the plot that was being hatched against them. We
have it from the most unimpeachable source, that in or about March, 1503,
Alexander proposed to the Catholic King to enter into a league with Venice in
order to expel the French from Italy.
Thus
the whole success of the campaign in the Romagna would have been turned against
Louis, and a league might easily have been formed against him, as against
Charles VIII. In the same way as, when in league with the French, Alexander had
conquered the States of the Church, he would now, deserting his former allies,
have conquered Tuscany in league with the Spaniards. He would have become
master of central Italy, and a powerful arbiter between the great powers.
Everything
bearing on these undertakings had been well considered, except one thing, and
this occurred. Alexander died, and Caesar at the same time fell dangerously
ill.
Alexander
also had been ill for a few days previously to his death, but little more was
known in the palace than that he was ill of a fever. But, after his death,
which took place on the 18th August, the sight of his corpse, with the face
black as coal, and the tongue so swollen that the mouth would not close, a
sight more ghastly than had ever been observed in a dead body, gave rise to
sinister reports. It was said that the Pope one evening went to a banquet in
the vineyard belonging to Cardinal Adrian of Corneto, at which he intended to
poison several rich cardinals; being thirsty, he called for wine to drink and
by mistake drank of the wine which Caesar had told his servant was the best,
but which had really been poisoned for the purpose of murdering the guests.
Caesar also partook of the wine, and both he and his father were carried off
half dead. Caesar was sewn up in the still reeking hide of a mule, and escaped
death, but Alexander died. At any rate the Cardinal of Corneto told the
historian, Giovio, that the poison, which carried off
the Pope, was intended for him among others, and that he narrowly escaped.
Others added that Alexander had forgotten the sacred Host which he was in the
habit of carrying about with him for protection; others, again, that the
compact had expired which he had made with the devil, who had come in the form
of a courier to fetch him away.
At
all events, in the midst of his greatest expectations, his career was cut
short.
It
has been said, that the Pope had sometimes been warned, as though by God, in
the midst of his crimes : for instance, by a flash of lightning that once
struck the ground before him, just as he had persuaded the Archbishop of
Cosenza to accuse himself guiltlessly, by a popular tumult, from which he
barely escaped with his life into a church, immediately after he had caused Alfonso
di Biseglia to be put to death, and he likewise
received the express warning of the astrologers that he would die for his son's
sake. There never was a Pope, who so completely subordinated all ecclesiastical
considerations to secular interests, and still less was there ever one, who
strove to compass his ends by such terrible means. No acquisition of land has
ever been stained with so much blood and cruelty, as was the establishment of
his direct sovereignty over the Papal States by stamping out all their small
potentates. But this appropriation was not after all intended for the papacy; a
single despot was to unite it all in his hand, and this despot none other than
the Pope's own son. What a check would not such a principality have exercised
upon future popes!
After
Alexander's decease, Rome and the Romagna became involved in the greatest
confusion. In Rome Caesar was master of the Castle of St. Angelo; he had a
large body of men under his command and, moreover, his father's treasure stored
in two large chests, which he had removed from the palace. But since he lay
sick, the cardinals were not prevented from enlisting troops; the Orsini too
now ventured again to make their appearance. It is related of Fabio Orsini that
he slew one of Caesar's attendants and washed his mouth and hands in the blood.
The citizens often closed the streets and shops because of the tumult of the
fighting parties.
In
the Romagna, the authorities, Caesar's adherents, fled, and the lords of the
land returned. When Guidobaldo came back to Urbino,
even the patrician ladies under captains followed the drum through the streets
in the evening, to show that they also were ready to fight for him. In Città di
Castello a golden calf was carried through the streets as a device of the Vitelli.
Sinigaglia, headed by the Rovere, flew to arms at the
bidding of Cardinal Giuliano. Giampaolo Baglione returned to Perugia under
French protection. The others likewise returned from their several asylums.
But
how matters would develop depended entirely upon the election of the new pope.
The
cardinals hastened to meet. Ascanio Sforza was once more released from his
tower at Bourges, in order that he might give his vote for the French
candidate. Giovanni Colonna came from Sicily, where he had been living upon an
annual allowance from the Catholic King. He was entirely Spanish in his
leanings. As soon as the French forces occupied Nepi,
the Spanish advanced under Mendoza to Marino, both places being in close
proximity to the city. Under the protection of the French party, both in the
conclave and in the field, Georges d'Amboise publicly aspired to the highest
dignity in Christendom. Gonzalvo was not less open in his counter-declaration:
"If the Holy Ghost chose another than Carvajal, the Spanish party would
not oppose the choice”. Neither Amboise nor Carvajal was elected. But in
Piccolomini, of Siena, Pope Pius III, whose election was finally agreed to, the
Spaniards believed they had gained a friend on the papal throne, while the
French saw in him an enemy, as Pius II, also a Piccolomini, had been. The
Spaniards appeared as the victors. But Pius had scarcely taken possession of
the Vatican, and had not even entered St. John Lateran, when he died, and the
struggle between the rival parties began afresh. Baglione and Alviano once more
entered Rome with their troops; the former with his French on the right bank of
the Tiber, and the latter with his Spanish on the left. When the cardinals
entered into the Conclave, both sides retired.
Now
at this time, the man who enjoyed the greatest esteem of all the cardinals was
Giuliano della Rovere, who had opposed three popes,
and always with the utmost courage, a man whom even Alexander admitted was a
man of his word, the same man, who had just directed the capture of the castle
of Sinigaglia. He was a native of Savona, and might
be considered a French subject. He had always favoured the party of the
Colonna, and was not altogether unacceptable to the Spaniards. Now that Amboise
despaired of becoming pope himself, and Ferdinand of placing a Spaniard on the
throne, both parties decided in favour of Giuliano. He had always been well
disposed towards the Venetians, and he now promised security for Caesar. And so
it came to pass that, within an hour after the close of the Conclave, he was
sitting at a separate table as pope, signing the capitulation of the cardinals,
and placing on his finger the papal ring that had already been engraved with
his monogram. He styled himself, slightly changing his baptismal name, Julius
II. In this choice the French believed they had gained a victory such as the
Spaniards had vaunted in the case of Pius. At all events, Amboise, who, in
addition to the French legation, received that of Avignon, and whose nephew was
the first cardinal, lived harmoniously together with him in the palace and
assisted at his most private councils.
The
first difficulty to be encountered was the state of things in the Romagna, which
became more and more complicated. On the part of Tuscany, the Aretins and Pisans, with Pandolfo Petrucci and Giuliano de'
Medici, offered their services to Gonzalvo; on the part of Genoa, both the
French and the Adorni; and on the part of Lombardy, 600 nobles and Ascanio
Sforza with them.
For,
precisely at the time that Julius became pope, the Venetians invaded the
Romagna. They occupied the country round about Imola, purchased Rimini from the
Malatesta, and threatened Faenza. But as this country owned Caesar as its lord,
and since Julius, though promising to let him remain so, had not undertaken to
defend him, this invasion, consequently, resolved itself into a war between the
Venetians and Caesar.
Therefore,
when the Pope upbraided them for their conduct, asking, "whether he had
done them so few services, that they had resolved to rob the Church during his
pontificate”, they replied: "it was a robber, and not the Church that they
were attacking : and that they too were ready to pay their tribute”. Whereupon
the Pope replied: that "though he wanted lords over his cities, he only
wished for such as he could control”, and held frequent councils. Although
Caesar was not exactly an acceptable personage -for how could he possibly trust
him? -the Venetians were even less desirable.
Since
his father's death, Caesar appeared to have lost all confidence, boldness, and
decision. He even vacillated in the papal election; today making a compact with
Amboise and on the morrow with the Colonna; today promising to join one army,
and then on the morrow betaking himself to the other.
But, as soon as the first intelligence of the Venetian operations reached him,
he completely lost his senses. Men said of him: "The strokes of adverse
fortune have stunned him, and he no longer knows what he wants”. "Where we
see men displaying energy as soon as disaster befalls them, we shall always
find them at the bottom to be good and noble natures; those, on the contrary,
who are not such appear strong only so long as they are in good fortune and no
longer.
In
order to invalidate the excuse advanced by the Venetians, Caesar expressed his
readiness to surrender for a time all his castles and towns to Pope Julius. But
the latter, apprehensive lest it might be difficult for him to restore them
again, refused the offer. He considered it to be best for Caesar to proceed by
sea to Spezzia, and thence to go by way of Ferrara,
whilst the army advanced against Imola through the Tuscan and Perugian territories. Caesar was neither supported by Florence,
nor yet by Baglione; but he made the venture. On the 19th November, 1503, he
despatched his army through Tuscany, whilst he himself went to Ostia, to take
ship. He still hoped that the star of his fortune would return; but all the
world mocked at him: "Whither," said they, "will the wind waft
him, where will he meet with his troops again?" Everything depended upon
his relations to the new Pope, and upon the latter's good-will towards him.
He
was but two days gone, when Julius received tidings that Faenza was in the
greatest danger of being taken by the Venetians, and that it was open to doubt
whether Caesar would arrive quickly enough, and with sufficient forces, to be
able to take effective measures against them. These tidings deprived the Pope
of sleep, and in the night of the 22nd November he resolved to take the risk
and to accept Caesar's castles for the time being. In the morning be summoned
Cardinal Soderini to him; but he still kept his own counsel, for he wished not
to do wrong, and did not confide to him his resolve. Towards evening he again
sent for him, told him, and sent him after Caesar. But now the latter refused.
On the 29th, he was brought to Rome by the papal guards; when there, he was
sometimes to be found in Magliana, and sometimes in
the treasurer's apartments, or in Amboise's lodging. He there heard how
Baglione had surprised and annihilated his army; and so, at length, he
consented to surrender the signs of power, by which the governors of his
castles were pledged to him. But they delayed and made fresh difficulties. It
was not until April, 1504, that the castles were delivered to the Pope, and
Caesar again enjoyed full liberty at Ostia.
Thus
it came to pass that Julius II interfered against Venice on behalf of Cesena,
Imola, and Forli, as their immediate lord, and defended these cities against
attack. But, meanwhile, Faenza was lost. We shall see what important events
resulted from its fall.
At
Ostia, Caesar was again seized by his old vacillation. His father had first of
all been French in his sympathies, and then Spanish, and then again French, and
again Spanish. Lescun, and the Marquis of Finale,
both set out at the same time to Caesar, the latter offering French aid, and
the former a Spanish safe-conduct. What should he do? Louis was his kinsman,
and always kept his promise. Ferdinand had the reputation of being faithless,
and the Aragonese safeconducts
were well known, as was also the fact that, a short time previously, Federigo's
son had been allured to avail himself of them, and had been made prisoner, and
carried off to Spain. But was he still capable at that time of making a choice?
It might be said that his fate was upon him. Lescun
was the first to come, and Caesar followed him. In the same way as Michelotto
stepped up to his prisoners, so at last did Runno de
Ocampo address Caesar with the words: "Sir, you are a prisoner."
Caesar drew a deep sigh, surrendered himself, and was imprisoned in a castle in
Spain. This firebrand, the Spaniards said, was safe in no other hands but in
theirs.
Later,
Caesar escaped from the castle and reached Navarre once more, but was slain,
shortly after his flight, in a skirmish.
CHAPTER II
SPAIN AND AUSTRIA AT VARIANCE
These
Neapolitan affairs are intimately connected with a quarrel between Spain and
Austria, which broke out even before their negotiations had been concluded.
When
Philip, in the early part of the year 1503, set out on his return journey to
the Netherlands through France, the Spanish cause at Naples was in a sorry
plight, and Philip believed himself commissioned to conclude a treaty with
Louis. He arrived at his court at Lyons, and, on the 5th of April, had just
agreed upon a peace with the King, a peace, of course, most advantageous to him
and to this effect: "That Naples should be governed in the name of Charles
and Claude, but with his co-operation, and should at a future day devolve upon
them”, when the prospects of the Spaniards at Naples improved. They now entertained
hopes of victory, and Ferdinand ordered his commander-in-chief to disregard any
orders he might receive from Philip. In vain his heralds came and departed;
instead of the peace, the battle of Cerignola took
place. Philip had long been on bad terms with his father-in-law; the latter had
refused him the revenues of a prince, had, in Roussillon, prohibited his
attendants being provided with horses, and had given orders to have all the
cannon at Salsas ready for action whenever he visited that fortress. Both
foresaw Isabella's death, and that they would then have to fight for the
succession in Castile. This Neapolitan affair further fanned this bad feeling.
The quarrel with Ferdinand's envoys, who denied that Philip had been
commissioned to conclude a peace, at first deprived this young and noble prince
-who was ill at the time- of consciousness. But he soon recovered, and in his
own name he now concluded an alliance with Louis, which was proclaimed at Lyons
in August. It was aimed immediately at Ferdinand. Louis promised the Archduke
1000 lances for the conquest of Castile, as he knew that he would need them.
Philip then induced his father, who was always in accord with his son, to join
this alliance and to reiterate his promise concerning the investiture of Milan,
which had not yet been bestowed; and to this step Maximilian was also persuaded
by the state of affairs in Germany.
I.
MAXIMILIAN, THROUGH THE INFLUENCE OF THE FRENCH ALLIANCE,
VICTORIOUS IN GERMANY.
It
is worthy of remark how intimately German domestic affairs are connected with
French war and peace.
The
Council of Regency, which had been constituted after Louis' victory over the
Sforza and Maximilian, passed, as early as September, 1501, independent
resolutions of its own. But owing to Maximilian having, on the 3rd of October
following, entered with Louis into the treaty of Trent, not one of its
resolutions was put into force; nay, from that hour it entirely fell to pieces.
For a whole six months neither Kammergericht
nor Hofgericht was held throughout the Empire,
the Estates lost prestige, there was no prospect of a Diet, and public peace
was not to be dreamt of. In spite of this, the Neapolitan war of Ferdinand and,
as we have seen, of Maximilian also, against Louis was allowed to break out in
June, 1502, before any steps were taken. In July, the Electors assembled at Gelnhausen, and agreed to hold yearly meetings, to which
they proposed to summon all the Estates, each bringing his neighbours, in case
the King himself did not summon a Diet.
The
intention was the same as that with which certain meetings had been agreed upon
at Worms, and a committee of the realm appointed at Augsburg; namely, to
deliberate upon such subjects as war with the Turks, the public peace, the
Cameral Tribunal, and all internal matters. Such meetings were actually held.
To these the Electors referred everything which Maximilian demanded of them
individually; and when he summoned any of their number before his Court they
flatly opposed him. All the judicial power now left to the King was the right
of reversing appeals, and the bestowal of expectancies. During the months in
which the French were victorious in Italy, the breach was most strongly marked.
Maximilian loudly complained of Berthold of Mainz, stating that: "he was
most vexed with him, because he had not followed his suggestions in the Diets;
and had, moreover, always hindered him in his endeavours for the prosperity of
the realm and of Christendom”. In February, 1503, he would gladly have made
common cause with the Swiss, who crossed the St. Gotthard to defend Bellinzona,
and would with them have entered Milan, in order to settle the Neapolitan
question, had it not been that the situation at home tied his hands. To enable
him to engage in the slightest enterprise, he needed a certain tranquillity on
the part of the German princes, and for this, peace with France.
Thus
it was that, in concluding this treaty, his son's advantage coincided well with
his own.
It
can scarcely have been by corruption that Louis contrived to keep the princes
on his side; it was to their advantage also when the French gave the German
King plenty of trouble; they need not then fear him for themselves. However
that might be, after the reconciliation between Louis and the House of Austria,
in November, 1503, the Electors excused themselves apologetically for their
previous conduct, and resolved only to meet once every two years. These
meetings never took place again. This opposition was now virtually at an end.
But at that very time Maximilian found an opportunity of destroying another
older and more deeply rooted combination, which even foreigners class among the
great factions of Europe, viz., the opposition of the Palatinate.
Forty
years previously, Friedrich, Arrogator of the Palatinate,
in league with Bavaria-Landshut, victoriously resisted the grand attack of the
Emperor and his whole party. We have seen the correspondence in which the
Elector Palatine engaged with Charles VIII and Louis XII. In the days when
Louis concluded the Swiss treaty against Maximilian, the Elector married his
son Ruprecht to the only daughter of Georg of Landshut. Those who forty years
before had fought together were now dead; but the old hate and the old leanings
still survived and lived on in their children.
It
happened that Duke Georg of Landshut, when about to proceed in his carriage,
accompanied by four physicians, to Wildbad, at Michaelmas, 1503, was suddenly
taken so ill on the road that he could only reach his castle at Ingolstadt; so
sick was he. Should he allow his country to pass to Duke Albrecht of Munich,
his old enemy and Maximilian's brother-in-law, who was, nevertheless, his
rightful heir according to the feudal law of descent? In order to pass it to
Ruprecht, his sister's son and his son-in-law, he committed to him his
fortresses and his treasure, and called together the Estates for the 10th
December. But he died before they met; and this last scion of the house of
Bavaria-Landshut was borne to the grave by foreign knights, save one only, whom
he had summoned to protect his son-in-law.
The
young Ruprecht was the first to appear before the Estates, with his knights and
yeomen. "How”, he exclaimed, “could any one wish
to defraud the grandchildren of Duke Georg, who were males, and of his own flesh
and blood? The whole succession of the House of Burgundy had descended through
a woman; Bavarian blood also coursed through his veins”. Then appeared
Albrecht's envoys: "The land was a male fief, and, further, Albrecht was
in the fourth, whilst Ruprecht was only in the eighth degree from Georg”. The
Estates did not seem able to arrive at a solution, and so declared their
readiness to submit to Maximilian's arbitration; yet this was also a decision,
for the King had long since taken a side.
Maximilian
considered his own advantage, and had three aims in view. The first was for
Albrecht, his sister's husband, in whose company he entered Augsburg, on the
30th of January, 1504, to assist at the Diet. His second aim was for himself,
to obtain certain districts of Landshut; and the third was the humiliation of
the Palatinate, which, besides, he wished to deprive of the Landgraviate of
Hagenau. His proposal "that that part of Bavaria lying across the Danube
should be assigned to Ruprecht, and all the rest should belong to
Albrecht," as well as others of a like nature, was rejected now by one
party and now by the other. At last, on Easter Day, after the Dukes of Munich
had held two hours' private conversation with him, he announced the same
evening to the Estates of Landshut, in a garden at Augsburg, that "the war
must unfortunately take its course”. His final decision gave the whole country
to the Munich line. On the 24th of April, Ruprecht's consort took possession of
the city and of a large portion of the Landshut territory. Forthwith all the
old enemies of 1461 rose up in arms, Württemberg, Veldenz,
and Hesse against the Palatinate; the Munich House, with the assistance of
Brandenburg, Saxony, Swabia, and the city of Nuremberg against Landshut. The
war began.
But
how about the French alliance of the old Count Palatine? His followers wore
white crosses like the French; he sent his son repeatedly to Louis. But all to
no purpose; the new alliance with Maximilian prevented the French King from
listening to him. The Count Palatine resolved to keep only the fortresses
garrisoned, and to maintain two armies in the field, one at Heidelberg, and
another at Landshut, with the view either to prevent or to requite pillage and
plunder. The enemy, he reflected, was not so rich as he was, and would be first
exhausted.
The
Palatinate itself was assailed on three sides. On the east of the Rhine, Ulrich
of Württemberg made the attack. He took Maulbronn,
and 2000 balls discharged from the Niederberg forced
the people of Besigheim, Walheim, and Weinsberg to
accept him in their churches as their lord and master. Bretten alone was
defended by the good pieces of ordnance that Georg Schwarzerd
had cast, and by a company of Swiss from Thurgau.
West
of the Rhine, Alexander the Black of Veldenz drove
off herds of oxen and swine, levied contributions, and allowed his soldiers to
cut up silk altar-hangings to make jerkins, or to send them home to their
wives. In Sonwald we find him lying in wait for the
cattle to be driven out of a castle, so as to surprise the open gate. But now
and again Johann Landschad would march against him
from Kreuznach with better men, and deal with him
likewise. Wilhelm of Hesse ravaged first the Bergstrasse
lying to the right of the Rhine, and then the Alzheimer Gau,
on the left; and it was only the peasantry of Ingelheim in their monastery, and
the garrison of Kaub, that offered him any formidable resistance.
Whilst
all this robbing, murdering, and pillaging was taking place -for we cannot call
it regular warfare- the archives were ransacked for evidence of the King's
claim to this territory, and this, with Hagenau and Ortenau,
passed into his hand. Overjoyed at his success, which had been achieved without
heeding the solicitation of any of the Electors, by merely confirming the
enemies of the Palatinate in the possession of what they had conquered, he
proceeded to Bavaria, where some of his councillors kept a vigilant watch over Kufstein, and others over Weissenhorn,
to both of which he laid claim. He arrived just in time. Here also the war was
being waged more with fire than with sword. Now it was the country about Munich
itself, and anon the neighbourhood of Landshut, that was ravaged. Municipal
guards and patrols came into collision. One or the other fled. There was
nothing done and no results. Just as some Swabians and Brandenburgers
on the Munich side had retired, and the Landshut troops appeared to have gained
the upper hand by the aid of their 2500 Bohemians, Maximilian arrived on the
scene. Three miles from the city of Regensburg, whence peals of bells, inviting
to processions and prayers, accompanied him into the field, he fell upon the
Bohemians who were entrenched behind a triple barricade of waggons, and behind
long stockades made with iron spikes driven into the ground and bound together
with chains; surrounded by his knights he fought on, and although once unhorsed
by a pike -his life was only saved by the devotion of Erich of Brunswick- at
last succeeded in mastering them. Thereupon he marched into Regensburg, with
music playing and drums beating, the standards and the prisoners he had taken
preceding him. He had now gained the upper hand, and took for himself Weissenhorn, Mauerstatten, and Kufstein. Now when the old Count Palatine looked about him,
and saw both countries ravaged, and partly in the enemy's hand; when he found
himself bereft of his son Ruprecht, as well as of his daughter-in-law, both of
whom had died during the war; when he saw too the Union of Electors broken up,
France leagued with Maximilian, his enemies unbroken, and no hope left, his
courage sank, and he had recourse to entreaties. Maximilian, at length in
possession of what he had coveted, able to boast that he had it in his power to
crush the Palatinate utterly, and mindful that Munich also had not always
favoured Austria, was prudent and forbearing enough not to desire its
destruction, and so, in September, commanded a truce. He then, in accordance
with his original proposal, founded the so-called "Junge Pfalz”, on the
other side the Danube, for the children of Ruprecht and the grand- children of
Georg. After this great victory, who was there in Germany whom he should still
fear? Berthold of Mainz, the life and soul of all the opposition he had
hitherto met with, died in December, 1504, and the King had long since taken
into his service his chancellor, Stürzler. In May,
1505, he again held a Diet at Cologne, where he had always wished it to meet,
but the princes would never consent. We must especially lament that there was
no one in those days who had either the opportunity to study, or the
inclination and skill to chronicle, the active participation of the princes and
their councillors in public business. Such a one would tell us how the great
ideas of a universal participation of the Estates in internal government, of
the contribution of all Germans towards the common burdens, and of a real unity
of the nation in opposition to the imperial power, were all born of the three
attempts of the Estates to frame a constitution, namely, the yearly Assembly,
the Council of Regency, and the Union of the Electors, and how, after attaining
a certain development, they all perished at Cologne.
To
live on in the memory of posterity is one half of life; but these attempts have
almost been forgotten. At Cologne those ideas were relinquished, and the
constitution began to return to its old groove. The Emperor was guaranteed for
a year a force larger than ever before. This force was raised by the Estates
according to their resources, which were no longer computed according to
parishes and population, but by a matricula; it was fixed at 1000 horse and
3000 foot soldiers, the pay of the former being reckoned at ten, and that of
the latter at four guilders a month, amounting to 264.000 guilders in all; this
force was, moreover, to be equipped by the Estates. No Council of Regency cared
how it was to be employed. The Cameral Tribunal, the payment of which was
transferred to him, passed in consequence into his hands. He was powerful
enough to carry out his plans.
2.
MAXIMILIAN'S
COMPREHENSIVE SCHEMES.
PHILIP OF CASTILE.
These
successes were entirely due to the French alliance, and the same alliance was
the basis of all new projects.
Negotiations
were in progress in France during the whole of the Bavarian war; Ferdinand at
first appeared willing to consent to assign Naples to the joint names of
Charles and Claude, but had ended in August by flatly refusing; at last on the
22nd September, ten days after the battle of Regensburg, Maximilian, Philip,
and Louis united in a most intimate alliance: "they would be one soul in
three bodies, each be the friend of the other's friends, and the enemy of their
enemies, and would intermarry their children. Louis would pledge his governors
in Milan, Genoa, Asti, Brittany, Blois, and Burgundy, all of which provinces
had been detached from the Crown, to deliver them all over into the hand of
Charles and Claude, in the event of his dying without male heirs of his body".
We do not find any having references to Naples; but Ferdinand complained that
it had been dealt with at Blois, as if it had been the Tyrol.
Hereupon,
in April, 1505, in Hagenau, which had just been taken, Amboise received not
only for Louis but for Charles and Claude as well, the investiture of Milan,
Pavia, and Anghiera, whilst Philip received
Gelderland for himself and his son. In July, 1505, the Duke of Gelderland,
stripped of all French assistance, and forsaken by his barons, Wisch,
Bronkhorst, and Batenburg, actually threw himself at
Philip's feet at Rosendaal, gave up the greatest part
of his country, and entered into his suite.
After
this, greater enterprises were undertaken. In November, 1504, Isabella, Queen
of Castile, and Philip's mother-in-law, died. Philip, without delay, took the
royal sword and the royal title instead of the ducal hat, and was bent upon
becoming her heir. But old Ferdinand was no less determined to remain the real
King of the Castilian kingdoms, under the title of a Gobernador.
Hence the schism in the Austro-Spanish house, and Philip made preparations to
drive his father-in-law out of Castile.
Maximilian
turned his eyes towards Hungary, with a view of securing the succession, which
was disputed; and for this purpose the Empire had voted him supplies.
If
both these objects were attained, attention could be turned to Italy. The
treaty of Blois pointed to a general war upon Venice. Naples was demanded
because it belonged to Castile. If we survey the whole state of things, and
reflect that, after Ferdinand's death, all the Aragonese
possessions, and, after Louis' death, all the rest of Italy together with a
third of France would fall to the same heir, these plans must be regarded as
jeopardizing European liberty. But Maximilian dreamed of an universal monarchy
over all the Latin and Teutonic nations. In the year 1505 he proposed to the
King of France to repeal the Salic law, in order that Charles and Claude might
succeed him on the throne of France. In the year 1506, he placed Schwente Nielsen, Erik Johannsen, and other leaders in
Sweden, who would not recognize the union nor the King of Denmark, under the
ban of the Empire with the words: "their possessions belong to the first
comer”. He declared that through his mother he had as good a claim to the
kingdom of Portugal as King Manuel. He had the pretensions of a fugitive member
of the House of York to the crown of England transferred to himself.
But
God willed it that this should not happen. The development of the Latin and
Teutonic nations that had just begun would have been interrupted and hindered
thereby. When Louis XII, in the spring of 1505, fell dangerously sick, all
patriots who desired to see the kingdom in a state of union, as well as all
friends of the royal power, which had been established with so much bloodshed,
began to dread that in a short time the realm would become divided and the old
civil war revive. It was primarily the partisans of Louise of Savoy, the mother
of the heir presumptive to the throne, Francis of Angouleme, who opposed it.
The King himself repented his alliance of Blois. Did he not swear at his
coronation at Rheims never to suffer the realm to be diminished? It was Queen
Anne who specially favoured the betrothal of Claude and Charles, seeing, as she
did, that the latter was destined to attain the highest dignity in our nations.
On one occasion she had not spared a considerable sum of money, in order to
degrade and dismiss from court Marshal Gie, who, during a former weakness of
the King, had dared to counteract her schemes. She was heart and soul in favour
of the alliance. But the King being so sorely sick, the wife was fain to
concede to the husband, what as Queen, she refused to the King, and Anne at
length gave way, forgot her difference with Louise, and consented that, Claude
should be betrothed to Francis of Angouleme, instead of to Charles. Amboise and
the high dignitaries at court swore to further this scheme. It was as yet kept
a secret. But the treaty of Blois had been broken, and the plans of the
Austrian house thwarted in the chief point upon which they were based. Louis
gradually recovered from his illness.
Not
long afterwards, the Inquisitor of Catalonia, Brother Juan de Enguera, repaired to the French court, in order to
investigate the ground. He was despatched thither by Ferdinand the Catholic,
who was primarily threatened by Maximilian's plans, and wished for an alliance
with France.
Should
he cease to be King of Castile and the head of the European political world,
and return to the insignificant position enjoyed by his ancestors? Isabella, by
her last will, left him a few estates and rights in Castile. The succession she
devised to her daughter Juana, decreeing at the same time that, "previous
to her arrival, all Cortes should be prohibited, and afterwards, only if it
should be proved that she was either incapable or unwilling to conduct the
government, should a peaceful administration be provided”. But Ferdinand was not content with this, but assumed
the title of a Gobernador, and summoned the
Cortes without delay. The grandees, whose independence he had broken, were
against him; notably Pacheco of Villena, who, at the beginning of Ferdinand's
reign had lost his estates, his share of the Aragon plunder; and Manrique of
Najara, who saw his nephew prejudiced by Aguilar; their complaint was that,
"he tempted the notables in the cities, and the alcaydes in the castles,
with presents, and was even bent upon reviving the long-forgotten affair of
Juana, Henry IV's daughter; thinking to marry her, only Manuel of Portugal
would not give her to him; he was illegally striving to become lord of
Castile”. They did not appear in the Cortes. The procurators of the seventeen
cities, on the other hand -for Ferdinand had once, aided by the Hermandad of
the cities, overcome the nobles, and the cities favoured him- appeared,
declared themselves the representatives of the united kingdoms of Castile,
recognized him as administrator in the room of his daughter, and received from
him the oath.
In
spite of all this, Ferdinand could not possibly hold his ground, were Philip,
strengthened by the alliance of Blois, to arrive in Castile, and the grandees
there to declare for him. Nothing but a reconciliation with Louis promised him
security.
Now
that Isabella was dead, Ferdinand also could adopt Louis's maxim, a maxim which
he used against every proposal advocating terras
respecting Naples, and from which proceeded the intention to marry Charles and
Claude together, namely, that, “it was incompatible with his honour and
conscience alike to sell his good rights to strangers”. In October, 1505, Louis
assigned his Neapolitan rights to his niece, Germaine de Foix. Ferdinand
promised to marry her, to pay a million gold ducats within ten years, and to
restore all the Angevins to their estates. In addition to this, the two Kings
promised each other mutual help against all enemies. Almazan, Ferdinand's other
self, confided to some, that nothing would come of the marriage between Charles
and Claude.
The
schemes of Maximilian and Philip, who after meeting in Brabant, in December,
1505, separated, the father to look after his Hungarian, and the son after his
Castilian affairs, were thwarted by the alliance Louis had contracted, not with
them, as he had promised, but with their enemies. But they gained another in
its place. When Aragon and Castile were at variance, it had frequently happened
that England had allied itself with the one and France with the other. This
natural state of things combined with chance to procure an English alliance for
the Austrian house.
In
January, 1506, Philip had provided the expenses of his voyage by the sale of
his crown-lands, and the enforced impost of the sixteenth pfennig. Four hundred
nobles, with several thousand landsknechts, Flemings and Swiss, embarked on
board his fleet of about fifty sail, and Philip himself on the ship of two
brothers Huybert. The squadron steered through the Bay of Biscay, making for a
Spanish port, not far from Cordova, when the wind suddenly changed, and a storm
arose. In the stress of weather, the Huyberts, though
Philip vainly bade them "Watch”, could devise no other means of safety
than running for the English coast. At length, escaping through the race off
Portland's chalk cliffs, they landed on the quay of Weymouth. Here Philip was
received as a most welcome guest, not like a shipwrecked man, and was escorted
with all pomp and ceremony to Windsor, a castle of King Henry VII. Yet not for
nought. Here in his most private chamber, Henry placed his hand upon his guest's
shoulder, and said, "You have been saved on my coasts, and should I then
suffer shipwreck on yours? I mean Suffolk, give him up to me”. Philip had still
a Yorkist, Edmund de la Pole, Earl of Suffolk, in his keeping, and much as he
resisted: "for he would appear to be acting under compulsion”, he was
obliged at last to surrender him. This done, Henry swore upon a portion of the
true Cross, to come to the aid of his guest, in defence of his kingdoms, either
such as he now possessed or should possess, against every
one who should attack him in them. And thus strengthened, almost against
his will, with a new ally, in April, 1506, Philip embarked for Corunna.
He
arrived. "Now that he was come, the Galician and Castilian nobles should
prove their promised allegiance”. The Duke of Najara was already equipped:
should he not receive the new prince in the same manner as the old? Not only
Villena, but Benavente, who through the House of Aragon had lost his market of
Medina del Campo, Giron, of the oppressed house of Portugal, Garcilasso de la Vega, who hoped to be able to revive with
Philip the influence he had enjoyed with Isabella, the Duke of Bejar, the
Marquises of Astorga and Priego, and many others accompanied him. They
complained that "old Ferdinand wished to merge Castile into Aragon; the
Jurado of Saragossa in his scarlet dress, and with his mace, had already
entered into Valladolid and was now preparing for resistance; Philip should not
trust in his assurances”; every noble
who placed himself on his side was denaturalized, and forfeited the protection
of his rightful suzerain.
On
the other side, Ferdinand urged upon his party to ally itself with him, giving
as his reason that its lady and true Queen was kept prisoner by her husband, so
that none could serve her, and none address her. Philip was treating her as no
yeoman ever treated his wife; they should, therefore, aid in liberating the
Queen. In this endeavour he would risk his person and his whole power. He
retained on his side the cities, a few grandees and prelates, and the
governors, who owed their positions to him, and whom, as he said, Philip wished
to displace. But, in a short time, all the grandees and prelates, and even his
relatives, including the Condestable and the
Almirante, had forsaken him, and only a single man, the Duke of Alva, who never
wavered, remained faithful to him. In the cities the relatives of those
imprisoned by the Inquisition looked towards the young King, and these were all
the more numerous since Luzero bad recently, by the use of false witnesses
incarcerated knights and dames, and monastic and secular clergy. After this, a
recourse to force was impossible; only in an interview could Ferdinand hope to
assert his personal ascendency over his son-in-law. Fray Francisco Ximenes de Cisneros
arranged this meeting for him.
Upon
a hill, in the midst of the mountain range of Gamoneda between Puebla de
Sanabria and Rionegro, hard by the farm of Remessal, and close to a grove of oak trees, stands a
chapel. Hither, on the 20th June, 1506, came Ferdinand from the one side with
200 light-armed troops seated on mules, all in cloaks and red caps, with a
sword hanging loosely from their belts, whilst from the other there approached
1000 Germans with muskets and spears, the finest and most stalwart men who
could be found, and behind them, surrounded by his grandees, all wearing armour
under their tunics, came Philip. The old monarch, distinguished by his bald
head and severe nose, rich in exploits; the youth, of red and while complexion
and full of hope; the latter on this occasion more serious than his wont; the
former more cheerful. In the chapel, while Ximenes waited on the grassy slope
before the door, they conferred with each other. Ximenes had already had
negotiations with Philip, endeavouring to induce him to agree to a joint
administration -urging that the shrewdness of age and the vigour of youth would
then combine- and trying to persuade him, at all events, to leave Granada,
which needed a practised eye, to the more experienced monarch. And this is,
probably, what Ferdinand also attempted on this occasion. In any case he
pointed out to him the intentions and the character of his grandees. But all to
no purpose. They departed as they came; yet, whilst journeying up the Duero,
several miles apart, they continued their negotiations. Finally, Ferdinand was
obliged to content himself with half the Indian revenue, and a limited control
of the grandmasterships. He renounced all other share
in the government. But here his dissimulation manifested itself. Whilst
conceding this, after much resistance, he declared to the people, that "he
had had no other intention from the first but this; if he had formerly taken
the government upon himself, yet he had only done this in order that his
goodwill towards his children might be made the more clear”.
He
went yet further. On the 28th June, after declaring with Philip, that, "it
was to be known that the gracious Queen must in no case interfere with the
Government in any respect; otherwise, the complete ruin of these realms would
be the result”, he protested secretly to Almazan, that "he made this
confession only out of fear; in reality he was resolved to liberate his
daughter”. On his way home he found the gates of several cities closed against
him by the grandees; yet he comforted himself with the reflection that he had
once been still more powerless, and yet had ruled them many long years. Full of
fresh cares and anxieties, he hurried back into Aragon.
After
this all the cities opened their gates to the young King, and swore allegiance
to him. If there was any governor of a castle, who at first was not inclined to
yield, he did so, as soon as a few companies of troops showed themselves. The
grandees and prelates were besides in Philip's retinue. The House of Austria
had succeeded in taking possession of Castile.
During
this time Maximilian was in Hungary; fifteen years previously, the prelates,
barons, and cities of this country had been obliged to swear to him that:
"should Wladislav die without male heirs, Maximilian, or, in case he was
not alive, one of his sons should succeed; failing these, one of the heirs male
of their body, begotten in direct descent, should succeed as lawful heir to the
crown”. Now Wladislav, a monarch who never said anything but "Dober"
to the Bohemians, and "Bene" to the Hungarians, was old and weak, and
had only one daughter. Some said he would marry her to a grandson of
Maximilian; others, that he was willing to give up his kingdom to the latter.
The Hungarians, however, and the Saxons, who dwelt amongst them, did not desire
a German sovereign. The magnates assembled, and resolved that whoever advocated
the election of a foreign king should die; and Count John, of the house of Zapolya, aspired to the crown for himself. Maximilian reminded
them of their oath, and that "their welfare, as well as successful
resistance against the Turks, depended upon an alliance with Austria”. But they
gave a defiant answer; as he himself expressed it, "they summoned their
power by the bloody sword”. He determined to attack this power, and, without
ravaging the country -for otherwise it might become hostile to him- only to
proceed against the magnates. On the right bank of the Danube he first
compelled Oedenburg and the Count of Bozin, whose
dominions extended a whole day's journey wide on these borders, to accept his
terms. Next, during an eight days' truce, he passed over to the left bank and
reduced Pressburg. Having taken the island of Schütt, he thought he had
conquered: for "it was the heart of Hungary”. But a message from Wladislav
to the effect that "he must go to his wife, who was expecting her
confinement”, was followed shortly by another that, "on the 1st July she
had been delivered of a child, who though very weakly, was yet a boy”. The
magnates then gave his people 3000 pieces of cloth, and 2000 head of oxen, and
recognized his rights. How was it likely that a boy, who had had to be placed
in the warm skins of freshly slain beasts, in order to be kept alive, would
eventually survive? Maximilian left the
country, but his prospects were saved.
Now
that Castile had been taken, and the succession in Hungary assured, he turned
his eyes towards Italy, in order to receive the Imperial Crown in Rome.
It
was just about this time that he first heard for certain, that the betrothal
between Charles and Claude had been revoked by Louis XII. This was not publicly
announced until May, 1506. The deputies of the cities, who, in the official
account of this affair were, almost like the Cortes of Toro, simply styled
Estates, appeared at Tours before the King, sitting with his prelates on his
right and his grandees on his left, and entreated him to agree to the betrothal
of Claude to Francis of Angouleme. This was ratified in their presence. Under
their hands and seals, each and all, the councillors of Brittany with them,
vowed to see that a marriage resulted therefrom.
Maximilian
then learned that the road through his fief of Milan had been closed to him,
whilst Philip received the tidings that Charles of Gelderland, who had escaped
from his escort, had, by means of French and Aragonese
money, renewed the war in the Netherlands, Both were extremely indignant.
Maximilian complained that "Louis had never really cared about the treaty;
it was only the fiefs that he had coveted. He revoked the fiefs he had already
granted in favour of his grandson Charles”. Philip was determined upon a general
war. "My heart is not so cowardly, nor my relatives, and my worldly goods
so insignificant”, he wrote, "as that I could allow myself to be
prejudiced in my good right. I would rather appeal to my whole party throughout
Christendom, for, as I believe, it is stronger than that of my opponents."
And first, Maximilian was resolved to invade Italy as best he could. His
envoys, who with their attendants were fully armed, went first to Venice, in
order to entreat a peaceful passage. But the Venetians would not allow a
passage to the man who had so often and so publicly laid claim to their
territory. Whilst his landsknechts were wandering about, they had time to
occupy all their passes with infantry and cavalry. Maximilian therefore hurried
to the Carniolan ports, whither Gonzalvo had promised to send him ships; but
the latter was dissuaded by the grand promises made by Ferdinand. Resolved upon
daring the utmost, he went to the Karst in the Windish Mark, whence in four
days the coast of the Romagna could be reached, in confidence that the Pope
would receive him with joy and would crown him. But the most unexpected
calamity befell him here. On the 16th September, his son Philip died at Burgos,
of the Mazucco, an infectious fever. He had never
felt eager for this journey, nor looked forward to his Crown. He came not to
live as king, but to die. This death, which threw the affairs of Castile and
the Netherlands into the greatest confusion, put an end to all Maximilian's
further schemes and projects.
3.
FERDINAND, MASTER OF NAPLES AND CASTILE.
When
Ferdinand saw that Castile was lost to him, he had been seized with anxious
apprehensions regarding Naples. Here, where the kings had always ruled only for
short periods by their armies and their factions, and where a paternal,
ecclesiastical, and hereditary monarchy was unknown, Gonzalvo, who had
installed the captains of his army in rich possessions, and levied taxes as he
thought right, enjoyed as much popularity as ever a king did. He was
dissatisfied with Ferdinand, who had refused to ratify his grants, and who in
Spain had appointed a Neapolitan council, which forced him to dismiss his
Germans. Now the Castilians maintained that Naples belonged to them, for it had
been conquered by their money and their blood. Ferdinand rejoined that his were
the rightful claims, and that the land was his. As a matter of fact, all
depended upon whom the General would make lord of the country. Gonzalvo
inclined to the side of Philip and the Castilians; he refused to retain Philip's
envoy to Julius, who was believed to be animated with the like feelings towards
Austria. Maximilian sent a message to him to the effect that, "he should
behave like a good knight of Castile, and then he should be assured of
protection in Naples; he could then receive for himself Pisa and Piombino,
which he was at that time supporting”. At this time Gonzalvo, as we are aware,
sent his ships to the Carniolan ports.
These
circumstances filled Ferdinand the Catholic with apprehension. At first he was
for taking Gonzalvo prisoner; but reflected how disastrous such a step would
be, were it to fail. The day following his interview with Philip, on the 21st
June, 1506, he took a different view of the state of things, and drew up a
document stating that, "he swore by his royal word, by God, the Cross, and
the Gospels, to transfer to Gonzalvo the Grandmastership
of Santiago as soon as he should return to Spain”. Ferdinand's ambassador
needed no more than ten days. On the 2nd July Gonzalvo sent his reply to the
King. "No one”, he wrote, "was more anxious to live and die in his
service than he was. For the rest of his life he desired to recognize no other
King and master but him alone. This he swore by God, being a Christian,
guaranteed it as a knight, confirmed it with his name, and set his seal
thereunder”. He had now pledged himself, and Ferdinand took courage, and, on
the 4th September, set sail for Naples. But Maximilian arrived in vain at the
Carniolan ports.
On
his way, Ferdinand received the tidings of Philip's death, yet this event did
not induce him to abandon the enterprise upon which he had embarked. On the 1st
November, in company with his consort Germaine, he rode through the five Saggi
of Naples, The nobles and ladies came out of their houses to kiss his hand,
Gonzalvo giving him their names. He who gave the names was none other than the
man whom he had come to take away with him, whilst those who kissed his hand,
were in great measure those whose old enemies, the Angevin barons, he was about
to recall. Bent upon accomplishing his purpose, his time was so busily
occupied, that he did not even allow himself to pay one visit to the castle
garden.
When,
in the previous year, the first news of his treaty had been brought hither,
every one lamented that such a shrewd King was intent upon restoring those who
had always proved so disloyal. Could his object perhaps be to make almost
independent lords of the Sanseverino from Salerno to Reggio, of the Caracciolo
in Apulia, of Bitonto in the Abruzzi, and of Traetto on the Garigliano? His own party would thus become
powerless, and the royal power sink into insignificance. But all the same he
adhered to his intention. All that had belonged to Don Caesar in Aragon, to the
Borgias of Gandia, Squillace and Don Juan, and the portion of the dowager
queens, all this he acquired, either by purchase or as feudal lord, and divided
it among the injured parties. The knights who had conquered the country had now
to retire from their new possessions and content themselves with compensation
in money. Dignities and incomes were not even spared. Difficult though the task
was, he succeeded in carrying it through, thus satisfying among others also the
plenipotentiary of France, who took part in the transaction. He restored all
the exiles, princes, counts, and barons to their own, and reinstated among them
Sannazzaro, Federigo's most faithful follower, in his
country seat of Margolina, whose beauties, hill and
slope, brook and dale, he had so often sung.
This
settlement assured him the possession of Naples more securely than many
victories would have done. The real object of contention between the rival
parties was property, from which each was ever being ousted by the other: of
this he made an end. He contrived to keep the Colonna in obedience and to win
over the Orsini to his side again. It was, perchance, owing to the marriages
which, as we have seen, were constantly taking place between Angevin and
Spanish families, Sanseverino and Villahermosa, Bisignano and Richesenza, that from this year forth the nobles of Naples
remained loyal to a distant King. Henceforward the chronicles of Naples teem
with accounts of the wonders done by a picture, to which pilgrimages were made
barefooted and which was often presented with golden chains, with stories of
murders and marriages, or it may be of an insurrection which broke out against
a royal official, a new law, or a despotic landlord.
With
respect to Gonzalvo, Ferdinand issued a letter addressed to all princes and
barons, and all men now and hereafter: "Through glorious deeds of bravery
and generosity, Gonzalvo had regained for his crown the kingdom this side of
the Faro; he had governed it with unwavering loyalty, and he, the King, was his
great debtor”. He then demanded of the
Pope his sanction of the transfer of the Grandmastership,
but, "it must”, he urged, "be kept secret, so that the thirteen
electors do not oppose it”. To please him, he took from the faithful and
reliable Spinello, who was an enemy of Gonzalvo, the office of accountant of
the realm. He gladly allowed Gonzalvo's retinue to outshine his own following.
But, as soon as he had attained his object, when on the 4th June, 1507, he saw
him take leave of all the nobles and ladies, who had accompanied him to the
shore, and embark on one of his ships, he then felt himself recompensed for all
his duplicity and sacrifice, and he gradually laid aside the mask. Spinello
received a letter with the superscription: "To the Count of Cariati”, and with it a fuller share of administrative
power that he had ever enjoyed. The Grandmastership
was never mentioned again. Whenever Gonzalvo's friends said, "The great
ship is running aground”," he would reply, "The tide will raise it
again”. On one occasion afterwards he had hope for it, but it never came to
pass. The life of man is a long growth, a short bloom, a long decay; the first
is full of hope, the last full of regrets. Gonzalvo had to content himself in
Loja with thinking of his daughter's marriage, and in keeping up communication
with the world by letter. Then he often thought how he had once conducted
Federigo's son and Caesar to Spain, and how he at last had returned home in the
same manner. Both these actions he regretted, and a third that he did not
mention.
At
length King of Naples in reality, with Gonzalvo safe on his ships, Ferdinand
hurried to Castile, which Philip's death had plunged into great confusion.
Before
this occurrence, the old hereditary factions of the Nunez and Gamboa, whose
heads were Najara and the Condestable, had already
again showed themselves among the grandees. What took place after Philip's
death, was closely connected with the Queen's state of health. The malady from
which she was suffering first declared itself on Philip's journey to Lyons,
that is in the year 1503. At that time, after taking leave of him with many
tears, she never more raised her eyes, or said a word, save that she wished to
follow him. When she learnt that he had obtained a safe conduct for her also,
she would not wait for her mother any longer, but ordered her carriages to
proceed to Bayonne; then -for horses were refused her- she attempted to set out
herself on foot; and, when the gate was closed, she remained, in spite of the
entreaties of her attendant ladies and her father confessor, in her light attire
sitting upon the barrier until late into the November night; it was only her
mother who at length contrived to persuade her to seek her chamber. At last she
found her husband. She found him devoted to a beautiful girl with fair hair. In
an outburst of jealous passion, she had the girl's hair cut off. Philip did not
conceal his vexation. Here - who can fathom the unexplored depths of the soul,
see where it unconsciously works, and where it unconsciously suffers, who can
discover where the root of its health or sickness lies? -her mind became
overshadowed. In Spain her love for Philip, and in the Netherlands her
reverence for her father were her guiding passions: these two feelings
possessed her whole being, alternately influenced her, and excluded the rest of
the world. Since then, she still knew the affairs of ordinary life, and could
portray vividly and accurately to her mind distant things; but she knew not how
to suit herself to the varying circumstances of life.
Whilst
still in the Netherlands, she expressed the wish that her father should retain
the government in his hands. On her return to Spain, she entered her capital in
a black velvet tunic and with veiled face; she would frequently sit in a dark
room, her cap drawn half over her face, wishing to be able only to speak for
once with her father. But it was not until after her husband's death that her
disease became fully developed. She caused his corpse to be brought into a
hall, attired in half Flemish, half Spanish dress, and the obsequies celebrated
over it. She never, the while, gave vent to a sob. She did not shed tears, but
only sat and laid her hand to her chin. The plague drove her away from Burgos,
but not away from her loved corpse. A monk had once told her that he knew of a
king who awoke to life after being fourteen years dead. She took the corpse
about with her. Four Frisian stallions drew the coffin, which was conveyed at
night, surrounded by torches. Sometimes it halted, and the singers sang
mournful songs. Having thus come to Furnillos, a
small place of fourteen or fifteen houses, she perceived there a pretty house
with a fine view, and remained there: "for it was not fitting for a widow
to live in a populous city”. There she retained the members of the Government
which had been established, the grandees of her court dwelling with her. Round
the coffin she gave her audiences.
After
Philip's decease there existed as good as no sovereign power in Castile. At
first the grandees of both factions entered into an agreement under Ximenes, at
all events for three months. But as the Condestable
and his party were desirous of inviting the King of Aragon, whilst Najara and
his partisans were for appealing to the Emperor to undertake the administration
of the kingdom in the name of the young Charles, and seeing that the Cortes
could not be constitutionally convened for deliberative purposes without the
royal sanction, the result was that the whole country resolved itself into
factions. One party actually did invite Ferdinand, and the other Maximilian. The
first boasted that "the Catholic King would come and punish all his
enemies”; the others, that "the father would be received like the son, and
given a contingent of 2000 lances”." Pimentel said: "I have two suits
of armour, but I will use up both before I will tolerate the King of Aragon in
Castile”. Thereupon, throughout the whole country, the old feuds burst out
afresh between the Ayalas and Silvas at Toledo, the
Arias and Lassos at Madrid, and the Benavides and Carvajals
at Ubeda. Some seized strongholds, and exclaimed, "Castile, Castile for
Queen Juana”. These were Ferdinand's partisans. Galicia and the Asturias both
adhered to their prince, and hoped for Maximilian's coming. At court the heads
of both these parties, the Condestable and Najara,
were armed; their troops were constantly arrayed against each other.
In
this crisis the nation might well congratulate itself that it still possessed
one powerful man, belonging to no party, Archbishop Ximenes of Toledo. His
position he had won for himself; and he, accordingly, deserves a short notice.
Ximenes, the son of an advocate, well versed in both theological and juristic
knowledge, and somewhile resident at Rome, had already received appointments
from two of Isabella's adherents - Mendoza, who made him vicar of his diocese,
and Cifuentes, who entrusted him with the management of his estates - when he
bade adieu to his brilliant career, and retired into a Franciscan convent not
far from Toledo. Here he went about barefooted, dressed in sackcloth, slept on
a scanty layer of straw, and scourged himself frequently. In his happier hours
he might be seen lying under some broad-spreading chestnut trees, in order to
shield himself from the rays of the sun, which in those climes blazed so
fiercely. He often reclined in the grass, the Bible in hand, or else knelt and
prayed. Here he experienced all the anguish and ecstasy of a solitary soul
seeking God. But this was the way to his advancement. The Queen chose him for
her father confessor; and then this man, tall of stature, pale and thin, with
deep-set, piercing eyes, an aquiline nose, and a forehead which even in his old
age remained free from wrinkles, appeared now and again at court in his cowl,
heard the Queen's confessions, and then returned again to his convent. On one
occasion, in the year 1495, he had just finished conducting the spiritual
exercises of the Queen during Lent, and had bidden his companion, Francisco
Ruyz, to cook some vegetables, and saddle the asses to return, for they
intended to spend Good Friday in the monastery at Ocaña, when he was a second
time summoned to the Queen's presence, and received from her hands a letter
with the Papal seal and the superscription : "To our brother Francisco,
Archbishop Elect of Toledo”. Isabella, who sought for an archbishop who had no
illustrious relations, who would not entail property, nor spend his revenues in
any cause other than that for which they were originally intended, viz.,
in the defence of Granada and the coasts, and in every Moorish war, had chosen him.
He exclaimed, "This is not intended for me”, and rode away unperturbed to
his convent. A second command of the Pope at length forced him to accept the
dignity, while a third admonished him to comport himself accordingly. After
that, he began to wear a silken outer dress, whilst his friar's frock remained
underneath; to wear valuable fur, but of ashen grey colour, in order that it
should remind him of his observances; to use soft and luxurious beds, and to
keep a considerable staff of servants and a jester - a sort of clever dwarf.
But he himself often slept as he formerly did; and in the palace itself he
maintained certain monks, to whom he spoke of nothing but of God and strict
discipline, and for whose observance he drew up a table, teaching them how to
abstain from worldly things.
In
this union of spiritual and temporal affairs he lived his life. He spoke very
little, and scarcely ever laughed. His life was action and accomplishment: it
forms a forcible contrast to the sufferings of the Queen. We read how, on one
occasion, he came from the synod of his diocese, where he had said the daily
mass and conducted ecclesiastical business, to the Aragonese
Cortes, and induced them to take the oath, how he then proceeded without delay
to lay the foundation of the University of Alcala, which was all his doing, a
work the King envied him; how from here he hurried to Granada to convert the
Moors, returned, and received (1502) the new Prince at Toledo; how, then,
instead of sitting at tournaments, he searched the manuscripts in his library,
renewed the Mozarabic liturgy, discussed with seven scholars the plan of the
Complutensian Polyglot, and also helped to found a society which every night
searched the streets to see if any deserving poor were in need of shelter. Today
he would draw up a plan for a campaign in Africa, and on the morrow one for
founding a convent, and would carry both into execution. His letters, dealing
with the affairs of State, were sealed with the image of St. Francis.
This
man, who, it is generally believed, induced Isabella to order in her will a
mitigation of the alcabala for the cities, and who was yet the first of all
prelates and grandees, stood midway between the conflicting parties. He was
not, as we have seen, successful in reconciling Philip and Ferdinand. But now,
at least, he contrived to prevent an open civil war. He had also a guard, which
was equipped in the Swiss style; his horsemen might be seen riding out daily to
exercise. New weapons continually arrived from the Asturian forges; and at last
he brought it to pass that all other troops, save his own, quitted the court.
Now
it was a matter of great import that Ximenes declared himself for Ferdinand.
The Catholic King, probably, wished rather to reward him than gain him over by
the dignity of Cardinal, which he had procured for him. Maximilian's advent
would beyond all doubt have resulted in the complete disorganization of
Castile, a war on all sides, and the most violent domestic strife. And when
could or should Maximilian come, tied as he was by a Diet, weakened by revolt
in the Netherlands, and his presence required in an Italian campaign? Ximenes
decided for Ferdinand. The most powerful men in the land listened to his
advice. Villena, who almost from the first had been on the side of Philip, came
to him: "Is it right what the King demands? Swear to me that it is so”.
The Archbishop swore to him that it was right; thereupon whilst still clasping
his hand, he vowed to serve King Ferdinand in his government. The rest of the opposition
of the grandees Ferdinand contrived, in almost every case, to overcome by the
grant of favours, so much so indeed, that his loyal supporters became quite
jealous. Pimentel also gave in on receiving an encomienda and an annual
stipend of 12,000 maravedi. Accordingly, in August, 1507, after having been
absent a year, Ferdinand entered Castile without encountering any resistance,
with Alcaldes and Alguazils, his maces and heralds;
the grandees hastened to kiss his hand. In the North there were still left several,
whom neither he nor Ximenes had been able to gain over. They fled or lost their
castles; Najara lost all save one. "And now”, said Ferdinand, "we
will open a new account together”. In Andalusia, Priego and Giron were in open
revolt. He deprived them also of their castles. The Inquisition abated its
rigour somewhat, and Ximenes, whom the King had appointed Grand Inquisitor, set
free all those whom Luzero had denounced.
At Tortoles the King met his daughter. As soon as they set
eyes on each other, the father took off his hat, and the daughter her mourning
veil. When she prostrated herself to kiss his feet, and he sank on one knee in
recognition of her royal dignity, they embraced and opened their hearts to each
other. He shed tears. Tears she had none, but she granted his desire; only she
would not consent to bury the corpse. "Why so soon?" she inquired.
Nor would she go to Burgos where she had lost her husband. He took her to
Tordesillas. Here the Queen of such vast realms lived for forty-seven years. She
educated her youngest daughter, gazed from the window upon the grave of her
husband, and prayed for his eternal happiness. From henceforth she was dead to
the world.
These
are the struggles engendered of the Neapolitan war through the claims of the house
of Austria. Maximilian, owing chiefly to the opposition of Louis, who declared
that he would consider everyone who recognized him his enemy, and, if he were a
subject of his own, guilty of high treason, could at first not even obtain the
guardianship over his grandchildren in the Netherlands. At last, however, in
1507, he obtained it, when new dangers threatened from Gelderland and from the
French coast, and made his assistance desirable. But in Spain and Italy
Ferdinand was triumphant. He at once turned his newly consolidated power
against the outer world and foreign nations.
4.
FERDINAND'S EXTERNAL ENTERPRISES
Prior
to the commencement of the Neapolitan war of 1501, the Xeque
of Gelves had offered allegiance to the Spaniards,
together with the whole coast line lying between Tripoli and Tunis. Isabella
had often repented that Naples had at that time been preferred. As soon as the
first period of quiet set in, between Ferdinand's reconciliation with France,
in 1505, and the arrival of Philip, Ximenes urged the renewal of the Moorish
war, and himself subscribed the fourth part of the expense of fitting out a
fleet, which attacked and took the great port of Mers-el-Kebir,
an important station of the African trade. His attention had first been drawn
to this place by a Venetian; Lopez el Zagal was the
first to spring on land. The great domestic disturbances, at all events in
Andalusia, had not been completely suppressed, when the Moorish pirates were
driven away from Velez and the rock lying before it. But as soon as
tranquillity had been restored at home, and Ferdinand was no longer occupied by
his Italian enmities, he again commenced greater operations in the interest of
universal Christendom. To these belongs also the colonization of America.
Hitherto the Spaniards had been content to explore the islands and bays of the
West Indies, to look for gold, to fish for pearls, and to preach Christianity
peacefully. All these operations had been conducted by an admiral from a colony
in San Domingo. In the year 1509, Ferdinand having heard of the barbarous
habits of the wild cannibals there, appointed two governors, Hoieda for the coast of Carthagena, and Niquesa
for Veragua. Their duties were: "to make the
Indians his vassals and good Christians, but, should this be impossible, to
reduce them to slavery or exterminate them”. The governors themselves were not
fortunate; but some of their companions founded a colony upon Darien, to which,
in honour of the picture of Maria Antigua at Seville, they gave the name of
Antigua. Nuñez Balboa, a man who was reserved for great discoveries, became its
head.
But
at the time of which we speak, the operations in Africa appeared to be of
greater moment both for Spain and Europe: yet the other was greater both in
respect of the exertion expended upon it, and of its results. On the eve of
Ascension-day, 1509, Ximenes and Pedro Navarra set sail with their fleet and
landed on the day following at Oran, before which city they found 12,000
Moorish knights gathered ready to defend it. "Shall we attack today?"
asked Navarra. "Immediately”, returned Ximenes. Before him the Cross was
borne, and his monks, with swords over their habits, also advanced in line. The
Galicians first stormed the heights, and maintained themselves there; then,
strengthened by the other troops, they drove the enemy back upon the water
reservoirs of the city. Here they awaited their artillery. They fought with
this at a distance, and with their swords at close quarters. The enemy at
length turned and fled. Whilst they were being driven past their own city,
other troops landed from the ships and took it. Thereupon the Spanish ensigns
floated from the walls of Oran, and the troops shouted, "Africa! Africa
for our lord, the King of Spain!". Ximenes, to whose prayers the victory
was attributed ("owing to them the sun had stood still and had shone
brightly over them, whilst gloom was spread over the Moors"), consecrated
the Grand Mosque as a Church of Sta Maria de la Vitoria.
Again,
on the 1st January, 1510, in honour, as the Spaniards said, of the Saviour and
His Mother, and of the Apostle St. James, and the blessed knight, St, George,
Pedro Navarra set sail from Iviza. On this occasion he was very successful. Bugia,
a great and wealthy city, full of mosques, schools, hospitals, inns, and every
sign of prosperity, was taken by him at the first assault. Xeque,
Almoxarife, Alcadi, Musti, and all the Alfaquirs of
Algiers surrendered their city under the condition that Ferdinand should not
demand a single farthing more in contributions than the Moorish king had
received, and would leave them their laws. Tedelitz
surrendered. Muley Yahya, King of Tenez, promised to come as Ferdinand's
vassal, as often as he should be summoned to the Cortes, or to the wars. At
last Navarra, with brigantines, sloops, and barks, succeeded one evening in
forcing his way into the harbour of Tripoli, and on the following day, between
nine and one, in taking this great city.
But
before all else it was now imperative to conquer Tlemcen,
Tunis, and the island of Gelves; then the African
coast would be assured to the Spaniards. The King of Tlemcen,
a great potentate, swore with his Mezvar and Cadi to
pay an annual tribute of 13,000 doblas in good gold.
In Sicily, preparations were going on against Tunis. Garcia, Alva's eldest son,
attacked Gelves. Garcia had to pay for his daring
with his life on the burning sands. But Ferdinand was for setting out in person
to take over the command of the army. Only when the interior of the country was
his, could he be certain of securing the harbours and coasts. This
accomplished, his intention was to continue his holy campaign as far as
Alexandria, the next city to Tripoli, and thence to the holy temple of Jerusalem.
For this object, the Cortes of Aragon, Valencia, and Catalonia voted an aid of
500,000 pounds, which, considering their liberties, was a very considerable
sum. A thousand English musketeers also joined in the expedition. The rupture
between the Moors and Arabs along the whole coast gave prospects of a great
success, and they bethought themselves of an old prophecy, that ancient
Carthage with its harbour would now fall into the hands of the Christians. With
these hopes in his breast, Ferdinand set out for Malaga, in the year 1511, in
order to begin the campaign. But on the way thither he was overtaken by
ambassadors from Italy, who brought him such tidings from the Romagna that his
plans were turned into other channels.
CHAPTER III
VENICE AND JULIUS II
The
development of affairs in the Romagna resulted in a general war. Once more
Venice showed herself in the fullness of her might: independent, vigorous, and
with comprehensive and grand ideas and aspirations. A general consideration of
her position is accordingly indispensable.
I.
VENETIAN COMMERCE, CONQUESTS, AND CONSTITUTION; ATTACK
UPON THE ROMAGNA
The
lagoons were originally covered with low mud hovels, having scarcely an
aperture to admit of light and air, and full of poor fugitives. About the year
1500, there were to be seen there about seventy-two churches, built of stone,
and glittering with gold, whilst three broad canals were flanked by palace on
palace, all faced with variegated and white marble. Even humble people slept on
beds of walnut wood, behind green silk curtains, ate from silver, and wore
golden chains and rings. The West and East paid tribute here on their wares,
before they were bartered and exchanged. Many large islands and splendid cities
received hence their governors.
This
pitch of prosperity has been reached through conquest and commerce; but
commerce was the original source of its greatness. Just as those fishermen
themselves originally belonged to the Greek, that is the Eastern Empire, whilst
the first territory they acquired for their sustenance belonged to the Lombard,
i.e. the Western Empire, and they were thus vassals to both, so now did
the essence of their present trade lie in the connection of the distant East
with the distant West. It was carried on in the following manner.
As
soon as the public galleys were ready for sea, and delivered over to those of
the Nobili, who, summoned by the cry of the heralds, had offered the best
prices, some, according to primeval custom, sailed to Alexandria and the Black
Sea, and others to Africa and the West. The first were laden with copper and
mercury from Hungary, with German steel, with alum from Italy, and velvet, camelot, cloth, mirrors, beads, and glass from their own
city, each cargo worth about 100,000 ducats. In Alexandria, the watchmen on the
tower looked out for their arrival, and signalled it to the toll-gatherer. The
chief business was done in Cairo, in the Khan el
Halili, the Persian merchants' hall. Thither, the caravans from Mecca brought
fine spices from the Moluccas, silk from Bengal, cinnamon from Ceylon, pepper
from Malabar, precious stones and dyewood from the Deccan, and pearls from the
Bahrein Islands. In case the Indians preferred consigning their goods to the
caravans through Kabul and Persia, to Derbend, the
gate of gates, and to Azov, rather than to the sea, or if the dwellers on the
coast of Asia Minor produced anything rare or useful, like the goat's hair of
Angora, this they fetched from Ajas or Azov. They conveyed all to the halls on
the Rialto.
The
Western galleys were not laden with such wares; these they left to the Western
nations to fetch for themselves. Their cargoes were cloth and metal, gold
chains for France, wax candles for the Spanish churches, fiddle-strings from Pacasto, and glass from Wurano.
In Gelves they owned a great house close to the
castle, in Tunis they shared with Genoese and Catalans a whole suburb of the
town; in Oran and Tlemcen they did a great trade.
Hence their goods found their way to the interior of the Sudan, to Timbuctoo,
where the women wore veils of Venetian manufacture, and to Gago, where their
most inferior cloth fetched one, and their scarlet forty ducats the yard, and
hither came the gold in return, which they sent back to the East. In Malaga
they loaded silk and grain, and wool also, though this they principally fetched
from England. They penetrated as far as Flanders and Denmark. It is computed
that, besides these public vessels, nearly 3,000 private ships were engaged in
trading on the same coasts, but chiefly with other ports. Their trading
capital, some considerable time previously, had amounted to 28,800,000 ducats.
All
this commerce was controlled by the most rigorous laws. Save in the Fondaco, where the German cities had each their separate
vaults, which they let to separate business houses, no one was allowed to trade
with Germans, and only here such as were, as they expressed it, internal and
external citizens. No subject city was allowed to sell for export, or to buy
goods from abroad except in Venice. No galley might stay away longer than a
definitely specified time. A law obtained that an emigrating manufacturer should
at first be induced to return by persuasion; in case he did not obey, by the
arrest of his relations; and, if he did not then return, he should be put to
death. By such measures their city was preserved as the source of trade and
commerce.
It
was necessity that prompted their first conquests. In these they were not
always fortunate, and the war in 1379 left them little more than Negropont,
Coron, Modon, and Candia. But, after that time,
fortune and shrewdness opened to them a new way.
After
the death of Charles de la Pace, when one faction in Corfu did not desire to be
reigned over by his son Ladislas, the people bethought themselves how
frequently they had seen the victorious standard of Venice in their waters, and
raised the ensign of the lion and founded a church to St. Michael, as an
everlasting memorial. The same Ladislas, in the midst of the contention between
the Horvaths and the Hungarian Queens, sold to them
Zara, where he had been crowned. For fear of the despot of Servia, Cattaro sent its Chancellor and begged for a Venetian
magistrate who should judge according to the old laws. Filled with like
apprehensions, Spalato and Trau were delivered over to them by the citizens;
Argos, Napoli di Romania, Patras, and Lepanto, under certain conditions; and
many other cities by their princes and for money. Athens received a garrison
from Venice; and, in consequence of a quarrel with his father, a prince of
Constantinople delivered Salonika into their keeping.
And
so it went on. Veglia refused to obey a Frangipani, whether Nicolo or Giovanni,
and preferred their rule. During a feud between Queens Carlotta and Caterina,
they gained Cyprus. Their policy was as follows: whenever their neighbours
became involved in differences or were in peril, they appeared on the scene,
and offered the one protection and the other money; thus effecting their
subjugation.
The
same process they followed in Italy. To begin with, when the quarrel between
Cividale d'Austria and Udine had convulsed the whole
of Friuli, and the neighbouring states became likewise involved, it happened
one day that the citizens of Treviso, and all the peasants who had come into
the city to defend it, shouted "San Marco!" and delivered themselves
into the hand of the Venetian captain.
This
incident brought about the subjection of the whole of Friuli. This enterprise
was not without sufficient motive, for they needed a market in the vicinity for
their daily supplies of food. But should they then, when the Visconti, in feud
with the Carrara, offered them their cities of Verona, Feltre, and Belluno, implicate themselves in the general Italian
movements, so full of storm, insecurity, and danger as they were? All who stood
in any relation to the Carrara, must first be excluded from the Pregadi, before the Doge and Francesco Foscari, the head of
the Forty, could carry the day by the preponderating voice of a single ballot.
Vicenza raised the standard of Venice. On the 12th July, 1405, there appeared
in the square of St. Mark before the Doge and Signoria twenty-two envoys from
Verona on horseback, all dressed in white, bearing the seal of the State, the
three keys of the city for the three Estates, the white staff (the symbol of
sovereignty), and two ensigns; and having delivered these insignia over, they
took the oath of allegiance. The Doge answered them, "You are come from
darkness into light," and gave them a gold embroidered standard of St.
Mark. They shouted "San Marco!" and rode back home. The Paduans, in
sore distress, being permitted by Francesco Carrara to do what they wished,
stipulated for the maintenance of their liberties, and surrendered to Venice.
In
Venice there was not entire satisfaction at this policy. Upon the mosaic floor
of the Church of St. Mark, two lions may be seen depicted; one in the sea,
great, strong, and courageous, the other on land, thin and weak; a picture
which corresponded with widespread opinions. The Doge Mocenigo
especially was opposed to every new enterprise. "For whoever made
conquests," as he expressed himself, "sought evil and found it too.
He, for his part, would not maintain people with great billhooks in order to
ravage this beautiful garden of Milan, which brought them in some millions
every year. Did the conquests they had already made, recoup the expenditure? He
prayed God, our Lady, and St. Mark for peace”. So long as he lived, but no
longer, his opinion was considered wise. A man of opposite views and ideas, a
man of whom he had warned his countrymen, Foscari, was chosen to succeed him.
He made use of the misunderstanding between Filippo Maria of Milan and
Carmagnola, in order with the latter's help to acquire Brescia and Bergamo; he
availed himself of the disturbances following on Filippo Maria's death to gain
Crema, and utilized the tumults which had broken out between the nobles and the
commons to gain possession of Ravenna, and subsequently of Cervia
also. The revenue Venice derived from the mainland, as a result of this policy,
rose to 800,000 ducats, and that accruing from the islands to 400,000 ducats.
Men said: "They have no rival on the seas, and are not minded to tolerate
one on land."
How
the internal machinery of this marvellous power worked, can easily be told if
we look at the peculiar traditional forms of its constitution, but can only be
explained with the greatest difficulty, if we consider the real moving and
living principle animating the whole. If we reflect that the Doge could not say
"Yes" or "No" to anybody without first taking counsel with
his Consiglieri, but that, on the other side, the three Inquisitori
without the interference of the Avogatori, and laying
aside all formality, had the right to condemn to death clergy and laity, nobles
and commons, to make use of the public treasury, and to command the governors
and generals, we shall perceive that the counterpoise of Doge, Consiglieri, Pregadi, and the Consiglio was not worth much, but that the
supreme power, which in other cities reposed in the hands of a Balia, here
resided in the Inquisitori. It is certainly not at
all clear from what families these were chosen, how the others tolerated it,
and why there was here no trace of party feeling. Some remarks of Maximilian,
that he was coming to liberate the old fathers from the violent oppression of
the new aristocracy, cast no real light but only a glimmer upon this matter.
Within this hall, no personalities and no differences appear, only sometimes
hatred against secret renegades manifests itself, otherwise there is always a
common exertion and a common will.
“They
are very clever”, says Comines, "they meet daily and hold council; their
neighbours will feel the effect”."
The
disturbances which had taken place in Italy since Charles VIII's advent there,
came very opportunely for their plans and policy. On every available occasion
the Venetians extended their power round about them. In the struggle between
Charles and Ferrantino they acquired five fine cities in Apulia, excellently
situated for their requirements, which they peopled by the reception of
fugitive Jews from Spain. Moreover, in the kingdom of Naples, one party had
declared for them; we have seen, too, how Taranto raised their standard. During
the Florentine disorders, they were within an ace of becoming masters of Pisa.
In the Milanese feuds they acquired Cremona and the Ghiara
d'Adda. Their power was all the more terrible, as
they had never been known to lose again anything which they had once obtained.
No one doubted that their aim was complete sovereignty over the whole of Italy.
Their historians always talked as if Venice was the ancient Rome once more;
therefore it was that the bones of Titus Livius were honoured at Padua, like
those of a saint: "they should learn of him to avoid the faults of
Rome."
Since
the Turkish war, which had kept them a while employed, was now at an end, they
next tried their fortune in the Romagna, and endeavoured, availing themselves
of the quarrels between the returning princes and Caesar, to become, if not the
sole, at all events the most powerful, vassals of the papal throne. Those
princes who were often compelled to fly, and were accustomed to fly to them,
were all, even including Guidobaldo, their head, so
much bound to Venice, that "San Marco!" had even been shouted in Guidobaldo's castles, with his approval and consent. The
Venetians prepared to espouse the cause of those whom Caesar had overpowered.
The cities reflected how genuine and substantial was that peace which the lion
of Venice spread over all its dependencies. Having appeared in the Romagna at
the end of October, 1503, and having first promised the Malatesta other
possessions in their own territory, they took Rimini, with the concurrence of
the prince and citizens. Without ado they attacked Faenza. That city had
recalled a natural scion of the Manfredi, and for a good omen had called him Astorre; but the good omen proved an ill-starred one, when
the governor of the castle surrendered. They were then also themselves obliged
to surrender. Men said: "Faenza is for the Venetians either a gate into
Italy, or their ruin”. They continued their conquests, and, in the territories
of Imola, Cesena, and Forh, took stronghold after
stronghold. Cesena itself had already previously announced through Guidobaldo its subjection, and it was only the fear of
Caesar's castles above their head that kept the cities still loyal. Then it was
that the first minister of France stated his belief that, "had they only
the Romagna, they would forthwith attack Florence, on account of a debt of
180,000 guilders owing them”. If they were to make an inroad into Tuscany, Pisa
would fall immediately on their arrival. Their object in calling the French
into the Milanese territory was, that they considered them more fitted to make
a conquest than to keep it; and, in the year 1504, they were already
negotiating how they might wrest Milan again from them. Could they only succeed
in this, nothing in Italy would be able to withstand them any longer.
"They want to make the Pope their chaplain”, said Machiavelli.
2.
FIRST EXPLOITS AND DOUBLE INTENTIONS OF JULIUS II
But
they met with the staunchest resistance in Julius, as in him they could
discover no weak point to attack. As pointedly as he could express himself, he
declared to them, on the 9th November, 1503, that, "though hitherto their
friend, he would now do his utmost against them, and would besides incite all
the princes of Christendom against them”; and once more, on the 10th January,
he declared that : "he was, and always had been, firm and constant in his
intention to regain the temporalities of the Church; and, further, that no
terrorism, no treaty, nor conditions would prevent his carrying it out, for it
was his duty”. But as no warning availed aught, "for their right was clear
and plain, and they would satisfy his claims with their newly-coined gold”, in
September, 1504, he entered into the league with Louis, Maximilian, and Philip,
which was directed not only against Ferdinand, but against Venice as well. We
have seen how this league became dissolved. The Venetians then retreated a
step. They restored all parts of the territories of Imola, Cesena, and Forli
which they had occupied; until they had done so, Julius would not accept their
obedience." Yet he did not on this account abandon his project of
conquering the rest also.
Julius
was of a very impatient and violent character. When Michael Angelo painted the
Sixtine chapel, and at last unveiled it, he could not wait until even the dust
from the scaffolding had cleared away. Any thought that had once occurred to
him possessed his mind unceasingly; it was visible in his features, he murmured
it ever between his teeth; "he must die”, he confessed, "did he not
speak it out”. But this did not make him stubborn and inconsiderate. He once
threatened Michael Angelo, requiring him to make haste and finish some work,
and then on the following day sent him 500 scudi to pacify him. In the same
way, as he had always abided by his opinion in opposition to his uncle Sixtus,
to Innocent and Alexander, even when a fugitive and in peril, so when he became
Pope, he unswervingly adhered to what he had once decided upon, mindful of
Nicholas and Gregory among his predecessors. His temperament can be gathered
from his portrait by Raphael - the strongly-marked features, the closed mouth
and long flowing beard, as he sits in an arm-chair in deep thought. All his
actions gave evidence of his firmness. He aptly bore the oak on his
coat-of-arms.
Now,
as we have seen, Julius was resolved to tolerate princes in the Papal States,
but only such as he could control. But it was not only the Venetians who were
capable of offering him resistance, but others also. Giovanni Bentivoglio, of
Bologna, in particular, was almost independent. He ruled his city by a council
of twenty, of whom ten conducted the Imborsazioni,
the elections, and all public business for the first half of the year; and the
other ten for the remaining half, yet both under his personal presidency. He
was styled Prince, Governor, and permanent Gonfaloniere
of justice; he could himself levy a tax. He dwelt in a splendid palace,
containing 370 rooms, among gardens, fountains, and fish ponds. His sons, one
of whom was designated to succeed him, built other palaces. He found a bell
indispensable for calling his friends together; and a tower bears an
inscription to the effect that, "he had built it, he, to whom virtue and
fortune had granted all his wishes and abundance of wealth”. On his shield were
emblazoned a lily and an eagle; yet he trusted most in the lily and in French
protection.
In
the year 1506, when Louis XII and Ferdinand the Catholic needed the papal
sanction to their Neapolitan compact, Julius considered it practicable to
compel the Bolognese to recognize their dependence. The latter appealed to
tradition and to the old treaties made with the papal see. He, on his part,
maintained the rights of a prince to alter a constitution even in the face of
tradition; he announced that he would come and see their mode of life for
himself; if it pleased him, he would confirm it, otherwise he would alter it:
the old treaties, he averred, were obtained by coercion, and now an
amelioration was possible. The Venetians offered him their assistance in this
enterprise, provided he would only ratify their possession of Faenza and
Rimini. But he paid them no heed. With a guard of only twenty-five lances, a grey-haired
man among grey-haired cardinals, on the 20th August, 1506, he took the field in
order to conquer Bologna. On the march thither he thought of reducing Perugia
at the same time.
For
Giampaolo Baglione, who after Alexander's death ruled Perugia again in the
customary manner by a Balia, the Dieci dell' Arbitrio, had always refused obedience. He was now to be
compelled to obey. What was there victorious in his mere advent? In Orvieto,
Giampaolo, whom Duke Guidobaldo had persuaded to
subject himself, met him and promised to deliver his fortresses and gates into
the Pope's power, and his troops into his pay. Before the capitulation had even
been signed, before his troops, who had begun to collect, were on the scene,
and in order to show that he trusted the honour of his enemy, the Pope entered
Perugia, reinstated in their possessions those who had fled the city, left to
Giampaolo his legal rights, and restored peace.
In the
case of Bentivoglio, the pride of his wife, Ginevra Sforza, and his old
confidential standing with Julius, with whom he had eaten and drunk, prevented
a similar subjection. Were his four sons, to whom he had committed the defence
of the four quarters of the city, too weak to resist a Pope? He replied to
Julius' demand that he should furnish quarters for him, his army, and 500
French lances, that "only the Swiss guard could be admitted with the
Pope's person”, and further asked to be informed how long he intended to
remain. "So," exclaimed Julius indignantly, "he prescribes laws
for us, and will not receive us. Shall he dictate to us?" Hereupon the
Pope declared Bentivoglio and his adherents rebels against the Church, gathered
to him his army and the troops Louis had promised him, and winding through the
ravines and passes of the highest part of the Apennine range, carefully
avoiding the positions occupied by the Venetians, and passing frequently by
kneeling peasants, marched to Imola. At this juncture, the French, whose
arrival Bentivoglio had never expected, actually advanced against him - for
Julius and Louis were still friends - and, at the same time, his old
adversaries in the city, who had so long kept silence, rose up in revolt, and
with them many new opponents, embittered by the cruelties perpetrated on the Marescotti (of whom shortly before nearly two hundred had
been ruined on the accusation of Caesar Borgia), and detesting him, too, for
the arrogance of his sons. Then he likewise perceived that no one can be
accounted happy before his death, and that he had falsely boasted that no one
would ever expel him; accordingly, he entered into a compact with the French,
which secured to him his private possessions, and then, after an uninterrupted
prosperity of forty years' duration, quitted his palace, the pillar of his
fortune, and his city. Julius, on the other hand, obeying the invitation of the
now free people, was borne in on the 11th of November, 1506, through the gates
of Bologna, on an ivory chair, clad in his papal robes. He only deposed three
members of the Twenty, whilst adding twenty-three to their body. To these Forty
he committed a far more independent jurisdiction than that which they had
enjoyed under the Bentivoglio, and released the people from all burdens. He
desired to establish a truly free city, and one devoted to him for his
protection and favour.
Now
whilst entertaining other projects, as to which he was not reticent, and having
delivered to the Marquis of Mantua the standard of the Church, bidding him
under it wage just and victorious wars, and well pleasing to God, it happened
that affairs in Genoa were so far prejudicial to his objects as to divert his
intentions into another channel.
In
the years 1506 and 1507, Genoa passed through all the phases of a revolution.
The first impetus was given by the leading plebeian families, who, for a long
time past, had been wont to see one of them, Fregoso or Adorno, at the head of
affairs, and the old aristocracy doing service to them. Since the French
occupation, however, both these leading families were in exile, and the supreme
power resided in the nobles, and especially in the family of Fiesco. The Popolari, having for a long time vainly
demanded that two-thirds of the public offices should be again entrusted to
them, were at length aided in their demands by the indignation of the
proletariat at the conduct of some aristocratic youths, who, instead of paying,
drew swords, showing on the hilts the inscription : "Chastise the
peasant”. Accordingly, one day some of them placed themselves at the head of
the people, and, with the cry of "People and King”, organized an
insurrection, and succeeded in wresting to themselves two-thirds of the
offices. The effect of this was to show the lower orders that the public peace
only depended upon their good will. Rapidly following up their success, these
latter next opposed the magistrates of the upper classes by appointing eight
tribunes from their own midst; they went further, and committed the supreme
power to four men, and were still not content. At last, the Cappetti
- people whose sole wealth consisted in an old cap and a pair of woollen
stockings - obtained the upper hand, and gathering together daily in their
societies of "Peace”, "Concord," or whatever they were called,
waxed more and more enthusiastic, chose a dyer for their chief, and made him an
absolute Doge.
The
course of such revolutions often proceeds in the same way; from an ascendency
of the middle classes to the opposite extreme, next to the ascendency of the
proletariat, and, finally, to a monarchy from the artisans. These Genoese paid
no heed to the King of France, until, in April, 1507, he advanced against them
with his hommes d'armes and Swiss Guards. They
then fortified a hill lying immediately before their walls, and occupied it
with two masses of troops, the one posted on the summit, and the other on a
lower point of vantage. But they lacked courage and discipline; and when
Bayard, with 126 hommes d'armes, stormed the
hill from the one side, and the Obwalden arquebusiers and Bernese volunteers
from the other, both divisions turned and fled, without even thinking of
combining. They had no other weapons left, but for all, aristocratic Anziani
and plebeians, women and maidens, to cry "Misericordia”, Louis gave to
all, with the exception of seventy-nine, their lives and property; but he burnt
before their eyes the book of their compacts with him, and the letters of their
imperial liberties, took their arms away, and built with their money a castle
to hold them in awe. And so they went about, with shrugged shoulders and bowed
heads; on their new coins they saw no longer the device of the griffin, but
only that of the lily.
But
how could it be that the degradation of his country should not affect Julius
II, who was proud to call himself, in his inscriptions, "Ligurian"?
It might be that he had found the French not so well disposed as he could have
wished, even before Bologna, upon which, on Bentivoglio's flight, they had
advanced, under an understanding with the nobles, and which they were only
prevented by the people from occupying. But Genoa was almost nearer to his
heart. He was related to the house of Fregoso, and perceived in their exclusion
by the French a slight offered to himself. It was generally believed that he
had had a hand in the insurrection of the Popolari; and that it was with
intention that Louis had brought three cardinals and thirty high prelates with
him, planning, perhaps, to dispossess the Pope. As a matter of fact, Louis had
been in negotiation with Ferdinand to make Amboise Pope, and certain overtures
made to England appear to point to the same thing. But Julius, instead of
awaiting the King's arrival in Bologna, as he had originally intended, returned
in haste to Rome.
The
result of this was, that the Pope's original plan, that of uniting the States
of the Church, was supplemented by another - to free Italy from the French.
With respect to the first, he quarrelled with Venice; in carrying out the
second, he might have assured himself of its support. Had both only been at
one, and united with the greater part of the nation, which felt itself
oppressed, they might, perhaps, together have achieved some result. But, just
as in the whole nation itself, the feeling of faction entertained by certain
communities against each other was doubtless far stronger than the feeling of
the unity of the whole - the first hereditary and deeply rooted, and the latter
only existing in theory and in writings - so also did Julius and Venice prefer to
fight out their own particular quarrel, rather than to think of their common
country. Both wished to possess Rimini and Faenza, and otherwise would
entertain no alliance. So they stand opposed to one another, both having the
same object in view, but their present attitude being one of mutual hostility.
3.
DISCOVERIES OF THE PORTUGUESE. DECAY OF VENETIAN
COMMERCE.
Now
it had come about that Venice had incurred -and was still incurring- great
danger on both sides of her existence; in her conquests and her commerce. To
begin with, Venetian trade had suffered injury in the true basis of its
prosperity, the East, at the hands of those who had quite other aims in view,
and were really engaged on a mission of great importance in the world's
history.
In
the year 1497, the trade on the coasts of Arabia, East Africa, and the Indian
peninsula was in the hands of the Moors; naturally on the Arabian coast, at
Aden, where the favourable monsoons were eagerly awaited, and at Hormuz,
"the house of safety”. But scarcely less theirs was the fertile expanse of
plain upon the other two coasts, which lay opposite each other, up to where the
tableland begins. On the African coast, the Moors penetrated as far as
Zanzibar, whence they fetched gold and amber, and Cape S. Sebastian. The King
of Quiloa, who was computed to receive annually
2,666,666 ducats of gold from Sofala, and the sheikhs
at Malindi and Mozambique were Moors. On the Indian coast, lay the three
kingdoms of Guzarat, Deccan,and
Malabar. Over the two first-named Moorish princes held sway, whilst in all
their ports were Mongolian or Arabian governors. If a Banyan wished to engage
here in trade, he did not venture to embark without an Arabian convoy. The
third, Malabar, had still an Indian, the Zamorin of Calicut, for its chief; but
he also was kept in no little dependence by 4,000 Mohammedans, who dwelt in his
city and often supplied him with money. Whoever was not minded to obey him,
went into the mosque. One of his vassals, the Prince of Cranganore,
even wore a beard, and entrusted the government to an Arabian.
Besides
the three coasts, Malacca in further India was the most important emporium for
the whole Eastern trade; thither China sent its silk yarn, Bengal cotton
fabrics, and the Thousand Isles real spices : this place was the counter-part
to Venice, sending to the latter the light, perfumed and shining wares of the
East, to receive in return the thick, heavy, martial or more artificial
products of the West. Malacca likewise belonged to a Moorish king.
It
is worthy of remark, that like Aden, lying as it does upon a promontory and
severed by high mountains from the rest of the world, or like Hormuz, itself an
island, Malacca, and most of the other centres of this trade, have an insular
position in common with Venice. Their wealth depended upon the Venetian traffic
between West and East, which I have previously described, whilst the wealth of
Venice depended upon the position of India and its connection with Europe.
It
appeared quite impossible that this trade could ever be intercepted and ruined.
The Indians were much too weak to rid themselves of the Moors, and no other
nation had any access to these shores. But, even while it appeared so firmly
established, it was in fact already seriously undermined. We must observe that
many Europeans had by this time visited India, that a description by Edrisi of the African coast as far as Sofala
already existed, and that, since Bartolomeo Diaz had circumnavigated the Cape,
there was only the small strip from its last promontory, near Santa Cruz, to
Cape S. Sebastian which remained unexplored, unnavigated, and not drawn within
the sphere of the world's intercourse. As soon as this small strip of coast was
navigated, the Portuguese found themselves again face to face with their old
enemies, the Moors, whom they had left in North Africa. Then, naturally, India
became attached to Europe by a route other than that of the Moors and
Venetians, and a direct connection was set up. The Venetian trade then
necessarily fell into decay.
We
have already seen how Dom Manuel became King of Portugal, a prince, who, whilst
still a youth, had taken an orb for a device, and one whom a bold and brave
nobility were ready at any time to serve ; a nobility bold not against him -
for Manuel's forefathers had clipped their wings, and it was now their ambition
to serve the King in the palace, and accept a small remuneration from him - but
bold against the Moors, and fearless on the sea. With a view to explore that
unknown coast, and to discover India, Manuel, in July, 1497, fitted out three
baloniere, and a ravetta,
with a crew of 180 men. He gave them pillars, on which were inscribed a cross
and his arms, ten condemned prisoners who were to explore the countries of
barbarous nations, and letters for Prester John and the Zamorin of Calicut; he
then had his flag hoisted on the mast of the admiral's ship, and committed the
whole expedition to the care of Vasco da Gama.
Vasco,
a man of a proud and great heart, as his poet describes him, and one who gladly
offered his services in great enterprises, and was always favoured by fortune,
prayed, the previous night, with the monks of a church of Our Lady, and, on the
morning of the 9th July, embarked on his cruise. The friends of the sailors, on
seeing their sails disappear, mourned for them, saying that they would never
see any one of them again. The voyagers themselves lost heart in the violent
currents off the Cape, and would certainly have mutinied had it not been for
Vasco's brother. Even when they had already passed it, and were cruising along
the east coast of Africa, they considered themselves lost men, and their sole
solace and common comfort was to pray. For many days, they saw nothing on the
coast but Kaffirs, and could not comfort themselves by obtaining any
intelligence. At last, beyond Cape S. Sebastian, they descried coloured men,
and five days later, on the 1st of March, 1498, they were received with shouts
of joy and music by other coloured men, wearing turbans, shields, and swords,
in whom they recognized Moors, and who on their part considered them also
Moors. From these they learnt that the island before them was Mozambique, and
belonged to the Saracens, that voyages thence were made to India and Arabia,
and that Calicut was no great distance away. On hearing this, they raised their
hands to heaven and thanked God; the greater part of their work seemed now to
have been accomplished. The actual discovery of the really unknown had been
effected. They were again amidst their well-known enemies; but it was now for
them to escape from these Moors and reach their destination.
Now
their subsequent adventures, how they were threatened with death at Mozambique
and Mombasa, how the good Prince of Malindi refreshed them with his sweet
oranges and gave them a pilot, how they again caught sight of Orion, which had
not shone upon them for a long period, are known to everyone from his early
years. On the 29th of May, 1498, they, a remnant of about one hundred men, the
first Christians of the Latino-Teutonic stock, lifted up their hands on the
coast of Malabar, and poured out their thanks to the true God; they then
liberated their prisoners, loaded their pilot with gifts, and cast anchor not
far from Calicut.
The
Moors instantly perceived the danger that threatened them, and resisted the
intruders to their utmost. With great difficulty, and more as a proof that they
had really been there, than as a commercial transaction, the Portuguese took
some spices and precious stones away with them : they themselves were now reduced
to two ships and sixty men; Vasco lost his brother Paul just before the goal;
but fortune must always be dearly bought, and, as a result, the unknown coast
had been explored, India had been discovered, and, on their return, their fame
was noised abroad in Lisbon, and thence through Portugal, Spain and the whole
of Europe, and lives on even at this present day.
After
this exploit, Lisbon spoke of nothing else but of the wealth of Calicut; how a
load of cinnamon, ginger, pepper, and cloves, which in Venice cost more than
one hundred ducats, was to be had there for ten to twenty; how dyewood grew
there in bushes, and lac cost almost nothing; how pearls were fished for on an
island near, and how the Arabians, who were enjoying all this wealth, were only
badly equipped, and their ships easy to take. Nation and King were thus fired
to energy. On the spot where Da Gama prayed previous to his departure, Dom
Manuel built a far finer church, dedicated to Our Lady, and called Belem, a
monastery of the Hieronymites, and a mausoleum for the kings. He styled himself
lord of the commerce, navigation, and future conquests in Ethiopia, Arabia,
Persia, and India. He fitted out new ships without delay.
These
ships were not built only for trade, but for war. For since Pedro Alvarez
Cabral, of whose crew forty-five men had been killed at Calicut, and Vasco da
Gama, on his second voyage, had both been so much aggravated by the Moors and
the Zamorin, that they were obliged to fire on the city, it was evident that
nothing would be able to be effected here without war to the knife. It depended
upon the issue of these wars, whether the old international intercourse should
or should not exist longer. Even Manuel's counsellors sometimes doubted whether
Portugal would be able to continue them, and the Venetians never conceived it
possible; but those who undertook them were quite the men for the task, their
valour being guaranteed by their standing as knights, by their detestation of
the Moors, and by their religion; and their achievements are truly
marvellous. The most wonderful is,
perhaps, the first war undertaken by Pacheco Pereira, in the year 1503, in
defence of the King of Cochin, against the whole power of the Zamorin; the
former, although a vassal of the Zamorin, had allowed the Portuguese to land
and take in cargo, and had, in consequence, already once been driven from his
throne, and with difficulty restored to it again. With four kings and the heir
to the Crown, and with 75,000 infantry, and 160 ships, all furnished with good
guns cast by Christian refugees, the Zamorin advanced to battle. He was opposed
by three ships, bound together by ropes, which blocked the ford by which he had
to cross, and seventy-one Portuguese. He lashed twenty prows together with
chains, in order to board one of the vessels; he made a simultaneous attack
upon the ford and the city; he planted artillery on the bank to bombard the
enemy from a distance, and built towers on his ships to destroy them from
above. He himself showed dauntless courage, even when some standing at his side
were laid low by the enemy's bullets; he caused the laggards to be driven
forward at the point of the sword; he made vows to his gods, and selected his
days. But Pacheco broke his chains with his guns, and contrived to surprise his
cannon at the right moment and to spike them, whilst he kept off his towers
with bowsprits and booms. Sometimes he would remain quiet, until the enemy had
come to close quarters; he would then give the signal and fire his cannon; the
result was the defeat of the enemy, and the ford red with blood. He also
planted sharp stakes in the mud, on which the enemy impaled themselves. The
struggle lasted five months. The enemy is said to have lost 19.000 men, whilst
Pacheco's warriors scarcely lost a single one. It appeared to them a miracle.
"God had fought for them : they had escaped unscathed from bullets, which
rebounding from them even broke stones in pieces; when Pacheco's ship was
stranded in the morass, and the enemy had already seized his rudder, had not
the flood risen at his prayer and floated the ship again? Nay
more, when they were in peril of the enemy's floating towers, their guns were
ineffectual, until Pacheco had prayed to God not to punish their sins on that
one day, as the honour of the whole of Christendom was at stake."
What
was here conquered, however, was, although incited by the Moors, only an Indian
power. From this time on both sides a greater war began. On the Soldan of Egypt
declaring that, "If they did not cease warring, he would destroy the grave
of Christ”, the Indian Moors made preparations for a vigorous resistance. Dom
Manuel, on the other hand, in whose name Duarte Meneses was waging a rapid and
glorious war against the Moors in Morocco, and who was also himself, on one occasion,
on the point of joining personally in the campaign (for this war was none other
than that which the forefathers of the nation had begun many centuries
previously upon the Asturian mountains), replied to the Soldan's threat thus :
"If he had hitherto injured him, he intended to inflict even more injury
upon him in the future”. He hoped one day to seize Mahomet's house at Mecca. Da
Gama once said, "Moors and Christians have, since the foundation of the
world, been in arms against each other”. Such were the feelings which animated
King and nation; their war appeared to them a veritable crusade.
On
the 25th of May, 1505, Manuel despatched twenty-two sail under Don Francisco d'Almeida; his object was to hold the Indian seas by a
fleet permanently stationed there, and to secure the coasts by forts, such as
had first been built in Cochin for the defence of the prince.
Beginning
with the African coast, Francisco stormed and took Quiloa
and Mombasa, both by nearly the same tactics. And when another, following in
his footsteps, defying the hostility of the Sheikh and the unhealthy climate,
had established himself at Sofala, at the source of
the gold trade, and when at Mozambique a fort had been built without
opposition, the coast throughout its whole length was in their hands. The
Prince of Malindi was devoted to their cause. The arrival of Almeida brought
joy and consternation in India; joy to the enemies of the Moors, and not only
to the Prince of Cochin, who received a golden crown from Almeida's hands, but also
especially to the great King of Narsinga, whose realm
on the highlands of the Malabar peninsula extended as far as Coromandel, and
from Comorin far northwards, who once had caused 10,000 Moors to be put to
death on the same day, and who now offered one of his daughters as a wife to
Manuel's son; consternation to Calicut
and the Moors themselves.
The
first to bring the tidings were two Persian merchants. "Bad news"
they said; "with our own eyes we have seen twelve ships, all full of
Christians armed with glittering weapons”. Hereupon the Moslems were summoned
from their minarets to prayer; after having prayed, they fitted out eighty-four
large vessels and 104 prows. Lourenço, Francisco's son, was stationed with
eleven sail not far from Cranganore, when they
advanced to attack him; their masts were like a thick wood, their garments red,
and they were armed with bows, swords, muskets, and cannon. Lourenço addressed
his men saying, "Sirs, brothers, today is a day on which our Lord will
receive some of us into His holy glory”. He let them eat, until the Moors were
on them. He then said, "Now, my brethren, let us prove ourselves good
knights”. Thereupon he attacked the enemy's leading ship, grappled it, and
sprang on board. His example was followed by others. Simon Martin sprang
single-handed amongst fifteen Moors, and shouted, "Now, Christ, defend Thy
faith”; he slew seven, and drove the remainder overboard. As soon as their two
leading ships were taken, the Moors fled as one man, Lourenço, seeing the great
spoils that were his and his ships undamaged, exclaimed, "Praised be Jesus
Christ”; and built a chapel on the shore in honour of Our Lady of Victories.
Thus
did the Portuguese fight, and thus their enemies. The Moors now, full of shame,
hatred, and dismay, went about in great bands; they shaved their heads and
chins, and bound themselves together under terrible oaths. "They would now
either conquer or die”. They awaited their enemy in the harbour of Panian,
under the cover of their batteries. One morning, two hours before daybreak, the
Christians under Francisco and Lourenço were, before their very eyes, gathered,
one and all, around the admiral's ship; a priest raised a great cross on high,
and pronounced absolution and blessing upon all assembled. Many prayed to be
permitted that day to enter into the glory of God. This scene lasted but a
moment; the next, they separated and made for the shore. The first who reached
it were thrust back. Then came Lourenço, a youth who would rather burn his
booty than give it away under the price he demanded, but who, in spite of this
obstinacy, was quite obedient to his father; tall, and splendid of stature, he
was the first to spring on land. A Moor wounded him in the arm; but Lourenço
replied by cleaving him asunder at one stroke, from the head to the breast. His
father then, the royal ensign in his hand, came to his assistance. The victory
was theirs. Francisco did not accede to the wishes of his soldiery to sack the
city, for he knew that a strong enemy was in the vicinity, only waiting for
them to begin the pillage. He himself threw the torches into the city to fire
it.
By
this second battle of the Portuguese in India, the Moors also were vanquished.
The forts in Cranganore, Cochin, and for the present,
at all events, upon the Angedives, as well as a
victorious fleet cruising off the shore, kept the greater part of the coast of
the Indian Peninsula in subjection to them.
The
Arabian coast northwards and Eastern India still remained; they next turned
their attention to both of these. In 1507, they took the Arabian fortress of Sokotra, lying at the entrance of the Gulf of Aden; and
Albuquerque succeeded in building a fort at Hormuz, and in compelling the
prince to pay 15,000 ducats tribute. The King of Colombo in Ceylon was forced
to pay them 15,000 pounds of cinnamon, as an annual tribute. The terror spread
by their deeds paralyzed the people. Before Cannanore the inhabitants saw a
Portuguese slay sixteen to eighteen of the enemy each day. They said, "Is
it a Frank? Is it a god of the Franks? It is the god of the Franks, and he is
stronger than our gods."
Now,
although these events had quite another object than the advantage or detriment
of Venice, yet it is certain that their effect upon the community of our
nations was principally made important by the change in trade.
It
was not until 1503 that Portuguese merchants came to Antwerp, and offered their
wares to German houses. Nicholas Rechtergem is said
to have been the first to enter into an arrangement with them, and, after him,
the houses of Fugger, Welser, and Osterett. The South
Germans were much surprised when the wares they were otherwise in the habit of
sending to the Netherlands were now brought to them from there; for they were
soon convinced that they were genuine. As a result, we find Augsburg now taking
the lead among German cities, and of German commercial houses, that of Fugger,
which in the year 1506, owing to Maximilian's good offices, sent three ships of
its own to India, rose to pre-eminence, whilst in the Netherlands Bruges was
displaced by Antwerp. The German trade with Venice decreased. In Italy itself,
the Florentine houses, such as the Marchioni, participated directly in the new
shipping trade. In Venice, the effect of this was at once felt.
Many
other things also combined at this time. The Turkish war and the new ordinances
of the Soldan of Egypt had already seriously damaged their commerce. In the
year 1499, many houses on the Rialto went bankrupt at the same time, whilst
others suffered in credit. A load of pepper, which in Calicut cost about ten
ducats and was sold in Venice for forty, rose to one hundred and ten. How great
was the panic then, when, in the year 1502, the news came that four barks had
arrived at Lisbon bringing spices direct from Calicut. In a moment, the price
of spices fell, to the great detriment of the Venetians. They had comforted
themselves for a long time with the hope that King Manuel would not be able to
bear the expenses of his campaigns, and would at last succumb to his numerous
foes. Whenever a bark was lost, the news was announced to them from Cairo as
though a victory had been won.
In
1507, after Almeida's brilliant victories, the Zamorin, the Zabai
of Goa, and the Prince of Cambay, all sent to the Soldan Khan Hassan of Egypt,
imploring help; and the latter, in order to save the intermediate trade between
Asia and Europe, in which his whole wealth consisted, determined to assist
them. Then there broke out immediately a great war of the Indians, and the
Indian and Egyptian Moors against the Portuguese, and the Venetians hoped once
more that the power of Portugal would be destroyed. Their own fortune, or
misfortune, depended upon the issue of this undertaking, which would either
destroy the Portuguese shipping trade, or prevent both Moors and Indians from
ever again molesting them. The Venetians themselves engaged in it. They sent
metal and gun-founders, as well as shipwrights, to the Soldan of Egypt, to whom
in any case they paid tribute. The fleet which the Soldan fitted out at Suez,
and despatched under Mir Hossein, was manned in part by Venetians and
Dalmatians. His victory and his loss was their victory and loss also. Their maritime
life and their command of the seas were alike dependent upon the issue that was
to be fought out in India in the year 1508
4.
MAXIMILIAN'S ATTACK. FORMATION OF THE LEAGUE OF CAMBRAY
AGAINST THE CONQUESTS OF THE VENETIANS.
In
a description of Italy dating from these times, the Venetian possessions are
never referred to, save under the name of the prince from whom they had been
taken: "the city acknowledges no superior; all her possessions she has
robbed from her neighbours."
This
was the sentiment animating Louis XII and Maximilian, on the occasion of their
first league at Trent, and on that of their second with Julius at Blois, when
they resolved to conquer what belonged to them of the Venetian territory. And
just now, when the existence or destruction of the Venetian trade in India was
at stake, a third league was concluded with the same object in view, a league
which in truth imperilled all their acquisitions.
In
the summer of 1507, Maximilian held a Diet at Constance. His object was to obtain
aid against Louis, and resources sufficient to enable him to invade Italy.
"Seeing that Louis had broken all compacts, his investiture of Milan was
void; moreover, as he intended to depose the Pope and to endanger the imperial
dignity of the German nation, the Empire was bound to attack him”. After the
King of France had allowed his party to fall to pieces through sheer
negligence, he was unable to form another immediately, and, besides this, his
envoy at Constance had been made prisoner. Maximilian made these concessions:
that the Cameral Tribunal should be paid by the Estates -the origin of the sole
permanent imperial tax that has ever existed- and that a deputation of the
Empire should control the forces, money, and conquests of the Empire; in return
for these concessions, he obtained an aid of 12,000 men and 120,000 guilders
for six months.
Moreover,
on this occasion he might expect from the Swiss not merely no resistance, but
even support. Their envoys walked about at Constance in the mantles he had
given them, were sometimes guests at his table, and received presents of silver
goblets from him. The council of Zurich voted him 6,000 men, and at once
arranged what contingent each canton should furnish. Towards the beginning of
the year 1508, Maximilian came to Trent. At the first report of his arrival,
the Ghibellines in Italy became so active, that it was deemed wise to send many
of them to France. The Florentines, who were at a distance, and were besides
not weak in themselves, were under French protection; yet they sent in advance
to conclude a compact with him.
Fate
willed it that Maximilian, whilst intending a Milanese war, embarked upon one
with Venice.
The
negotiations with the Venetian envoys at Constance led to no result. Was it
likely that they would be willing to allow a man who had so often intended to
rob them, and who had shortly before wrested Gorz from them -the last count,
their vassal, at whose decease it would have devolved upon them, had, in his
old age, bartered it away to Maximilian- was it probable that they would be
willing to permit him and his great army to march through their passes?
Accordingly, now that Venice was leagued with France against him, he resolved
to attack that enemy which was less capable of resistance, and less dangerous
to himself, in the event of his being attacked. On the 4th February, 1508, at
Trent, his heralds leading the way, and he himself following sword in hand,
Maximilian held a great procession, and, with the concurrence of the Papal
envoy, adopted the new title of Roman Emperor Elect, a title until then
unknown.
This
he did, doubtless, in order to be able, as was actually done the same day, to
arraign and condemn the Venetians, with all the greater show of right. That
very day, bread was baked for the army, and provisions were sent down the
Adige. In the evening, the soldiers were ordered to hold themselves in
readiness. The next morning early, at three o'clock, the trumpets sounded, and
the march began. The Emperor advanced with 4,000 infantry, and 1,500 horses, up
the mountains of Asiago, in the direction of Vicenza. He had with him a
Vicentine emigrant, Leonardo Trissino. He took the
intrenchments of the Sette Communi, and received the
allegiance, at any rate to some extent and sufficiently to allow his passage,
of half the mountain chain, where it sinks down to the Adriatic from the chalk
hills between Monte Matajur and S. Pellegrino. On his right, Friedrich of
Brandenburg marched down the Adige with 2,500 men, and besieged Roveredo. On his left, the army of Erich of Brunswick-Calenberg, with climbing-irons on their feet, descended
from the hills, took Cadore, and advanced forty miles. All betokened a splendid
result, and Loredano, Doge of Venice, no longer
peremptorily prohibited the imperial envoys from passing through. Yet, in the
midst of his success, the Emperor suddenly stopped, before he had even reached
Vicenza, and carefully closing the seven passes into his own country from the
Isonzo to the Adige, returned to Innsbruck and Ulm.
The
reason was this: the French party in Switzerland had contrived, through the
mediation of two envoys from Louis, after many contradictory resolutions, to
gain entirely the upper hand. As to the means which the French envoys adopted
to attain their ends, we learn that one of them, Rocquebertin,
once defrayed the expenses of all the strangers in Baden, and, besides this,
kept open house daily; the other, the Bishop of Roeux,
once paid in Lucerne the reckonings of all the peasants who had come to market.
In the very midst of his operations against Venice, Maximilian heard the
resolution of the Swiss, of the 25th January, which ran as follows: "if he
injured the French king, he would force them to be mindful of their obligations
to him," these words being a direct threat levelled at himself. For how
easily Louis could interpret an attack directed against his allies as one
against himself, and how easily again kindle a war against the Emperor, as he
did in the year 1500! In March, the six months, for which period the Empire had
voted the supplies, expired. With these thoughts he turned round and addressed
himself first to the Swabian League: "They had to fear an attack upon the
Tyrol, a member of their League, the perpetual estrangement of Allgau and Wallgau from the German
nation, and after that the revolt of Flanders and Gelderland, of Liège and
Utrecht; the assistance of the League, if it would support the German
confederates against the French with money and arms, might save everything”.
If
danger threatened here, his advent averted it. The deputies of the Empire, at
all events, voted him assistance for six months longer, and although the aid
was but irregularly paid, for the matricula, which in much later times was
still incorrectly made and contained the names of mediate states as though they
were immediate, must have been inaccurate at that time also, it was still
considerable. With the Swiss he entered into fresh negotiations. Meanwhile
another danger threatened. As he had intended a French war, and undertaken one
against Venice, so now the danger threatening him did not come from France and
Switzerland, as he had feared, but from Venice, which he did not fear.
The
first move was made on Cadore by Bartolommeo d'Alviano,
Captain of the Signoria, against Sixt Trautson, the commander there. The Emperor had bidden him
pull down the houses in the valley, and barricade himself.
Trautson thought that mountains and
snow were sufficient to protect him. But Alviano sought him out through snow
and defiles, surrounded him above with peasants, who pelted him with stones,
and below with soldiers who attacked him with fire-arms, overcame his gallant
band who preferred death to surrender, and captured Cadore. Then Alviano looked
further afield. All the passes, except that of Gorz, were strongly defended.
Then Hans Aursperg wrote to the Princes of
Brandenburg and Brunswick, who were in the Pusterthal
and at Trent, that, with his Carniolans he was much
too weak to hold this great broad road; but that they, on the other hand, were
almost too well furnished with troopers and cannon for their narrow passes:
they should come to his assistance.
The
Princes, though warned, paid no attention to the summons. Alviano knew how to
take advantage of his opportunity. He had 10,000 Venetians, French, and
Spaniards, took guns and scaling ladders with him, and on the 9th April, 1508,
fell upon the Gorz road, and first upon Kramaun, and
stormed it. The country was unprotected, the inhabitants servile and
discouraged, accustomed to look upon the Signoria of Venice as their suzerain.
The danger was imminent. Letters were hurriedly sent to all their neighbours:
"Help, speed, haste, only haste! How can the poor walls of Gorz withstand
their cannon? Trieste, the Karst, and the whole of Austria will soon be lost.
Let us not be destroyed by these Italians”. Forthwith a summons was sent
through Carinthia, Styria and Carniola : "every man must be ready with
armour and weapons, as soon as he heard the bells ring and shots fired,
otherwise not only the houses but the churches would be in danger”, the lonely
churches which these people love. But the Carinthians
replied: “the 700 men in their passes, with the horses of the country, were
their hope and defence, and these could not be dispensed with”. The Styrians replied: “they were threatened by the Hungarians”.
The Carniolans, whose nobles were equipped with 200
horses, said that, “they required the help of more experienced soldiers to save
them; if the nobles meant to compel them, without bringing such troops into the
field, they would rather strike them dead." Only Erich came with 1,400
men, but even he did not venture into the open field, "for he was much too
weak for that."
Thus
it happened that, on Easter Eve, after Andreas Lichtenstein had held out in the
crumbling walls of Gorz a day longer than he had promised, and had repulsed an
assault, he was obliged to surrender. Immediately after, Wippach
and Duino fell. When the people of Trieste saw for the third time a ship of the
Venetian fleet approach before their eyes with a white flag, and their garrison
again open fire, they murmured together, "that was a bad business; for 100
years past they had lived under the protection of Austria, and would still
continue so to live; but they must have assistance." While they were being
bombarded from the sea, they saw Bartolommeo approach from the land, and no
help being visible they surrendered, and bought themselves free from pillage.
Hans Thur still held out for a while upon the almost
inaccessible rocks of Mitterburg, and Hans Rauber in
S. Veit am Pflaum; but they also called in vain for men and weapons and they
too surrendered. Portenau had long since fallen, and
the garrison was seen flying to Laibach. In this general disaster, only
Bernhardt Reiniger on the Adelsberg showed real German courage. He scattered
the first horsemen who approached looking for plunder. He took Savorgnano prisoner, shortly before the end of his
victories. His castle fired and in ruins, he accepted safe conduct, and marched
away. What Aursperg had said, was fulfilled to the
letter. The Germans had lost forty-seven good towns. Maximilian, meanwhile, was
journeying dejectedly up and down the Rhine. Not only had the attack upon
Venice proved so disastrous for him, but also on the Lower Rhine Charles of Gelderland,
since the breach with France, was waging a successful campaign against him. At
one time he was encamped in the strong Castle of Pouderoyen,
at the confluence of the Waal and the Maas, whence he had levied toll upon
seventy-two villages and upon all the ships in the rivers; at another time he
would ride through a rainy night upon bad roads, appear the next morning before
a distant town, and fire it. In this way Weesp was
burnt. The prophecy of their mermaid, "Muiden
shall remain Muiden”, availed the inhabitants of that
city nought on this occasion, and it too was taken. In short, the Duke of
Gelderland kept the whole of the Netherlands in terror. And, in addition to all
this, Maximilian was filled with the greatest fear of all the fear of an
insurrection in the Empire.
For
one moment he must take breath. Whilst then the Prince of Anhalt succeeded at
this crisis in seizing Pouderoyen, he directed his
military operations against Gelderland alone, and ordered the Bishop of Trent
to conclude a truce with Venice.
Some
of the elders of the Venetian Senate had frequently, but vainly, warned their
fellows that it was sufficient to act on the defensive; to attack would only
arouse new enemies. Not therein alone did the difficulty of their position
consist, but in the entanglement of their relations with the Great Powers.
Louis XII, who regarded the war in the Alps and in the Netherlands as one
single affair, both parts being connected through his influence in Switzerland,
demanded that Venice should include Gelderland in the truce. Friends who were
advantageously situated should protect him who was at a disadvantage. But to
this the Venetians refused to agree. It is perhaps the grandest moment in their
policy, that, after having overcome the Emperor, they refused to listen to the
demands of France. They could not be prevailed upon to do more than restore
Adelsberg to the Emperor: for the rest a truce was granted them for three
years. Maximilian, of course, felt himself terribly aggrieved, but Louis almost
equally so, as the Venetians had refused him that consideration to which the
services rendered them would appear to entitle him. And thus it came about,
that Maximilian and Louis, between whom the struggle that had just burst forth
principally lay, drew closer together. In July, 1508, Maximilian went to
Hertogenbosch, and then to his daughter and grandchildren. Negotiations were
entered into between Cardinal d'Amboise and Maximilian's daughter, Margaret;
they were, however, rendered difficult owing to Maximilian's refusal to desist
from attacking Gelderland, while Louis, on the other hand, would not be
restrained from an attack on Navarre. Margaret said her head ached from the
business.' But at last an understanding was arrived at. Muiden
and Weesp were restored to the Emperor, whilst the
King was guaranteed the renewal of his Milanese investiture. Maximilian
desisted from his schemes upon Gelderland, and Louis from his against Navarre.
But the main outcome was this; they resolved upon a joint attack upon Venice, by
which they considered themselves aggrieved. Thus arose, the League of Cambray,
concluded on the loth December, 1508. It was an alliance of the two powerful
princes against a city, which had the audacity to take up an independent
position between them. All princes who had any claims upon Venice, or rather
upon its lands and possessions, were to be invited to join in the operations.
The frontiers of Milan and Naples were to be readjusted in favour of Louis and
Ferdinand, those of the Empire and Austria in favour of Maximilian, and those
of the States of the Church in favour of the Pope. In this arrangement, the
erroneous, but, as appears from the above-quoted description of Italy, popular
idea was followed, that Padua, Vicenza, and Verona primarily belonged to the
Empire, to which they were consequently assigned.
True,
Maximilian could not possibly change his loss into gain on the one side, and attain
a victory on the other, more easily than by entering into this League. He was
the first to swear the compact of Cambray. Then Louis affixed his seal to it in
the palace of Bourges, after sermon and mass; he showed himself very much
delighted. An old plan had now ripened to accomplishment. Ferdinand delayed
until March, 1509; he then laid his hand on the altar, and swore it by the Holy
Eucharist. The Pope unwillingly resorted to this extreme measure, often as he
had threatened to do so, and although he had always incited Emperor and King to
it. He went once more with the Venetian ambassador, Giorgio Pisani, to Cività Vecchia. The sea was tranquil, only a light breeze
filled the sails; he was lively and kindly disposed. He thought if only vassals
were placed in his cities, like the Malatesta, he could endure this, and spare
Italy this war. He proposed this course to the ambassador. Pisani coldly and
proudly replied: "It is not our habit to make kings", and did not
even announce the proposal to Venice. Thereupon Julius also ratified the
League, pronounced his ban upon Doge, senate, and subjects of Venice; ordered
his nephew, Francesco Maria, the young Duke of Urbino -for Guidobaldo
was dead- into the field, and prepared for the struggle.
5.
FALL OF THE POWER AND TRADE OF THE VENETIANS IN 1509.
Thus
the very existence of Venice was in extreme jeopardy. Her trade depended upon
the relations between Asia and Europe, and now, in India, Portuguese and Moors
were engaged in a deadly struggle as to whether these should last longer or
not. The acquisitions of Venice were due to the feuds of her neighbours, and
now her neighbours had leagued together more powerfully than ever before to
wrest her conquests from her. The first struggle was, for the most part, in foreign
lands, the second in their own, and to this latter they devoted their whole
strength, and were self-confident enough not to fear the issue.
As
a matter of fact, the League was not as powerful as it appeared. Maximilian and
Julius had both misgivings as to Louis, the first on account of Gelderland, and
the latter on account of Amboise's old schemes. Louis and Ferdinand, on the
other hand, were afraid of Maximilian; the former for Milan, the latter for
Naples. They were negotiating, and had concluded alliances against each other,
even before their common League was carried into effect.
Should
it not, then, have been possible for the Venetians to detach one or other from
such an alliance? It must be confessed that, had they succeeded, they would
have profited but little; besides which, Ferdinand never moved a finger until
all was settled. At the beginning of April, Maximilian was at Xanten, instead
of at Trent. The Venetians were not frightened by the Papal preparations: the
only enemy they really feared was Louis - that Louis whom they themselves had
invited to Italy. To gain him over, appeared to them perhaps unfeasible, and,
it might be, not even to their advantage.
If
we inquire what had really incited Louis against Venice, we shall at once
perceive that it was not the election of Julius to the Papal chair in the stead
of Amboise; for the share Amboise himself had in this election is much more
certain than that of Venice. He must have had other reasons which indeed had
already been evident on several occasions. In the year 1501, he was impelled,
as it appears, by nothing but his right, which he had from the Visconti; in
1504, by the open assistance the Venetians afforded the Spaniards; and, at
present, the irritating factor was the truce they had concluded with
Maximilian, without regard being paid to his demands. The hatred ever cherished
by the prince and the nobles against the powerful communes was also a very
powerful factor. "These fishermen," they said, "must be driven
back again into their lagoons to catch fish." And thus Montjoye,
the first French king-at-arms, appeared in his cotte,
embroidered with golden lilies, on the threshold of the great hall in Venice,
and there proclaimed war upon the Republic; war for life and death, with fire
and sword, on land and sea, until the lands, which they had torn from others,
were completely restored."
"Sir
herald”, replied Loredano to Montjoye,
"God, whom no one can deceive, will decide between us”. Their envoy in
France said: "the world will see whether brute force or intellect will be
triumphant”. It was sure to come to a struggle between them one day, and it was
probably in anticipation thereof, that they had summoned the French to Italy.
Many entertained the hope that a glorious victory would be theirs, and Italy at
last ridded of them.
With
this thought they equipped and prepared for action. All the most tried knights
of Italy - for the last glory of their country was at stake -entered into their
service and formed their heavy cavalry. From Apulia and the Romagna came their
infantry, the best being that formed by Dionigi di Naldi, a party-leader in the
Val di Lamone, from the inhabitants of this valley, and so well disciplined,
that other companies also were organized after their pattern, dressed in red and
green, and called Brisignels. For the peasants and citizens, a kind of militia
had been already organized. The coasts of Illyria, the Peloponnese, the Aegean
Sea, and the Hellespont sent light Greek horse. Half savage archers, the Sagdars, came from Crete.
The
supreme commander of this force was Pitigliano, a man who had never yet made a
resolve, much less carried out any action, unless the stars were propitious,
and whom years -he was already over sixty - had made still more circumspect.
His lieutenant, Alviano, commanded the infantry. Of constellations the latter
knew this much, that Mars was in the highest heaven when he was cut from his
mother's body. He was small of stature and weakly in appearance, but yet had
slain bears; his troops sometimes mocked at his figure, but he held them so
firmly in control, that not even a baggage boy would dare to desert the
standard. His decisions sometimes looked like violence of temper, and his
punishments seemed cruel; but afterwards, when he had cooled down, he was
gentle and generous, and master of himself. By nature he was boldest of the
bold. Many ascribed to him Gonzalvo's victory on the Garigliano, and as he had
conquered Istria and Gorz, his renown was fresher, and his fame greater than
that of Pitigliano. Only in one thing did both agree, that Pitigliano was
justly proud of having never served a foreign prince, and that Alviano
conceived that he would now be able to defend Italy from the barbarians.
He
of the two had the bolder hopes. "If he might give reins to his horse and
outrun the train and transport of his army, he would have Milan within three
days. Had he not driven the French out of Naples? Now the King was coming; but
he would bring him back a prisoner to Venice”. He had with him an ensign, upon
which was emblazoned a winged lion tearing an eagle. His cry was "Italy,
freedom."
But
we must remember that all were not as sanguine as he was. Many thought that
they ought to be satisfied, if, perhaps, Cesena and Imola were captured from
the Pope, and Genoa was roused by the Fregosi to revolt. The Signoria ordered
that the attack be awaited behind intrenchments, and the campaign restricted to
sending assistance to places attacked. Amongst the people there was a
presentiment that some disaster was approaching, A great conflagration, which
at that time burnt down the arsenal, was regarded as a heaven-sent sign. But
more still was said to have happened. The Virgin Mary was said to have been
seen in the sea sitting on a log and saying, "Weep, country, weep."
In
April, 1509, the war commenced. The French soon crossed the Adda crying
"France", and then came the Venetians with their cry of "Libertà." Then the French attacked Treviglio, the Mantuans, who as well as the Ferrarese had joined the
league, Casalmaggiore, and the Papal troops, Brisighella, and all three places fell. But, as they pushed
on further, the first two were repulsed, and only the Papal troops succeeded in
taking Russi. But the Venetians did not trouble themselves about the Papal
army; they attacked the French with great fury. In Rivolta they drove out all
who appeared to them to be suspicious, boys of fifteen and old men of seventy;
they then marched upon Treviglio, eager for pillage, though it was in their own
country. King Louis was at Milan, and intended remaining there two days, when,
late in the night, Trivulzio came to him from the Adda with the tidings that
Treviglio was being bombarded, and torches were being incessantly waved from
the walls, as a sign that it could barely hold out; but he felt himself too
weak to save it. The King assembled his hommes d'armes
in the morning, rode in full armour and with joyful looks through their
lines, and set out. On the way thither he learned that the White Knight, his
commander in Treviglio, had been made prisoner, and that the city was lost; the
citizens who, having been plundered and expelled by the Venetians, who spared
neither nuns nor the Holy Sacrament, were seeking for shelter in Milan, came to
meet him. He pressed on; on the 6th of May he transported his soldiers across
the Adda, on two bridges of boats, the one for the infantry and the other for
the horse, and confronted the enemy; he in the valley, they on the high ground.
He could thus either attack the foe in their camp or force them to come down
into the valley. The camp, however, was too strong to be taken by assault, and
for four days he tried to induce them to come down by skirmishes; on the fifth
day, the King went to attack the towns in the rear of the enemy. He took
Rivolta, and on Monday, the 14th of May, advanced upon Pandino.
The roll of his army showed a strength of 28,232 men; the first division was
commanded by Chaumont, the second by the King in person, and the third by
Longueville. Thus had come about the situation which the Venetian Signoria had
arranged beforehand, and Alviano's thirst for battle
could no longer be restrained. "What use is a soldier to a country if he
allows it to be pillaged?" Therefore, whilst the French slowly advanced
along the valley of the Adda, the Venetians, 33,000 men strong, hurried along
the shorter road over the high ground, in order to anticipate them by arriving
first at Pandino. It cannot be denied that arms rule
the world, and the result of centuries of wisdom depends upon the issue of a
single battle. Just where their two roads met, Alviano and the first French
division caught sight of each other, and the French began the attack. Alviano,
eager for the fray as soon as the first shots had been fired, being under the
impression that the first division formed the King's whole army, and wishing to
protect his rear and flank from the attacking enemy, planted his thirty-six
guns in the brushwood, and summoning Pitigliano to his assistance, hurled
himself with his infantry through the vineyards and over the ditches at the
enemy. The French gave way. Chaumont sent to the King, saying: "Sire, you
must fight." Louis immediately sent Bourbon and La Tremouille
to his aid; behind them, sword in hand, and surrounded by princes and
pensioners, came the King himself; then the standards waved and the rest of the
army came up. It was in the midst of a thunderstorm, and the rain falling like
hail appears to have concealed the arrival of the King from the Venetians. But
as soon as they saw him - I can imagine that the lightning every now and then
burst through the gloom and shone on the steel armour, illuminating the field
of battle - when they realized that the enemy was receiving assistance, their
courage sank. Yet, for a while, the Brisignels gallantly withstood the charge
of the King's Swiss and Gascons. With them lay the issue. It was upon peasants
and shepherds from the high valleys of the Alps, the Apennines and the
Pyrenees, that the fate of Venice depended. What did it matter to them? They
were only bent on plunder. Now the Italians had their booty with them from
Treviglio, and their sole care was to secure it, if not by victory, then by
flight at the right time. The French and Germans had gained no booty, and were,
therefore, all the more eager to obtain it; so it happened that the Brisignels
were driven back. Alviano, in the thick of the fray, was wounded just as he was
about to exchange his tired steed for a fresh one, and was immediately taken
prisoner. All his troops fled, and communicating their terror to Pitigliano's men, to whom they had not been able to
communicate their lust of battle, turned them also to flight. The day was
completely lost. The King gazed on the great number of fallen and vowed a
chapel to Our Lady of Victories for the repose of their souls. According to
most accounts, Alviano commanded the last of four columns, and the others were
too far ahead to come to his assistance. Others say that the first and
attacking column was under Alviano's command, but
that Pitigliano, who had quarrelled with him in Treviglio, looked on at the
battle from the hills, and would not stir to help him. That Pitigliano was in
the rear, seems to be confirmed by the retreat, which took the road to
Caravaggio; had he been in front towards Crema, he would not have fled back,
that is, upon the very swords of the victorious enemy. Pitigliano alone now
endeavoured, though in vain, to rally his soldiers round the standard. They had
lost their fame; but they would not lose their lives and booty as well. Some
would not place their names again upon the rolls; some did so, received fresh
pay, and then fled. The citizens of Brescia refused to be burdened with an army
such as this; they would only receive such of their men as were amongst them.
In Peschiera, the army despaired of holding together; it found the gates of
Verona closed against it, and, having for a while bivouacked upon the plain,
took its way to Mestre, on the coast.
Louis
pursued the fugitives. The castle of Caravaggio held out three days; all other
places surrendered at the first blast of the trumpet. In Brescia, the King rode
up the steps into the upper court of the palace without meeting with
resistance, and it was only Peschiera that needed to be stormed. The
inhabitants of Ferrara rang their bells, drove out the Visdomino,
and retook the Polesina. The Pope proclaimed the
victory in an Italian sermon, and occupied Rimini and Faenza. The Germans
appeared on the Lago di Garda, in Friuli and beyond Vicenza. Many advised King
Louis to press on to the coast, and crown his triumph by utterly destroying
Venice.
In
Venice itself, when, after Alviano's many letters,
all promising victory, the news of this great disaster arrived, the Senate
speedily assembled, the merchants closed their shops, the monks, mindful of the
Pope's ban, fled, and the people, crying aloud, surrounded the palace. The
remnant of the army, 6,000 strong, had no inclination to fight more. Thereupon
the Doge invited Pietro Barbo, an old, sick man, to the council; he had not
attended the sittings of the Senate for a long time past, but he now put on his
official dress, and was carried in a litter into the hall; yet he could give no
other advice, but to trust in God's protection. Matteo Priuli
was the first to propose that they should give up the subject towns. This
proposal was adopted: "Thus does a skipper throw cargo overboard to save
his ship". Twelve men now examined the coast, to see where precautions
against an attack were insufficient; orders were despatched to Cyprus to open
all the reserve stores, and all salt ships were commanded to load corn only;
the mills at Treviso were grinding day and night, and preparations were being
made to utilize other islands and the sea; and strangers who had no business
connections were expelled. Meanwhile envoys were sent to Maximilian, assuring
him that "the Venetians would retire from Verona, Vicenza, and
Padua"; others were on their way to Naples, saying that "the harbours
and cities of Apulia were open to the King of Spain"; others again repaired
to the Pope, inviting him to occupy Rimini and Cervia.
These resolutions may perhaps be called heroic. The republic wished to get rid
of all its conquests on the mainland, in order to be able to maintain itself,
and perhaps compel its enemies to make peace. The surrendered towns were
ordered to subject themselves; how, otherwise, could the Paduan nobles have
been enabled to boast that the Emperor, thanks to them, was lord of Padua?
Their former surrender to Venice had had the semblance of liberty, and so now,
Venice being unable to protect them, they received back from her, if not their
oath of allegiance, at all events the liberty to choose their lord. As the
Venetians later speak of criminal faithlessness, they must have expected that
these towns would still hold out for them. But the towns too were dismayed, and
so surrendered themselves, each to one whose claims the League had recognized.
Thus
perished the power of Venice, and the hope of the Italian patriots. Only one
small consolation remained; all Italians engaged in the battle who were wounded
had been wounded in the head and breast, and not in the back.
During
these months of preparation and decision, tidings reached Venice of the issue
of the struggle in India. It was perhaps not less unexpected. For at first the operations
of Mir Hossein and the Egyptian fleet were successful. Mir Hossein discovered
Don Lourenço in the harbour of Schaul, where the shallow water never allowed
the Portuguese to come to close quarters and board. As Lourenço was attempting
to gain the open sea, his ship stuck fast between fishing poles, in which
predicament Mir Hossein attacked him. The hero, covered with wounds, had
himself carried to the foot of the mast, where he kept encouraging his men to
the onslaught, until he was at last slain by a bullet in the breast.
But
the Mamelukes and Moors did not long rejoice over their triumph. Francisco, on
hearing of the death of his only son, exclaimed, "Whoever loved him, let
him not lament, but help me to avenge him"; and in December, 1508, four days
after the League of Cambray had been concluded, he sailed out to find Hossein.
He burnt Dabul, a city of the Zabai,
who had summoned Hossein to his assistance, and spared not a soul therein. On
the 3rd February, 1509, he sailed against his enemy into the harbour of Diu;
each of his ships singled out one of the enemy's, attacked, and boarded it.
Whilst the struggle was going on on the ships, the
prows of Calicut, and the princes of Diu, anticipating what the issue would be,
slipped away.
Neither
Dalmatians nor Venetians helped the Egyptians: they sank, or surrendered. Mir
Hossein sprang on shore, mounted a horse, and escaped. Lourenço was at length
avenged. The coast towns of the Soldan thereafter could not pay him any more
tribute. The last hope of the Venetians was broken; and the Portuguese, without
whose safe conduct no ship dared after this to enter the Indian Ocean, were
completely masters of the situation. That was the time, Queen Helena of
Abyssinia wrote, which Christ foretold to his blessed Mother: "In the land
of the Franks a king shall arise, who shall destroy the whole race of the Moors
and barbarians."
From
that time, Italy ceased to be the "inner court in the house of the
world", as Ascanio Sforza expressed himself, and the centre of the European
trade. The 3rd February, 1509, crushed the trade, and the 14th May, 1509, the
power of Venice.
What
is it that exalts nations, and brings them low? Is it their natural
development, their growth and decline, as is the case with human beings? But external
circumstances often work together in a wonderful manner. Or is it a divinely
pre-ordained destiny which drives them on either to destruction or prosperity?
The growing and flourishing state is girt round by other living forces, which
prevent its expanding beyond measure. Venice had sprung up when her neighbours
were weak; she now came into collision with stronger powers, and whilst
developing herself widely and occupying an independent position in their midst,
she was attacked by them and overcome. And simultaneously a new maritime power,
which sought and found another centre, sapped those resources which had enabled
her to rise so high. Venice could not become more than she now was; but she
might still maintain her present position.
6.
WAR OF THE VENETIANS TO SAVE THEIR CITY AND PART OF THEIR
TERRITORY.
After
these great blows had fallen upon her, and Venice was stripped of all save herself,
and what she had once acquired in the oriental expeditions against the Turks,
Julius and Ferdinand resolved to spare the remainder; the former, because the
city was an eye of Italy; the latter, because he was involved at that moment in
his Moorish campaigns, and was mindful of his Catalonian claims to Neopatri and Athens: "Had he only 3,000 landsknechts,
in addition to 20,000 Spaniards, he would even take Constantinople
itself". Louis and Maximilian, on the other hand, were for utterly
annihilating Venice; and to this intent they joined hands, through the
intervention of Amboise. It was not until after the battle, that Louis received
the Duke of Savoy into his camp, who demanded Cyprus. It was not until the 29th
of May, that Maximilian, through many princes, counts, knights, and servants of
the realm, proclaimed hostilities against Venice. He was most urgent in the
matter; he declared to the princes of the realm that the territory of Venice
had been already won, and that he was now minded to take to the sea, and
annihilate also the rest of her power. His plan was, with Papal and Spanish
fleets, to attack the city from the sea, whilst German and French armies,
advancing down the Brenta, invested the city on the land side, and reduced it.
It could be divided up into four districts, and each prince could have a castle
there.
With
these schemes in view, he made his preparations. Shortly before this, the three
ships which the Fuggers had despatched to Calicut
returned, and the instant gain of 175 per cent, made this house wealthy enough
to pay him the money which Julius, Ferdinand, and Louis, each for different
reasons, had promised him; namely, 300,000 ducats, so that the profits of the
Eastern trade were not merely withdrawn from Venice, but were even employed
against her. But before he had finished his preparations, the undertaking began
to wear a different aspect.
On
the return of Louis to Milan, he was received with a triumphal arch, upon which
were represented his achievements, his councillors, his march and his battle,
the nobili of Venice finding also a place
thereon. In their flowing robes, with hand on breast and faces serious and
thoughtful, they looked as though their sole purpose was not only to defend
themselves, but also to repair the damage and to punish the faithless. The
facts are these. In the Venetian territories, both parties, rulers and
subjects, appear at first to have believed that they could dispense each with
the other. When the rulers saw that their enemies would not be satisfied with
the possessions which they had renounced in their favour, but intended to
subject even them themselves, and became aware that they needed a bulwark for
their defence, and when at the same time their subjects were reminded, by the
rigour of the new government, of the clemency of the old, they both perceived
that communities of men are not so easily dissolved as formed, but grow into a
natural cohesion, to rend which asunder is to endanger the life of the whole.
This
truth was first realized at Treviso, which lay amidst the estates of the
Venetian nobles, and at Padua, for whose daily traffic with Venice eighty boats
were scarcely sufficient, and which yearly sold to Venice corn and the produce
of its orchards and vineyards, to the value of 40,000 ducats. When Leonardo Trissino appeared at Treviso, to occupy that city in the
name of the Emperor, it only required a shoemaker to raise the standard and the
cry of "San Marco!" for the whole of the people to join him. Had it
not, 175 years previously, in similar straits, of its own accord thrown its
fate in with that of Venice? It again received a Venetian garrison within its
walls. The Imperialists were already in possession of Padua. Yet when, in the
early morning of the 27th of July, 1509, Andrea Gritti had surprised one of the
gates masked sharpshooters behind hay waggons picked out each his man among the
guard, and 2,000 were in reserve in a neighbouring thicket and dashing through
the streets raised the national cry, the people here also declared for Venice,
and the landsknechts were forced to retire. The chiefs of the nobles were
punished for having surrendered their city.
But
the war, hereupon, began to wear a changed aspect. Towards the autumn,
Maximilian arrived on the scene with twenty-six princes and 12,000 horse - La Palice, Bayard, and French and Spanish auxiliaries were
with him with more than one hundred cannon and so many landsknechts that his
army was 50,000 men strong; he came like a true emperor, in the hope of a
battle such as Louis had fought and won. The peasants in the mountains
surrendered, those living near the plain fled with wife and child, with cattle
and chattels, to the lagoons, behind banks and dykes (they drove 10,000 head of
cattle to Cavarzere, 20,000 to Montalban, and thus we
can see how the lagoons may have been peopled in bygone days); but no army
appeared. Only Padua opposed its triangular fortifications, with walls sixty
feet in height, and five-fold escarpments, to the enemy's advance. Loredano, now convinced that the fortune of Venice depended
upon preservation of the towns on the mainland, set the Venetians a new
example, and, though no noble had ever before served on land, now offered both
his sons for the defence of Padua. They were joined by 174 other young nobili, each accompanied by ten men, bound to them
for life and death. Thus they came, in all 10,000 men, to Padua. One day they
were all assembled on the Prato della Valle, before
the church of Sta Giustina, Padua's patron saint. Here an altar was raised, on
which was placed a copy of the Holy Gospels; after mass they one and all
advanced to the table, and laying their hand on the Gospels swore to defend the
city with true allegiance, and with their lives.
Against
this city Maximilian now advanced. His letters, which flew into the city
attached to the points of arrows, were not heeded. The balls from his great
mortars, the "Strauss," the "Scharfe Metze," and others,
which were placed on special carriages, and could only be fired off four times
a day, terrified them not. Unconcerned, Coelius Rhodiginus
worked on at his book "Lectiones antiquae". Some Spanish companies, trained under the
great Gonzalvo, stormed a bastion, which they scaled; but the attack ended in
their own destruction, when the powder, concealed under dry faggots, caught
fire and exploded. The landsknechts were ready to storm once more, if some
heavy-armed troops were associated with them; and Maximilian actually commanded
the French hommes d'armes, who were with him,
to help them; but this did not suit their temper. Bayard was wrath and said:
"Shall we rush into danger at the side of mere tailors and cobblers? Let
him send his German nobles with us." But these latter, on being appealed
to, replied, "They were come to fight on horseback, and not to
storm." Maximilian, in the vexation of spirit which is aroused in every
energetic man by the impediments of prejudice, gave orders to break up the
camp, and throwing garrisons into the other fortresses, left Italy.
After
this, the fortunes of the Venetians increased mainly through the attachment of
all the peasants to them. It would often happen, when the Germans were marching
through the valleys between the vineyards, that, where the defile was narrow,
peasants would come out from behind the vines crying: "now they were going
to avenge their fathers, children, and wives", and attack them; often they
would conceal themselves behind the bushes, until a weak detachment came by,
and then they would call the Venetians, who were also concealed hard by, to the
slaughter. The Marquis of Mantua escaped from some soldiers who suddenly
attacked him; but four peasants found him crouching in some maize, and, in
spite of his great promises, they consigned him to the tower of St. Mark's. The
Bishop of Trent, whom the Emperor had left behind in Verona, arrested a certain
man who said he was a Venetian. The bishop hanged him; but he remained firm to
the last. Every day the situation grew worse. The Venetians then succeeded in
placing even Verona in danger, and actually in taking Vicenza, Monselice, Montagnana, and many
other towns. Immediately they took a place, they erected a statue of Saint Mark
there, but no longer, as formerly, with a book, but with a sword.
Maximilian
once again, on the 7th April, 1510, commissioned his general, Rudolf of Anhalt,
a man called by the neighbours at home "high crown of the lineage of
Anhalt", he was famed for his loyalty, and his army called him Anhalt the
Loyal (Anhalt das treue Blut)
to make incursions and ravage the land with fire and sword, with pillage and
murder. The most horrible deeds were then done. In the Grotto of Masono, two thousand men, women, and children of good
family had taken refuge; some of the French auxiliaries came to the grotto,
and, as the wind was blowing into it, they made a fire at the entrance, so that
all the unfortunates were suffocated by the smoke. In Udine two angels with
bloody swords were believed to have been seen above the church. In this war, in
which sieges, stratagems, victories, counter-stratagems, defeats, and retreats
interchanged in rapid succession, they appear to have fulfilled their omen
throughout the whole of Friuli. In Austria, some confessed that they had been
hired by the Venetians to set fire to the country.
Venice
no longer waged this war in order to conquer or to liberate Italy these plans
were past and gone; her aim now was to avail herself of the almost unexpected
devotion of her people, and of the general state of affairs, to regain her
territory, at all events in part. Therefore, now that her Indian trade was
ruined, she busied herself with a new organization of commerce in the
Mediterranean. Meanwhile fresh events took place.
7.
ENTERPRISES OF THE POPE TO EFFECT THE LIBERATION OF
ITALY.
"Your
Holiness knows", the Venetians wrote, after their first disaster, to the
Pope, "how we are situated: your Holiness will pity us. Blessed Father and
Lord, our gracious master! If we have obeyed your precepts, as we have done,
may the hand that inflicted the wound deign to heal it."
The
Pope thought that the League of Cambray was now satisfied; "if the Emperor
was not in possession of his cities, it was due to his own dilatoriness";
and, on the 20th February, 1510, in St. Peter's hall, he released Venice from
the ban of excommunication, and, stretching out his hand, pronounced his
blessing on the envoys of the republic. His noble soul was full of grand plans,
urgently needed for the whole of Italy.
Amboise
had supported the Emperor's expedition against Venice with French forces, in
order that he should make him Pope; and in the manuscripts of Bethune is
contained a whole list of favours, which Amboise would confer upon the Emperor,
as soon as he had attained his aim. His own danger, accordingly, confirmed
Julius in his old intention of liberating his native land, Genoa, whence his
kinsmen, the Fregosi, had been exiled, so that he might thus drive the French
from Italian soil. Formerly this had been the intention of the Venetians as
well as his own; they had, however, first of all to fight out their quarrel
together. This had now been done, and the power of Venice was broken. Julius
now resolved to save the rest of the Venetian power, and to commence his work
in league with the republic. The resolve was all the bolder, as it would
certainly kindle the war against him, which his enemies at present hesitated to
begin. Although his scheme was so dangerous that the galleys were kept at Ostia
ready for sea, in order, if necessary, to enable him to escape, he yet adhered
to it: "It suited Louis to make the other princes his vassals, and himself
his chaplain; but he would not tolerate this tyranny any longer, he would drive
the French from Italy, and if his sins were so grievous as to prevent his
accomplishing his purpose, he would live no longer. He would shed his blood for
the liberation of Italy."
Without
delay hesitation was foreign to him he proceeded to action, and first of all in
Ferrara and Genoa.
Now
in Ferrara, Alfonso d'Este held sway, as did his fathers, uncontrolled alike by
his subjects, his relations, and his superiors. His subjects he ruled by
tribunal and sword; he proclaimed his laws by sound of the trumpet, without
asking anyone, and punished the rebels with rack or sword. He kept his
brothers, Giulio and Ferrante, who had conspired against his life, in close
confinement. As a result of the battle of Agnadello,
he had ridded himself of the Venetian Visdomino, who
with his processions and his drums and fifes had not even spared his court;
instead of cleaving to his suzerain, the pope, he adhered to emperor and king.
The
Pope now demanded of this Alfonso that he should make peace with Venice. To
make an attempt upon Genoa, in July, 1510, he despatched Marc Antonio Colonna
and the party of the Fregosi, who, in anticipation of his achievements, called
him Julius Caesar, and with the shout of "Libertà
e Italia", came to the Riviera.
But
Alfonso, who, with cannon that he himself had cast, had shortly before, from
his tower Pepos and the embankments on the river, annihilated a considerable
Venetian fleet, which had advanced up the Po against him, would not assent to
this peace. Julius, wrath that he should still have vassals whom he could not
control, demanded yet more: "Alfonso should not impose any fresh burdens
upon his subjects, should moreover set free his brother Ferrante, who was the
Pope's godson, and should not, in defiance of his suzerain, manufacture salt at
Comacchio for Agostino Ghisi,
who had rented the saltworks in the newly acquired Cervia,
was already complaining of this which he had never dared to do as long as Cervia was Venetian. But the only answer Alfonso returned
was either a flat refusal or a subterfuge: he would not obey him.
The
Fregosi in Genoa succeeded no better. They hoped that their partisans would
rise, as soon as they appeared. But the French had, on this occasion, a well-disciplined
body of men both inside and outside the city, and kept everyone in terror. It
is recorded that the peasants, when the heads of executed rebels were sent
through their villages and stuck on stakes to strike terror into them, did not
dare to touch them when they saw them blown down by the wind. Thus, while the
Fregosi were expecting a movement on the part of their adherents, the latter,
on their side, were waiting until the Fregosi achieved some success.
This
first misadventure aroused the Pope to fresh exertions. He put Alfonso under
ban and fitted out a fleet against Genoa. But he conceived still greater
schemes; with one stroke he would overcome Ferrara, rouse Genoa, drive the
French from Milan, and help the Venetians to triumph over the Emperor. And in
this he looked to the Swiss for assistance. The epoch arrived in which the
Swiss attained the zenith of their renown, both in war and politics. Let us
sketch in outline their position at this time.
In
February, 1509, Louis had abandoned his alliance with them, and it is patent
for what reason. In spite of his annual subsidies, he had on two occasions, in
1501 and 1503, almost come to open war with them, had at last been obliged to
confirm the rights of the people of Uri to Bellinzona, and had never been able
to satisfy the claims of certain mercenaries to payments long due. And as often
as a campaign was in prospect, the factions asserted themselves after his
alliance, just as before. The negotiations of the year 1507 against Maximilian
cost him the very considerable sum of 230,000 guilders. He thought he was
bargaining for obedient mercenaries, but found them very refractory allies. Now
Louis, who never underestimated the value of money, no doubt thought that, even
without annual subsidies, he would secure his true partisans by secret
pensions, and an army by guaranteeing pay. Directly he had renounced the
alliance, this supposition was confirmed. Without any annual subsidies, 6,000
Swiss joined him in his war with Venice and decided his victory on the very day
that an alliance with Venice, which held out an even greater prospect of
success, was proposed to them at home. After the battle, nothing of course came
of this.
Whilst
then the Swiss were now released from all obligations to any prince, the
patriots among them hoped that, in the future, every Swiss would be restrained
from accepting foreign pay, and would hereafter live in true liberty, without
serving in the field and accepting money for such service.
It
must be confessed that this hope was not likely to be realized. To forego the
money might not, perhaps, have been such a hardship either for the judges, who still
sat in judgment beneath the fir-tree at Lastorf, or
for the people of quality, who thought it too great an expense to warm a
separate room for their servants, or for the respectable householders, who were
content with windows of cloth or, if of glass, with roughly glazed panes,
costing four pfennigs each, or even for the simple cowherds and peasants. But
they could not live without war. As soon as they were old enough, the boys
dangled a sword over their left knee, stuck an ostrich feather in their caps,
followed the drum, and practised musket shooting. No fair, no church festival,
not even the swearing-in of a new magistrate took place without a review and a
musket-practice. Even the lame must have coats of mail, and the priest in the
pulpit was girded with a sword. A wedding party was honoured when many
uninvited guests followed, so long as they had halberts
and swords and marched three and three. Whenever these martial fellows were
gathered together, families and guilds in separate rooms they all called each
other "thou" there would appear in their midst, perhaps, one who had
just returned home from active service, and would clink the guilders that he
had got as pay or booty, and fire the others with the wish that they also would
be one day thought of in their homes in fine helmets and with halberts. Amman Reding rightly remarked: "Their youth
must spend itself somewhere."
In
the conviction that this people would, of all allies, be the least dangerous
for Italy, Julius, who was the first among the popes to surround his person
with a Swiss guard, concluded with the Swiss, through the mediation of Matthaus
Schinner, Bishop of the Valais, on the 26th February, 1510, an alliance for
five years, in return for an annual subvention of 12,000 guilders; in return,
they were to furnish 6,000 men against every enemy that should cause trouble to
the Church of Rome. With this alliance, Julius thought that he would infallibly
carry out his designs. In July, he sent 36,000 guilders to Martinach,
and demanded the promised contingent. At the end of August, 1510, his
comprehensive military scheme was developed. The Papal army occupied Modena and
threatened Ferrara; and the Venetians (the Germans having departed) rose up
against Verona. The fleet, to which the Pope had entrusted the ensign, the key
and the triple crown, had already put to sea for the purpose of attacking
Genoa, and the Swiss, 8,000 men strong, appeared simultaneously on the Tresa, with the intention of marching through the Milanese,
and falling upon the other side of Ferrara as Chaumont had done upon Bologna
and thus deciding the day. "The papal party was already in great strength
at Ferrara, and Lucrezia wished to fly. The city would be forced to surrender
as Bologna did. And then had not understandings with Brescia and Parma been
arrived at, and was not the Ghibelline party in the whole of Milan on their
side?" The Pope now himself left Rome and went to Bologna. The cardinals
of French sympathies forsook him; but he had no doubt of success. In Loreto, he
dedicated a great silver cross to the Virgin, and the superscription: "In
hoc signo vinces".
It
often happened, in Switzerland, that the negotiations which led to no result
before the army took the field, were immediately successful as soon as it had
done so, and when those who were most eager for the war had marched out with
it. If we investigate, we find that this evil was often the real cause of much
mischief, and finally occasioned the fall of the independent Confederation. On
this occasion, the army had scarcely crossed the St. Gotthard, when the
imperial and French partisans began to bestir themselves. Maximilian's warning,
that the Pope intended with their soldiers to attack Milan and not Ferrara, and
that, in the event of the army not returning, he would invade their territory
with the collective might of the Empire, had some effect upon them. Although
the three old Forest cantons which were always against Milan, opposed it, the
majority resolved to guarantee safe conduct to the French embassy; and, although
Matthaus Schinner reminded them, that the intention was to send troops to the
Pope, and that, "if the King of France opposed the Pope, he became the
Pope's enemy, and that they then by virtue of their compact with the Pope would
be sworn foes of the King also", the majority nevertheless resolved to
detain, until further orders, the army they had raised for the Pope. Such an
order would at any time have thrown into confusion troops who were already in
the field, and who never attributed it to a single party, but believed it to be
the outcome of an unanimous resolution. On this occasion, they had already left
Varese and reached Chiasso on the lake of Como, but
had become extremely discouraged through want of provisions for they found
nothing but chestnuts, grapes, and nuts, the mills having been stripped of
their iron-work; moreover, their road was blocked by rivers without bridges,
and they were surrounded on all sides by French horse, who did not actually
attack them for they were afraid of rousing their vengeance but kept harassing
and threatening them. In this plight, the order of the assembly found them; in
addition, some of their captains had been bribed; thus their general distress,
confusion, and ignorance of the state of affairs determined them to retreat. On
the 12th September, the first ships conveying the returning troops came across
the lake to Lucerne, and, on the same day, the French ambassador appeared
before the assembly. The deputies of Uri, Schwyz, and Unterwalden indignantly
quitted the meeting; the rest drew up a letter to the Pope, praying that
"the father of peace would deal with the Christians peaceably and without
guile."
Instead
of the promised aid, the Pope, on arriving at Bologna, received this letter.
The Venetians had already besieged Verona; but they were compelled to retreat
by the French, who, now freed from all fear of the Swiss, hastened to the
assistance of the city. Moreover, the papal army had not been able to take
Reggio, to say nothing of attacking Ferrara. The fleet despatched against Genoa
showed itself in the harbour off Vado, and attempted to land, but it found
itself confronted by another equally strong; and nowhere a friend. It exchanged
a few stone shot from its mortars with the enemy, and returned. All had failed.
Here, where everything depended upon the ascendency of the moment, and where
the conviction of superiority must precede victory, the failure was without
doubt due to the retreat of the Swiss.
And
now, like the picador in a bull-fight, when he has missed the deadly stroke, or
like the hunter in the mountains, when the chamois that he has missed threatens
to drag him into the abyss, Julius perceived that instead of himself attacking
and threatening, he had become the attacked and was in extreme danger.
Louis
hesitated long before meeting him. "The Pope intended devilish things
against his honour and his possessions, none of which he was minded to lose;
but, unfortunately, war with his Holiness would rouse the whole of Christendom
against him". In the year 1510, Amboise died; and, as he left no one to
inherit his position, as the King, in making his great plans, was in the habit
of disregarding small ones, though these were the stepping-stones to his
greater achievements, the government appeared less enterprising than formerly.
"O my patron," cried Robertet, when a
portrait of Amboise was brought to him, "wert thou alive, we should now be
with our army in Rome". At last, after Louis, through the intervention of
the Florentines, had vainly attempted negotiations, and when blow was followed
by blow, and attack by attack, he also, at last, decided on war. On the 16th of
September, the clergy of the kingdom assembled at Tours, more for counsel than
for action, and chiefly in order to obtain the opinion of the nation, and there
decided thus: "A prince might certainly return an attack made upon him by
the Pope, provided it were only to weaken the Pope, and were not to his total
destruction". But this is exactly what the King proposed to do. In the
same month, the imperial ambassador, Matthaus Lang, Bishop of Gurk, came down
the Loire. The heir to the throne invited him to a banquet. The Queen sent him
wine from Beaune and victuals from her table. The King promised a small
contingent for a winter campaign, but, for the summer, a force of 1,200 lances,
10,000 men, and his own person to boot. He boasted that "he would create a
new heaven and a new earth in Italy; the Pope should be deposed and the Emperor
be as great as Charles the Great was". His looks showed how seriously he
intended it. Day and night he pondered how to revenge himself. In November, he
sent his Milanese army into the field under Chaumont. The papal forces lay
between Modena and Bologna, in order to protect both places. Chaumont marched
up the Reno as if to threaten Modena. The papal troops at once retired thither,
but thus cut themselves off from Bologna, and upon this city Chaumont threw
himself without delay. Julius himself was in the city.
Julius
was cut off from his army, still without the assistance Ferdinand had promised
him on account of the Neapolitan fiefs, without the stipulated help from
Venice, and, withal, ill of a fever. And in Bologna, he himself was in peril.
As the Bentivogli had sided with his enemy, the city was full of the mutterings
of their friends and partisans, the Rinucceneti, the
Fantuzzi, and the Caprara. Nothing but captivity seemed in store for him. In
this sore distress, he found aid in his own resources. He first of all promised
the leading Bolognese, whom he had summoned to his bed-side, that he would give
them a Cardinal from among them. This was repeated to the people assembled in
the market-place; many other favours were also promised, so that they were
quite won over to the Pope. And what influence has not the holy and august
presence of a living pope always exercised upon the people! They all came
together before his palace, 5,000 on horseback and 15,000 on foot, led by two
Cardinals. He rose from his bed, showed himself upon the balcony, and spread
out his hands to bless them: then, as though he would show them that, in his
sore need, he committed himself into their hands, he drew back his arms and
laid them crossways on his breast. This sign, which showed the people that
their prince and the father of Christendom entrusted his person to their
keeping and allegiance, moved their hearts more than any promises could do.
They shouted for very joy. The Pope retired and said: "now we have
triumphed". And in truth so it was. The parties in the city were at length
silenced, and immediately afterwards the Spanish and Venetian horse rode into
the city, and the English and Spanish envoys intervened with threats on the
Pope's behalf. Thereupon the French retired; with joy Julius heard at an
ever-increasing distance their din and firing. Whilst still lying in bed, he
raised his arm and cried: "Away, ye French, away from Italy".
Gladness of heart made him well in a short time. He collected his army, and, in
the month of December, despatched three generals against Mirandola and Ferrara.
By
these three he was not, as it would seem, very excellently served. The first,
the Marquis of Mantua, halted at a cross way, and said: "There is
Mirandola and the enemy's country; here is Mantua and friendly country. Go ye
thither, whilst I remain here; if ye need me, fire your arms until I
hear". This man had been liberated from the tower of San Marco,
principally owing to Julius' intervention. The two others, the Cardinal of
Pavia and the young Duke of Urbino, near relatives of Julius, were every day at
feud together, and the Cardinal, at all events, was a man of such a notorious
character that one day, on seeing a man who had been hanged, someone exclaimed:
"well for thee, that thou hast not to do with a Cardinal of
Pavia."
Alfonso
of Ferrara, whom they attacked, was a totally different man. He converted all
his silver-plate into money, and pledged his wife's jewels to the usurers. The
earthen-ware plates and dishes which were used at court, were, after this,
remarkable as having been manufactured by the Prince's own hands. He always
paid everybody at the appointed day. To this circumstance, he said, was due the
obedience paid to him. The three hundred pieces of cannon, many of them cast
from the metal which the citizens had delivered over to him, according to
streets and guilds, ensured him the respect of friends and foes. The
fortifications flanking his city were a model for many in the future. The
French whom Louis had sent to his assistance, were under ban, as he was, but
were kept in allegiance and obedience by nature and the laws of chivalry.
In
this situation, the operations of the Pope did not seem likely to be crowned
with success. Mirandola would scarcely have been wrested from its lady
defender, the widow of Galeotto Pico, were it not
that Julius, though a pope and very old, had proceeded to besiege it in the
coldest winter season. It did not affect him at all, that, on one occasion, he
only escaped from Bayard owing to a snowstorm, and that at the last minute he
had to spring out of his litter, in order that a drawbridge should be pulled up
behind him, or that a cannon-ball fell into his tent before the city. The ball,
as large as a child's head, he sent to Loreto, to be treasured as a keepsake
and thank-offering. At last he succeeded in reducing the town, marched into it
over the frozen ditch and through the breach in its walls, and restored the
rightful lord. But he alone of all his party showed this determined courage. If
Bastia del Genivolo was taken, Ferrara, according to
Alfonso's own opinion, would be lost to to him. But
the papal generals neglected to occupy a ford that might have been held by
twenty men; through this Alfonso came, and saved his castle. Julius sent him
word that "if he would dismiss the French he should not be again attacked";
but the man who brought this news was not trustworthy. Alfonso replied,
"Julius will soon be in his grave; but a princely race rewards good
services for ever". The man his name was Agostino Gerlo
answered: "within six days he offered himself to kill the Pope, who
received all his food from his hand". The Duke told it to Bayard as a
fact. Bayard replied: "Sire, did I but know it for certain, I would
communicate it to the Pope before nightfall". Alfonso shrugged his
shoulders, and expectorated: "for Bayard's sake he would not do it";
thus the enemies of the Pope and those whom he had placed under ban did him
better service than those he trusted. When Julius, after the trifling war in
the winter, in which the French and Papal troops only strove to keep open their
connections, the former with Ferrara and the latter with the Venetians, as well
as to cut their enemies' communications, at length found himself, in April,
again in the field with 9,000 foot and 1,500 horse, he no longer found Chaumont
at the head of the enemy, but a man whom the disorganized state of the French
army required. This man was none other than Gian Giacomo Trivulzio, a captain
who often hanged or drowned his refractory soldiers; a man who deducted from
the pay of his Spaniards what they had stolen from a peasant; a man cursed by
his soldiers "this old man with the bald head had no strength nor life in
him, and was yet so stern"; but he taught them again how to take
fortresses.
Thus
did two septuagenarians, both grown grey in the turmoils
of Italy, both brave and stern, oppose each other, and each desired battle. How
could Julius be anxious to fight, he who was plainly so much weaker than his
opponent? But he said: "Christ helps his warriors, and will find means to
destroy the house of Este and the schismatical
king". Trivulzio desired to make the way smooth for the King, for Louis
was already on his way to Grenoble, in order to cross the hills, and fight out
his cause himself. The crisis was at hand, and the sword drawn.
At
this moment, Matthaus Lang appeared between the parties, and again an attempt
was made to ratify a peace, which should include both Venice and Ferrara. All
the ambassadors hurriedly met. The Scottish envoy, Murray, was especially
energetic in his endeavours to bring about an understanding. The cardinals held
frequent consultations. But how was any arrangement with Venice possible, when
Lang demanded Padua, Treviso, and 700,000 ducats besides from Venice? He
rejected all remonstrances and all promises whatsoever. His boast was that he
always went straight like a candle. As to Ferrara, Louis would not even agree
to a formal truce. "Such a truce would break the heart of his people. He
was now at an advantage, and might expect victory. First victory, then peace.
He would recruit in the Grisons, would then take the field, and not return
until he had both victory and peace, otherwise he would remain away altogether.
He was all fire and flame, when one of the Fregosi, who was taken in
Ventimiglia, confessed that he had been sent by the Pope to stir up a
revolution. Lang left the Pope. Trivulzio crossed the Panaro, and drove back
the Papal army, which did not need on this occasion to defend Modena for Julius
had shrewdly delivered it into the hand of an imperial plenipotentiary under
the walls of Bologna. Here, on the 22nd May, 1511, Georg Frundsberg
joined him with 2,500 Germans.
The
cause of the Pope, who had gone to Ravenna, lay in the hands of the Cardinal of
Pavia, who commanded in Bologna, and of the Duke of Urbino, who had charge of
the army lying before that city. Now the Cardinal, among his twenty constables,
to whom he had entrusted the keeping of the city, had also committed one of the
gates into the hands of the partisans of the Bentivogli, and, as often as he
was warned of it, only replied: "It is all well, all precautions have been
taken". But in the night of that 22nd of May, it came to pass, that the
Bentivogli on the outside passed by the gates, whilst the Fantuzzi and Ariosti on the inside mounted the Torre degli
Asinelli, and waved to them with a torch, and,
thereupon, those on the outside and those within both hurried to the Porta San
Felice, the latter to open it and the others to rush in. Some of the more loyal
troops were already assembling to fall upon the Ariosti
from behind, when the gate burst open, and with the shout of "Sega
Popolo", the Bentivogli rushed into the city. The cry was taken up on all
sides, and the Cardinal instantly fled with 100 horsemen. The city was in the
power of the Bentivogli.
The
noise and tumult, the shouts and the waving of torches were also observed by
the Duke, who was lying before the gates. "What are they shouting?"
he asked of an attendant, and they believed at first that it was
"Chiesa" that they heard. But in a short time they could distinguish
quite clearly the cry "Sega," and immediately afterwards heard from
the sentinels all that had taken place. The Duke perceived that he could not
possibly hold his ground. Forthwith then, in the depth of night, abandoning his
tents and baggage, but without further loss he himself was with the rearguard
he withdrew with his army. Only the Venetians who were with him were overtaken
by the daylight and by the enemy in effecting their retreat. The French
attacked them in the rear, and the peasants from the hills assailed their
flank, whilst the Bentivogli threw themselves across their line of march. The
last-named were cut through by some knights, to whom the urgency of their need
gave courage. The peasants plundered the baggage; the French took three
prisoners one of them with a wooden leg and great booty. The same morning, the
Bentivogli took the statue of the Pope, a work of Michael Angelo, from its
niche, and after dragging it through the city, broke off its head, and resolved
to melt down the rest to make a cannon.
Julius
was still at Ravenna. Contradictory news reached him every hour. Sometimes
hoping, and sometimes lamenting that "he was betrayed by those whom he
loved best", the tidings of the disaster at last reached him. The cup was
not yet full. After a short time, the Cardinal of Pavia made his appearance
with his horsemen. He threw all the blame upon the Duke, and effected that the
command should be at once taken from him and entrusted to Altavilla of Capua.
The Duke himself soon made his appearance, and found little attention given to
his excuses. In bitter rage, defeated and calumniated, slandered to his uncle
and before the whole of Italy, and, being an Italian, determined on revenge,
the young man walked through the streets until his deadly enemy, seated on a
mule, met him, and smiled a friendly greeting. In his wrath he threw himself
upon him. Grasping the saddle with his left hand, and with the words, "Art
thou guilty or I?" before he could even answer, with his right he plunged
his sword into his side. The Cardinal's dying words were, "Punishment
follows sin." The Duke rode away to Urbino.
Now
the Pope neither saw Ferrara conquered nor Italy liberated; what he did see was
Bologna lost, his statue broken in pieces by a people whom he had loaded with
favours, and a hostile army in his territory. Yet the heaviest stroke of all
was the murder of his trusted friend by his nephew, whom he had brought up, and
the consequent loss of them both. On the 28th May, he was brought in a litter
from Ravenna to Rimini. He smote his breast, and wept bitterly, and, that no
one might see him, he was brought to Rimini by night.
After
this disaster, the Venetians could make no further resistance. On the 1st of
August, Maximilian declared to them that he would set free the good old fathers
and the people from the thraldom of the new and tyrannical nobility now
reigning; he would give the city the freedom of the cities of the empire. On
the 2nd of August, his troops marched out from Verona. The Venetians were
driven out of all Lombardy and Friuli back upon a few strongholds; but even
these, Laniago and Soave, Kofel
and Beitelstein, with many others, were taken, some
under the personal superintendence of the Emperor. Not till then did he turn
his attention to Treviso and Padua, but Treviso was besieged with good
prospects of success before the end of August. Whilst the Germans scoured the
country as far as Lido Maggiore and the lagoons, the Venetians, on their side,
having no general worthy the name, were obliged again to avail themselves of
the services of Luzio Malvezzi, with whom they were dissatisfied, and whom they
had dismissed. They could not pay their troops, and these would have deserted
in one body to the Emperor, could they have expected pay from him. But, worst
of all, the good will of their subjects did not continue. We see with
astonishment how the ruling body were ever and again obliged to order their nobili to pay the imposts that were due. They
adjured them by all that was holy, by their country and their children; they
did not merely threaten to eject the delinquents from the Pregadi,
and to confiscate their estates, but they began carrying out their threats. Yet
all their adjurations, threats, and penalties were of none effect. It suffices
to say that Venice was in no less peril than Julius was.
How
could they ever have conceived the idea of liberating Italy from its enemies?
No pulse at that time beat for the idea of the unity and freedom of Italy. Only
those States which had become formed in the course of the few preceding
centuries, and the Papacy boasted of life. Their union only lay in a common
understanding, by means of which the attacks of foreign nations might have been
repelled. But whilst each asserted and endeavoured to advance its own cause,
they became involved in feud with each other, appealed to foreign aid, and yet
there was not one among all strong enough to place itself at their head and
remove the invaders, who had also on their side justifiable claims and a strong
body of adherents. Nothing remained for the determined Pope but to summon to
his assistance, against the French and the King of France, the Spaniards and
the Swiss. But the result of this was to be something other than the liberation
of Italy.
MORAL REFLECTION
Such
being the position of affairs, it cannot be said that it was impossible, but it
must be confessed that it was exceedingly difficult, for Italy to become once
more independent of foreign nations. Far be it from me to pass judgment upon
the temperament of a great nation, which in those days was a source of
intellectual stimulus to the whole of Europe. No one can say that it was
incurably sick; but it is certain that it suffered from serious diseases.
Pederasty, which extended even to the young soldiers in the army, and was
regarded as venial because practised by the Greeks and Romans, whom all
delighted to imitate, sapped all vital energy. Native and classical writers
ascribe the misfortune of the nation to this evil practice. A terrible rival of
pederasty was syphilis, which spread through all classes like the plague. How
often did it not happen that generals were by it rendered incapable of service!
The sons of Ercole d'Este were once all suffering from it at the same time.
Whole villages in the Venetian territory were affected by it and exterminated;
we read of ships, if not of a whole fleet, that required to be remained in
Corfu, because the whole crew had been rendered unserviceable by this disease.
Precautions such as we might perhaps take here in Germany appear to be nothing
but child's play, in the face of so wide-spread an evil.
It
is, however, difficult not to identify this depravation, everywhere and always
existent, although ever afresh denounced by preachers of morality, with the
peculiar character of an epoch or a nation. We shall not be able to maintain
without fear of contradiction that aspiration to fine language rather than to
noble deeds, the imitation of antiquity in what it has achieved in the shade,
rather than in what it has performed in the sun, as Machiavelli says, is mere
luxury, and not healthy for a nation as such; for instance, the training of
boys not merely in drawing and in composing prose and verse, but also in
"fine hypocrisy", as their teachers expressed it, which consisted in
making speeches in public, raising and lowering the voice by turns, now
affecting the tone of complaint, now that of triumph, simulating an unreal
passion on an unreal theme, a practice which they continued in a strange manner
when grown up in fact, this whole formal training, to which women, whom we find
improvising Latin verses to the lyre, also aspired. But no one can doubt that
it is a weakness, when those who affect to be masters of life, recommend in the
place of manliness, chastity, and strict self-control, nought but acuteness and
the semblance of such virtues. Besides this, there were youths who preferred to
sit upon a mule rather than a horse, men who curled their hair, plucked out
their eyebrows, and spoke to their superiors as softly as if they were at their
last breath; men who were afraid to move their heads lest they should
disarrange their hair, men who carried a looking-glass in their hat and a comb
in their sleeve. Many considered it the highest praise to be able to sing well
in ladies' society, accompanying themselves on the viol.
The
motive for imitation is always to be found in weakness; foreign manners and
customs forced their adoption upon the nation. And the misfortune was, that two
nations strove for the mastery, and that whoever loathed French customs fell a
victim to Spanish. He who did not speak French, learnt Spanish: he who disliked
the loose dress of the French, chose the tighter-fitting garb of the Spanish
and Germans. There were many who, in order to imitate the French, did nothing
but shake their heads, or made bows and plied their feet so vigorously in the
street, that their servants could not overtake them. There were others, who
took for their pattern the short and witty replies of the Spaniards, and their
discreet and unpretentious appearance in every company and in every court,
where they became each day more indispensable; these excellent chess players,
who never appeared to take any trouble in the matter. In any case they were
captivated by one or the other custom.
The
literature is also to a certain extent influenced by these conditions. Shortly
previous to and during this period, there appeared four important heroic poems,
two at Florence, namely, Ciriffo and Morgante, and
two at Ferrara, the Orlandos of Boiardo and Ariosto. Ciriffo
deals with the crusade of St. Louis, the others with the paladins of
Charlemagne. They mainly extol French heroes; they take for their subject
rather the wars of the Spaniards against the Saracens than their own wars: if
the matter of these poems had an effect upon the nation, it could only act in
opposition to the national spirit.
CHAPTER IV
RISE OF THE AUSTRO - SPANISH HOUSE TO ALMOST THE HIGHEST
POWER IN EUROPE
I.
JULIUS II IN LEAGUE WITH SPAIN
JULIUS
was assailed not only in his temporal power, but also in his spiritual dignity.
The five cardinals who had forsaken him and joined Louis, three French, Borgia,
for the sake of Lucrezia Borgia of Ferrara, and Carvajal, on the 19th of May,
1511, called a General Council of the Church arguing, that contrary to his duty
and his time the Pope was neglecting it and invited the Pope himself to take part
in it. In the same manner as Charles VIII, in league with Savonarola, opposed
Pope Alexander, so now did Louis make use of these cardinals against Julius.
The so-called ecclesiastical weapons were employed more by the Princes against
the Pope, than by the Pope against the Princes. Julius knew how to meet the
cardinals. "They ought to remember with what voice, what eye, and what
countenance he had sworn to hold a council; they would say that he had done so
in genuine singleness of heart. Only the misfortunes and the restlessness of
Italy had stood in his way. But now, whilst annulling their convention, he
himself summoned a Council, but not at Pisa (which a siege of fourteen years
had rendered unsuitable for the purpose), and fixed it not for the following September,
which was much too short an interval, but for April, 1512, and at Rome".
The real danger did not lie in the Council, but in the superior power of Louis,
who intended to employ its resolutions to the destruction of the Pope. Like
Alexander, who, when in dread of Charles, and in feud with Louis, on one
occasion concluded an alliance with Ferdinand, and on another at all events
intended doing so, Julius now, though hesitatingly and unwillingly, but under
the compulsion of necessity, turned to an alliance with Spain.
Ferdinand
was on the road to Malaga and the African war, when he received the Pope's
missives complaining of Louis. He halted on his march. The Council of Castile
considered that as there was already a domestic war, it was not necessary to
seek an external one. Ximenes promised to contribute 400,000 ducats, and even
to come in person. Ferdinand, who, in the year 1510, owing to the Pope's
investiture, which released him from all obligations to Louis, had become
complete master of Naples, knew well that in league with the Church and by its
sanction all could be attained; in feud with her, nothing. With new great
schemes in his head, he relinquished all idea of conquering Alexandria, and, in
return for 40,000 ducats, their monthly pay, he offered the Pope 1,000 lances
and 10,000 infantry.
In
August, 1511, the Pope secretly accepted his proposals at Ostia. On the 1st of
October, they proclaimed their alliance. Its object was stated to be: "To
conquer Bologna with its territory, and all the immediate possessions of the
Papal See, and to restore the unity of the Church". A further important
stipulation was the following: "If any conquests should be made outside of
Italy, the conqueror should be confirmed in their possession by the Pope".
Hereupon, after a grand procession through the city, the League was proclaimed
from the "stone of decrees" in the grand square at Venice, which
guaranteed half the stipulated pay. Ferdinand came from stag-hunting, from the
woods between Aranda and Lerma, and swore it; declaring that he moreover
offered himself and his goods, and all the goods and estates of his daughter,
to the service of the Church.
A
fourth associate, with Pope, King, and Republic was the Swiss Confederation.
The League was not published among the Swiss. Neither their pay nor their old
treaty influenced them at all; but, of all the parties to the League, they were
the soonest ready for war.
Through
all the Swiss cantons there surged in this year a lively spirit of faction.
Especially was this the case in the Valais and Freiburg. There Jürg uff der Flue and Matthaus Schinner of Mühlbach strove
against each other. Jürg, a strong hardy man, almost a hundred years of age,
proud of his twelve sons and eleven daughters, all of whom his house-wife had
borne him, lived at Glis, on the Simplon, whither the
people often went on a pilgrimage, and was distinguished by reason of his
family, who mainly were instrumental in conquering the Lower Valais. Matthaus
Schinner, who at school at Como had worked his way up to be his teacher's
deputy, afterwards, as priest, gained the affections of the common people
through his ascetic life he slept on the bare boards and, after zealously
studying the law, won over also the educated classes, until a Bishop of the
Valais on a journey saw him, and promoted him to a higher dignity. Both were
once friends: they had both together compassed the overthrow of the bishop, who
had been Schinner's benefactor, and Matthaus, through
Jürg's assistance, had himself now become a bishop. As long as Louis and Julius
remained friends, they both served together; but as soon as war had broken out
between these potentates, they also quarrelled. It is said that the bishop
offered his services to the King for too great a price, and had on that account
been rejected; at any rate, it happened that Jürg became the King's adherent,
whilst Matthaus favoured the Pope. Since that time, they persecuted each other
even to exile and imprisonment. One after the other, they were obliged to avoid
the Valais. In Freiburg, the bailiff, Franz Arsent,
and Peter Falk, an adherent of the Pope, strove to the bitter death. Falk
triumphed; thereupon the old friendship between Freiburg and Bern was at an
end; for, in the latter place, the Diesbachs and the
French party were in the ascendant.
During
these struggles, the assemblies presented a curious spectacle. The covenant of
succession with the Emperor, when an ally of Louis, had been assented to by the
majority but not by the Forest cantons. Many cantons had already once taken
home the draft of a new French alliance, and were disposed to accept it; but
the three Forest cantons declared that, in the event of its being adopted, they
would from that very moment, single-handed, march with their three standards
against the King's land. Nothing was settled. Schinner, it is true, also
visited the assemblies in the various cantons, and, wherever he was, there was
a constant going and coming, writing, enlisting, and negotiating; not a
moment's repose. He showed himself so well informed, that it was believed that
a private demon told him everything; but, in spite of all his exertions, he was
not successful. A mere chance incident at length brought matters to a close.
A
courier was despatched from Schwyz through the Milanese, in order to fetch the
subsidy from the Pope, but in Lugano he was seized for he was carrying letters
from Schinner to the Pope and drowned in the lake. The person of a courier, in
his distinctive dress, was considered to be as inviolable as that of a herald.
But his dress, a coat with the arms of Schwyz, was made jest of, and his symbol
the wooden box was even sold by auction. The bailiff may have done this, in
order to insult the Ghibellines in Lugano, who were of Swiss sympathies, rather
than the Schwyzers themselves; but, however this may
be, the incident roused the Forest cantons, which were already ill-disposed, to
a perfect transport of frenzy. They complained that "their honour had been
wounded, and that they must devise a means of saving it"; accordingly, in
September, 1511, they resolved, on their own initiative, to take the field
against the King, and to call upon their confederates to join them.
As,
in the year 1500, the affront given to the Orisons aroused all the Swiss
against the Emperor, in spite of the imperial party in their midst, so now even
the French party were obliged to obey this challenge, and prepare for war
against France, no longer for pay or because of the league with the Pope, but
on their own account, and without pay.
When,
then, in October, Schwyz once more earnestly called upon all members of the
Confederation, by virtue of the eternal alliance subsisting between them, to
take the field, the deputies of the others hurriedly presented themselves
before the assembly in that town, in the hope of being able to appease it. But
they were not successful. Schinner was not there; the very moment he had been
made Cardinal by the Pope, he had been obliged to fly from his country-men to
Italy, where in disguise, and after many risks, he arrived, and passed through
the midst of his enemies to Venice. Here, he received 20,000 guilders from the
Signoria and found means to despatch a goodly portion of it to his friends in
the Confederation. Instead of calming the excited feelings of the people, the deputies
themselves were carried away. They promised to make the cause of the Schwyzers their cause, and to stake lives and property for
their sake. But their masters at home who had sent them did not change their
minds. The assembly was again reminded that the winter had arrived; the St.
Gotthard was high and the passes narrow, and how was it possible to pay for
provisions on the Italian side? The Emperor might meanwhile follow up his
threat and attack. But all to no purpose. The assembled community declared for
war: "they would find the King and punish him" and they despatched
their letters of summons to the other cantons. They then provided themselves
with provisions and arms; one after another they all took the field.
Thus
began a new war, the central figure in which was Julius. The despatch of money
through Schinner appears to have been his work; and it was also his plan that
the Spaniards at the same time, on the and of
November, set out for Naples. As the French had retired from Treviso from fear
of the Swiss, and the Germans were too weak to undertake the siege alone, the
ruin of the Venetians was stayed; they were even enabled themselves to advance
through the country. It would perhaps have been better had the Confederates
awaited their advance and their arrival on the Po. But they could not be
restrained.
On
the 14th of November, 1,500 Schwyzers began the
ascent of the St. Gotthard with the standard, under which they had vanquished
Charles of Burgundy, and which they had never since unfolded. They were
immediately followed by Peter Falk with 500 Freiburgers
and some artillery. It was the first artillery that the St. Gotthard had yet
seen. Gunners from Lucerne brought it over the lake, and oxen of Uri along the
bridle-path from Fliielen; thence, with the
assistance of the ammans of Urseren,
they carried it in their arms across the heights! How the French on Lake
Maggiore were terrified when they heard the first salvos!
Schwyzers and Freiburgers
were the most zealous in the Papal cause, and now, without a moment's pause,
they marched into the enemy's country. Four Freiburgers
swam across the Tresa, in the face of a number of
French arquebusiers, and threw a bridge across the river. It was not until
Varese, where the plain begins, that they awaited the troops from Uri,
Unterwalden, and Schaffhausen, and the rest only in Gallarate, where the French
hommes d'armes were in force, and in
advantage. They then pursued the enemy, "with all hands," as the
chroniclers say, as far as the hazel-trees of Milan. Now was the time for the
Spaniards and Venetians to make their onslaught. But the former were too far
off, and the latter were occupied in retaking their castles from the
Imperialists. The Swiss, without horse and cannon in the face of a strongly
fortified city, their first onslaught repulsed with severe loss, disheartened
at the weather for the winter was wet rather than cold and they had been rained
upon for four whole days and nights without provisions or money, and in a state
of perplexity respecting Bern, were seized with what the Italians called the
German mania, and which their chroniclers can only compare with a sudden rush
of water from the hills a cataract which forces a channel for itself, and
breaks its force against a rock, then turns, perchance, and bursts away in an
opposite direction, until by nature and circumstances it is restored to its
right course. They now conceived the idea of turning back, and coming again
later in greater strength. In their frenzy, they made their way home with fire
and devastation; those from the Forest cantons leading the way. In the morning,
they fired their bivouac; before them, behind them, and for miles on either
side the villages were in flames. Thus they made their way from the
hazel-bushes of Milan back to the mill of Bellinzona; even in Mesocco they burnt the castles of Trivulzio; thence they
rushed home across the mountains, still full of fury, saying that it was owing
to them that the French had come to Italy, and through them they should retire
again. They returned to their cottages and awaited the coming of the spring.
Then,
and not till then, came the Spaniards and Venetians. They made their attacks
simultaneously in different places. On the 25th of January, 1512, the
Venetians, summoned by Luigi Avogaro, made their
appearance before Brescia, and, in the dusk of the evening of the 26th, the
Spanish arquebusiers, with the Gozadini and Pepuli, the old enemies of the Bentivogli, commenced the
siege of Bologna. But, on this occasion, neither force was successful. They
repeatedly renewed their attacks. On the 1st of February, Pedro Navarra sprung
the mines which he had bored under the houses of Bologna, and his Spaniards
stormed. They were met by the counter-mines of Gabriel von Sulz, and the
overpowering fumes of kindled brushwood, so that Bologna was still safe. The
Venetians, who bombarded Brescia with their whole force, were more successful
on the 2nd. Some with ropes, and others by tunnelling, succeeded in effecting
an entrance: the people then rose and Brescia felL
Crema, Cremona, and Bergamo declared for their old masters. In France, when
this news was first received, Milan was considered to be lost. Yet the army did
not intend to give it up.
Gaston
de Foix, the King's nephew, led the army. He was a youth at the age when
youthful bloom is passing into riper manhood; the down of youth was still on
his cheeks; his eye fired whenever he laid hand on his sword; he drew it, as he
said, in love of his lady, whose colours, green and white, he wore round his
arm. At Reggio, he heard of the loss of Brescia and the peril of Bologna; he
did not long hesitate, but sought the strongest enemy, and, on the 4th of
February, entered through the Porta San Felice. The Spaniards, as soon as they
heard of his arrival, fell back upon the Idice. After
having strengthened the garrison, so as to be certain of success, he turned
about at once, forced by surprise the approaches of Mantua, and drove the
Venetians, who opposed him, into the hands of the Germans, who were advancing
from Verona to meet him. By the 17th of February he was in the castle of
Brescia - it is called the Falcon of Lombardy, and is certainly high enough and
menacing enough to deserve this name - determined with his French and Germans
from this point of advantage to take the city lying beneath him.
On
the morning of the 18th, two companies of soldiers formed in the castle yard;
in the gate the vanguard of volunteers, consisting of Germans under Fabian and Spet, Gascons, and some hommes d'armes
with short lances with long blades; further behind them the others, both
Germans, who, at the word "to conquer the city or die," lifted up
their hands as a sign of their good will, and cut notches in the pikes which
long usage had worn smooth, and French. When, then, the citizens below,
declining to listen to the repeated summons to surrender, gathered together for
resistance at the sound of the bell, Gaston led the attack upon them with the
cry of "Forward, in the name of God and St. Denis!" All the trumpets
sounded.
Whilst
the Venetians, after their first ineffective fire, were again loading their
muskets, the vanguard succeeded in descending the narrow path in single file;
then, uniting their force, they made an onslaught upon the cathedral of S.
Florian and the entrenchments of the Brisignels. Bayard, who had forced his way
amongst the Venetians, made the greatest impression. Gritti cried: "Let us
vanquish this Bayard and the victory is ours". and he was in fact severely
wounded; but the assault was not thereby stayed. The cathedral and the cannon
were taken. The advance guard pursued the Brisignels through the citadel to the
very gate of the city: they alone had decided the day. When the rest of their
force arrived on the spot, and the gate of the city was opened, the Venetians saw
the cannon directed against their close ranks in the streets and they thereupon
let down the drawbridge at the Porta S. Nazzaro for flight, as they thought,
whilst it was really for destruction, for 500 lances were concealed without and
now rushed in. The ensuing struggle was more like a massacre than a fight. In
the narrow streets, their light horses availed the Stradioti
nothing, nor the heavy-armed their stout armour. They were all alike cut down.
Only Avogaro, although he threw himself into the midst
of the enemy, was not slain; his horse fell with him; he was made prisoner and
saved for a worse death. Gritti was also taken. In all the houses the hideous
scenes of war and pillage were enacted; the booty was carried off in 3,500
waggons.
Thus
were the attacks of the Swiss, Spaniards, and Venetians successively repulsed,
and Gaston triumphant: he next resolved to go in search of the Spanish knights,
whom he had been told it was a pleasure to behold, all in gold and azure, with
their horses completely covered with mail armour. With them he now thought of
contesting for the prize of valour.
The
Council furnished him a special opportunity for advancing against them. It had
only been opened on the 5th of November in Pisa by the Cardinals; and on the
6th, Carvajal declared his readiness to remove it elsewhere. After the first
sittings, it was, in January, 1512, removed to Milan. Neither Maximilian nor
Florence, nor even Flanders, although it was subject to Louis, sent any
prelate. The Cardinals had been unwelcome in Pisa, and in Milan their presence
was utterly ignored; but after Gaston's victories they were more courageous.
They sneered at the Pope, released Bologna and Ferrara from his ban, and sent
two envoys, one to Avignon, and the other to Bologna: "for it was seemly
that the whole temporal possessions of the Church should be in their
hands." Now Louis, who most particularly avoided the appearance of waging
war in his own name with the Church, in March availed himself of this pretext,
and, in the name of the Council rather than in his own, despatched his nephew
accompanied by the legate, to the territory of the Church; he had with him what
was for those times a powerful army, consisting of 1,800 lances, 900 light
cavalry and 15,000 infantry.
The
Spaniards were not inclined to fight. Their King wrote to them: "Three
things about which he was negotiating, must come about: the English invade
France; the Swiss again attack Milan; and the Emperor conclude peace with
Venice; each of which events was by itself capable of annihilating the French.
It would be better for the Pope to conquer late than to lose quickly".
Only they would not entirely abandon the country.
From
the Apennines six important streams run down to the sea, the Silaro, the Santerno, the Senio,
the Lamone, the Montone, and the Ronco, all reaching Ravenna in the plain. They
all intersect the country in the same direction. The Spaniards resolved to make
use of these for the purposes of resistance. They could either be defended
below, and this course was advised by Fabrizio Colonna, general of the cavalry,
but in that case the road across the Apennines to Tuscany, and possibly to Rome
itself, would be open to the enemy, or above; and the latter plan found favour
with Pedro Navarra, captain of the foot, an enemy of Colonna, whose proud title
angered him, but Ravenna would in the latter case be in danger. Navarra gained
his point here, as he always did. Their first encampment was at Castel S.
Pietro, on the first of those rivers. As soon as Navarra perceived that the
French crossed lower down the stream, he broke up the camp; at Imola he found
that the French pursued similar tactics; they crossed the second, third, and
fourth rivers, and Navarra always entrenched himself ready to receive the
enemy; finally, the French swerved to the left from the Montone towards
Ravenna, and on Good Friday, the 9th of April, 1512, they attacked the city. In
Ravenna the Spaniards had their magazines, and they could not allow the city to
be lost; on the same Good Friday they advanced with their whole force between
the Lamone and the Ronco down towards the city. The French attack was
unsuccessful. On Easter Eve, the armies confronted each other.
It
was on Easter Day, at the hour when the rest of Christendom was waiting for the
rising of the sun, before saluting each his fellow, when a herald of the
Viceroy and Spanish commander-in-chief, Ramon de Cardona, had an interview with
Gaston on the canal, which joined the Montone and the Ronco, and now separated
both the armies. "Shall we fight today?" asked Cardona; Gaston
replied: "If you will, we are ready". They both then broke asunder
the white staves, which they held in their hands as a sign of peace, and rode
back. Gaston came to his captains; he said: "If fortune favours us, we
will praise it, if not, God's will be done"; he shared with them the bread
and the bottle of wine, which he still had; they vowed to live and die with
him.
Gaston
sat on horseback, arrayed in the arms of Foix and Navarre: his coat of mail
only extended as far as the elbow of his right arm, and from there to the wrist
he wore the colours of his lady. The Bastard of Chimay
warned him and said that an old seer at Carpi had prophesied the death of one
of the commanders; the blood-red sunrise meant death for either Gaston or
Cardona; but he answered: "I will go into the battle."
Whilst
they were thus riding along the canal, they perceived Pedro de la Paz and some
others of the enemy on the other side. "You appear to be amusing
yourselves until this fine game begins," said Bayard. "Is it
you?" asked Pedro, "then is your camp stronger by fully 2,000 men. If
we could only amuse ourselves with you in peace! But who is the noble prince,
whom I see among you?" "It is the Prince of Foix". Gaston de
Foix was the brother of Queen Germaine. The Spaniards dismounted and saluted
him. "My lord," said Pedro, "saving our master's service, we are
at your disposal."
Meanwhile,
Jacob von Ems stood in the midst of the landsknechts, and addressed them thus:
"Dear brothers, the French this day place their hopes upon you. You
cannot, however, place your hopes upon anyone except yourselves; for know this well, if you do not defeat the enemy, you will
never escape from the peasants. Be steadfast in the fight! Think of victory or
death!" And then he led them, after each had vowed to God to fast the
ensuing Saturday on bread and water, across the bridge over the canal. "I
would rather lose an eye," said the captain of the French infantry, Molart, "than that they should go before us", and
dashed with his soldiers through the water. They advanced against the enemy's
centre, Alfonso of Ferrara with his cannon and La Palice
with 800 lances supporting their flank. Behind them, at a short interval, came
Gaston and the main body.
The
Spanish camp was protected on the right, where the cavalry were posted, by the
canal, and on the left, where the infantry was drawn up, by a ditch, and a
little further away by a dyke. In front of his infantry, Navarra had, besides,
two ditches; some little distance behind these, were posted his two-wheeled
carts, upon which were mounted iron contrivances, long and pointed, and curved
on the sides like sickles, and close by, a goodly number of mounted arquebuses
and culverins.
It
was for Gaston's army to drive the enemy from this strong position. On their
left, on the dyke, Alfonso planted his artillery, while Ives d'Allegre mounted his on their right, on the other side of
the canal. Navarra's infantry having thrown themselves flat on the ground, it
happened that the balls thrown by both fell entirely among Fabrizio's knights.
Their stout armour did not protect them; they fell in thirties and forties; the
foremost and hindmost closed up and spoke among themselves; Fabrizio at last
shouted, "Shall we all perish for the sake of a traitor?" The
Spaniards cried, "God slays us, let us fight with men". With the
shout, "Espana and St. Iago with the horse!" they advanced against
the foe. On seeing this, Gaston said, "Now, Sirs, let us now see what ye
will do for France and my lady," and closed up with La Palice.
All cried, "France, France!" and the cavalry battle, their fine art,
commenced. Meanwhile the infantry, in obedience to Gaston's orders to halt
until he gave the signal, stood still; but Navarra's arquebuses and culverins
wrought deadly havoc; two of the chief leaders, Molart
and Freiberg, who were sitting together over a bottle, were both killed by one
ball. Many distinguished captains, subaltern officers, and common soldiers
fell; at last they would no longer stand still and endure this fire. As they
surmounted the first ditch, which Navarra had dug in front of him, Jacob von
Ems was hit. He exclaimed, "The King has been gracious to us, be
firm," and died. When they came to the second ditch, the Spaniards held
their pikes crossed to oppose them; whereupon Fabian von Schlaberndorf,
a man of great size and strength, clutching his pike crosswise, beat down six
or eight of the enemy's pikes, and opened a path. They forced their way to the
open space between the ditches and the carts; here Fabian and Johann Spet placed green wreaths on their heads, and advancing,
challenged the bravest of the Spaniards to mortal combat. Two came out to them.
Spet was, before the fray, laid low by a bullet, but
Fabian slew his opponent. At length, when they were close upon the arquebuses,
the Spaniards sprang to their feet, and the real infantry battle began. Spears
broke and swords snapped; some fought with fists, with clods of earth, and
teeth; sometimes one or other, fearing a cavalry attack on the flank, would
cry, "Back, ye Germans!" but the first line never moved; then fell
the powerful Fabian, Linser, the boldest man in the world, and many others. The
Spaniards frequently cried, "Victoria, Julius!" and it seemed
probable that they would be victorious. But Navarra's hopes were always doomed
to disappointment: the Germans remained unshaken.
But
at the same time Fabrizio and his horse, after a cavalry engagement of three
hours, felt that they were unequally matched with the French. Gaston himself
ran an enemy through the body; Bayard and La Palice
completed what the cannon had begun; the King's Guard used their iron firelocks
with effect upon the helmets of the enemy; the attack of the light cavalry was
repulsed by a short manoeuvre. Ramon de Cardona fled. The young Marquis of
Pescara did not forget his shield and the words "with or upon"
emblazoned on his standard; but his horse stumbled, and he was taken prisoner.
The legate of the Pope, Giovanni de' Medici, was led before the legates of the
Council. Fabrizio Colonna still defended himself, unknown, as he thought.
"Roman,"
said one to him, "yield to fate, and surrender to me."
"Dost
thou know me who art thou?"
"Alfonso
d'Este!"
"It
is well, no Frenchman"; he surrendered himself. The cavalry was completely
disorganized.
At
this juncture, Pondormy also with cavalry galloped
across Navarra's ditches, and attacked the infantry in the flank. Ives d'Allègre broke into Ramazotto's
company, in order to avenge the death of his son, whom they had killed in a
riot. Others came to the assistance of the Germans, who were with the
artillery. Navarra looked round, and saw that the battle was lost; he began to
beat a retreat, though in good order. Yet once again he made a desperate
onslaught upon the enemy, and was taken prisoner. This decided the day. Don
Diego Quinones lay wounded on the ground, and saw the horsemen dashing past
him. Half dead he raised himself, and inquired who had won the victory. He
heard, "The French", and parted dissatisfied from the world.
"Sir",
said Bayard to Gaston, who was covered with blood and brains, "are you
wounded?"
"No",
replied Gaston, "but I have wounded."
Bayard
answered, "Thank God, now leave the pursuit to others."
Whilst
they spoke, Gaston perceived the Bastard of Chimay:
"Well, Master, am I slain as you said?"
"Sir,
it is not yet over", was the answer. At that moment a musketeer came:
"Look, Sir, two thousand Spaniards are on the height". These
Spaniards had fought with some Gascons at a distance from the main battle, and,
after having defeated and pursued them, were now returning. Gaston again took
up his helmet: "Follow me, all who love me"; with twenty or thirty
men he rushed upon them; but there he found his death. It is, doubtless, sweet
for a young man, after glorious achievements, and in the midst of great
successes and hopes, to die, while yet free from the blame which later years
bring only too easily. Memory immortalizes youth. Gaston's horse fell, and he
defended himself on foot. Lautrec called to the Spaniards: "Spare him, he
is the brother of your Queen"; but no quarter was given. He was slain, and
thrown into the ditch: from chin to forehead he had fourteen wounds.
When
the French saw this, the joy of their victory was damped.
This
conflict is remarkable as having been the only one in history, where Italians
and Spanish, on the one side, opposed an alliance between Italians, Germans,
and French on the other, since Italians and Germans were later always united
with the Spaniards; and it is especially remarkable for the co-operation of
guns with the pikes of the infantry and the armour of the knights. The military
discipline of the French hommes d'armes, and
the stubborn resistance of the Germans bore off the victory.
The
French came to the Germans, who were still drawn up in line, and said:
"That is our artillery that you took from us in Naples, now give it back
to us. Will you not also go out for booty?" They answered: "We have
stood here, not for booty, but for glory and honour". They fell on their
knees and thanked God.
A
Spanish knight was the first to bring the news of the battle to Rome. The
Spanish ambassador at once shipped all his household goods on the Tiber; the
populace, summoned by some of the barons to liberty, closed their shops and
rose in revolt. Julius shut himself up in the Castle of St. Angelo, and wished
to leave Italy. Ferdinand, in anxiety for the peril of Naples, forgot his
principles, and again appointed the Great Captain commander-in-chief of the
forces in Italy.
Thus
the great war of the Pope, combined with the Venetians, Swiss, and Spaniards,
against the French and Germans, had completely failed. Other forces must needs
be summoned to take part in it.
2.
FORMATION OF A NEW LEAGUE. THE SITUATION AND COALITION OF
ENGLAND
At
this time, with perhaps the exception of the French, there was no nation more subject
to its King than the English. The numbers of the nobles had become thinned in
the ruinous struggle between the rival houses of York and Lancaster, and, when
one party triumphed, in the fresh rivalries which ensued between its members.
Comines computes that eighty scions of the blood royal were, as far as he could
ascertain, slain in these wars. King Edward IV in his battles cried: "Slay
the lords; but spare the people!" At length, Henry VII was conveyed in a
covered carriage to London to be crowned, and had almost all the rest of the
Yorkists imprisoned in the Tower, or put to death; not even sparing the man,
whose secession at the decisive hour had alone procured him victory and the
Crown. Hereupon he limited the clergy's right of sanctuary, so far subjected
the cities, that their liberties, without his Chancellor's confirmation, were a
dead letter, and brought the peasants, after they had thrice risen in arms
against him, to a more and more unquestioning obedience. The organs of liberty
the tribunals and parliament were subservient to him. His councillors in the
Star Chamber dealt with murder, robbery, and every apparent attempt at
insurrection. His financial agents, Empson and Dudley, made use of the
conflicting laws of the realm, given by conflicting powers, to hold, by means
of fines payable for every transgression of the law, both the nation in
obedience and the King in funds. But his Parliaments following the precedent
established in the civil wars, that each victor formed one of his own party, which
was rather an organ of the supreme power, than an organ of the people were from
the first entirely subservient to him. The first consisted exclusively of men
who had been condemned by former parliaments. Another parliament chose Dudley
for its Speaker.
This
obedience was Henry VII's internal safeguard; the external lay in his
relationships. We have already seen that he married his daughter to the King of
Scotland and his son Arthur to Katherine. Arthur having died before, as is
believed, he was able to consummate the marriage, Katherine, much as she wished
to escape from these hard hearts, her father and father-in-law, was compelled
to remain, because through her each thought himself surer of the other. But
Henry was not yet contented. By another alliance, the betrothal of Charles of
Austria with his daughter Mary, he united himself with the Austro-Spanish
house.
This
English prince, with his few hairs, few teeth, and a face that no painter would
envy, parsimonious, and studying his advantage more than his reputation, whose
servants were mere tools, left, in 1509, his realm to his son, who was in the
first bloom of his youth, who could wield the two-handed sword and the
battle-axe as deftly as he could play the flute and spinet, lavish by nature,
in urgent need of a favourite, and eager for honour and glory.
Yet
being one flesh and blood they both went the same way. Although Henry VIII bore
the red and white rose on his scutcheon, he put to death Suffolk and
Buckingham, the old servants of the House of York, whose lives his father had
spared. To put to death the financial agents was, at all events, as violent a
deed on the part of the son as their employment had been on the part of the
father. His first favourite, Wolsey, who used the whole lustre of his archbishopric
and his dignity as Papal legate to bring the clergy into submission, and
subordinated all the bureaucracy to the Chancellorship, which he also held,
procured him all the essential advantages of supremacy, without the name.
Parliament continued to vote what he wished, and, as he said to an opponent,
"Man, tomorrow my bill or thy head passes". The whole manner and
method of his father was his also; only he brought them to bear still more
inconsiderately and more rapidly.
He
also based his foreign policy upon his relationships. His object was not merely
to secure his own position, but to procure for the great league, to which he
belonged, the ascendency in Europe; and herein he proceeded with more energy
and passion than his father had done.
At the
very outset, immediately after his marriage with the Spanish Katherine, he
found himself, through her, allied to Ferdinand, and, through his sister Mary,
to Charles and Maximilian. In the year 1511, he sent aid to both; to the first
against the Moors, and to the other against Gelderland; and as long as they
enjoyed it, he also had peace with France. In July, 1510, his envoys swore to
the old treaties with Louis. But when, in October, 1511, Ferdinand entered into
a league with the Pope against France, matters wore a different complexion.
One
important result of the League of 1495 was, as we have seen, the formation of
the great Austro-Spanish alliance. At the present time, it was Ferdinand's plan
to found in the same manner a new league, which, in name and pretext, should be
in the interests of the Pope, but which, in fact, should work still more for
the future greatness of his house.
But
the foundation of all was the reconciliation between Ferdinand and Maximilian.
After the long feud respecting Castile, Mercurino Gattinara was, of all Maximilian's councillors, the first
to arrive at the conviction that this reconciliation was the greatest need of
his master. How was it that the campaign against Padua had failed? Was it not
because Ferdinand had sent the Venetians supplies? In order to renew the old
understanding, he betook himself to Spain; and here, after at last abandoning
Maximilian's claim to a direct administration of Castile, which could never be
obtained, and, by contenting himself with an arrangement, whereby Ferdinand
assured the succession in his realms to their common grandson Charles, he
brought about the reconciliation, and restored the old alliance and the natural
friendship between the two potentates. Since then, Ferdinand busies himself again
with the affair of Gelderland, and the Emperor in German state papers devises
war against the Moors.
Ferdinand's
next scheme was to draw the King of England and the Emperor, his nearest
relatives, into his war. He first succeeded with King Henry. When Louis invited
the latter to take part in the Council of Pisa, the answer was given by the
fact, that the King, whilst the French ambassador was speaking, leant on the
shoulder of the Spanish envoy, Luis Carroz. The
league between Ferdinand and the Pope was concluded in the presupposition that
Henry would join it. Henry hoped that the Pope would give him the title of
"the most Christian king", and on the 4th of February, 1512, he
despatched his plenipotentiaries to the Lateran Council. He hoped, if not to restore
the greatness of the former English kings in France, at all events to unite Guienne to his royal standard; and for this purpose, his
parliament, which assembled on the same day, voted him a benevolence. He
granted privileges for zealous captains, and punishments for the dishonest. One
of his motives, perhaps, was that his house, owing to the betrothal of Mary to
Charles, had a claim to Naples, which Ferdinand represented as being in danger;
and the five and a half millions which his father had left him gave him support
and confidence. Suffice it to say, he entered into the League, and promised to
maintain the sea from the Thames to le Trade. In the winter, he sent two
messages to Louis, one about Guienne, and one on
behalf of the Pope. But as both were to no purpose, he declared war, and made
common cause with Ferdinand; he agreed to supplement 8,000 Spanish infantry
with 8,000 English arquebusiers, but to pay the cavalry jointly with him;
whatever was conquered should belong to him whose forefathers had possessed
it.
Henry
having now made his decision, both parties solicited the alliance of
Maximilian. When, in August, 1511, Julius was lying sick unto death, Maximilian
entertained a hope of becoming Pope himself. "He required 300,000 ducats
to gain over the cardinals; and to raise this sum he would sacrifice his four
chests full of jewels, and his feudal apparel. He had no higher ambition".
Both parties entertained the same idea, even after Julius had recovered. The
schismatic cardinals encouraged Maximilian, urging him only to come to Italy;
there there were at his service 200 lances of Louis',
the power of the Sanseverino of Mantua and Ferrara, as well as the prestige of
the Council; the Pope would then be deposed, and he himself, if he desired it,
be elected in his stead. Naples, they urged, was also open to him. On the other
hand, Ferdinand reminded him that "friendship with the present Pope, and
not enmity, was essential, if he wished to become his successor."
We
do not learn precisely when and why Maximilian abandoned this scheme, which was
much too ambitious to be able to be realized; but, as he was allied with
Ferdinand, nothing permanent could be done with regard to it so long as Julius
was alive. Other matters were nearer his heart.
It
had ever been his intention to conquer the Milanese and Venetian territory. But
the one scheme really excluded the other, for he could not subdue the one
without the assistance of the other. Ferdinand disclosed to him a way of
attaining both objects successively: first of all, the conquest of Milan for
Charles, their grandson (it would pass for the time being into the hands of
Maximilian through the League); for this purpose, a truce to be made with
Venice, who would then give her assistance; finally, an attack upon Venice
itself. Julius was already so deeply entangled in the net of this family, that
he agreed to whatever suited them. The Venetians declined to abandon Verona and
Vicenza entirely, and in exchange for Treviso and Padua to acknowledge the
Archduke Charles as suzerain, as the Emperor demanded; but the Pope, having
gathered from a secret letter of Louis, which, though the words were crossed
out, was still legible, that an alliance between the King and the Republic was
to be apprehended, lost no time in bringing about a truce between the Emperor
and Venice, which left to both parties what they possessed, and procured for
the Emperor, to begin with, a sum of 40,000 ducats.
Thus,
and owing also to the disturbances in Gelderland, which had recommenced, it came
about that the Emperor joined the League. At the very moment that he forsook
Louis, his Germans had gained a victory for the King. It is true that, shortly
before the battle of Ravenna, a certain rumour as to this truce came to them
from the enemy's camp; but this indefinite information was kept secret and had
no influence upon their courage and their success. Venice also recognized the
Lateran Council.
3.
THE CONQUEST OF MILAN
Three
things had been foretold to his army by Ferdinand, and two had already
happened: England was involved in war with France, and the Emperor had made
peace with Venice. In the days of the battle of Ravenna, the third was also
realized: the invasion of Milan by the Swiss.
On
that Good Friday on which Gaston stormed Ravenna and the Spaniards went forth
to battle, the bitterest foes of the French, coming from all the cantons of the
Confederation, assembled in Baden, and resolved, even singlehanded, to begin
the war against the French. Each man of them was to announce the fact of their
decision to his lords and superiors, and beg them for powder and muskets. The
following Saturday week, they were to meet in Livinen,
and, in God's name, advance against their enemies. Neither the Diesbachs of Bern, who had mocked at Cardinal Schinner in a
carnival play, nor yet those private individuals who had promised the French
peace, in consideration of a sum of only 60,000 guilders, were able to cope
with such a great rising of the people, and withstand the indignation of the
Forest cantons; and even Jürg uff der Flue negotiated
at Milan in vain. The papal party had been encouraged by new promises of
temporal and spiritual favours, and the imperial party also had come over to
them, in consequence of Maximilian's new attitude. On that Saturday after
Easter, the 19th of April it was inevitable the Swiss with the banners of their
cities and lands, and fully accoutred with arms and armour, sallied forth to
aid the Pope. Their envoys were despatched to the various courts; some,
instructed as it would seem, by the French party, repaired to Louis:
"Why," they asked, "had he taken from them the subsidy which
their poverty demanded, in return for which they had made France twice as great
as it had been; but it often happened that God, through the instrumentality of
despised creatures, broke the pride that was displeasing to him". Others
were sent to the Emperor. The Emperor said: "Both Italian and German Tyrol
was open to them; the future prince of Milan should pay them 300,000 ducats
immediately, and 30,000 ducats annually." On the 6th of May, the Swiss set
out, in greater numbers and better equipped than ordinarily. They were under
the command of a commander-in-chief, Jacob Stapfer, a
chief master of ordnance, and a provost-marshal, to whom the soldiers from all
the various cantons swore obedience. In all the taverns in the Tyrol, they
found bread and wine; at Trent their captains, whilst seated at a meal in the
bishop's garden, heard the plans of the Emperor. At Verona, they received a hat
and sword, a consecrated banner, and, moreover, each man, as first payment, a
ducat, from the hand of their Cardinal.
They
came just at the right moment for the Pope. Encouraged by the victory of
Ravenna, Louis' Council had, at its eighth sitting, declared the Pope now and
hereafter suspended from all Papal authority; but, after the loss of its
commander-in-chief and so many brave men in the battle, the French army was not
by any means strong enough to give effect to such a sentence. La Palice, upon whom the command had devolved, was obliged to
content himself with holding his strongholds in the Romagna. But, on the 3rd of
May, after passing the night in the Lateran Church, Julius also opened his
Council there, in order, as he said, to weed out the thorns from the field of
the Lord. On the 2nd, the Viceroy Cardona, who had fled without halting from
Ravenna to the Abruzzi, again started from Naples, in order, with the troops
that were left and with fresh forces from Sicily, to make a new attack upon the
French. On this occasion the plan was, to mass together in one camp the four
armies, to wit, the Papal army, which had been organized under the Duke of
Urbino, the Spanish, the Venetian, and the Swiss. At Valeggio,
the Swiss actually joined forces with the Venetian cavalry and artillery; they
were resolved, even if their way led through the midst of the enemy, to find
the two other armies. How was La Palice to cope with
such a hostile demonstration? For, since the English in the same month of May
had sailed to Fuenterrabia and, not content with
throwing an army upon the Bidassoa, were harassing
the coast of Brest, and since, moreover, a great joint attack by English and
Spanish upon Guienne had also been announced, King
Louis was more inclined to recall his hommes d'armes
from Milan, than to send others thither. But it was still uncertain which of
the two Councils, that of the King of France, or that of the Pope, would gain
the upper hand.
Two
events caused matters to come to a speedier issue than could have been
anticipated. First, the Swiss intercepted a letter from La Palice,
which was to the effect that he would scarcely be able to hold the field
against a strong army. As soon as this letter had been translated to his
comrades by the Freiburg captain, they were unanimous in their decision, not to
advance to the Po to join their friends, as they had originally intended, but
to march forthwith to the Oglio and attack the enemy,
and to rest not a night on the way, save out of necessity; for in three or four
days the battle must be fought. The second event was really the decisive one.
We remember that the King of France vanquished Ludovico Sforza by withdrawing
his landsknechts, and sending the Swiss upon him. Curiously enough, he was
overcome by the same means with which he had formerly conquered. The Swiss were
in the field against him: on the 4th of June, strict orders were received from
Maximilian, addressed to the landsknechts who had striven and conquered for him
at Ravenna, that their captains, lieutenants, corporals, and privates should
leave the French camp from that very moment. Now they were not in the Emperor's
pay, but in the King's, but these landsknechts were either Tyrolese, and thus
the immediate subjects of the Emperor, or related to the Swabian league, and, as
such, also, more or less in subjection to him. Accordingly, when Burkhard von
Ems, Jacob's nephew, and Rudolf Hal, the captains of the landsknechts, came
into the council of war, which La Palice had summoned
to take counsel on the question of resistance, they declared in spite of all
the fair promises of the general, that they must obey the Emperor's orders,
and, on the 5th of June, begged the Confederation for safe conduct. Some were
for remaining six days longer, until the expiration of the term for which they
had bound themselves; and about eight hundred, probably North Germans and such
as had nothing at home to lose, resolved to try their fortune with the French
still longer.
Hereupon
La Palice, seeing himself deprived of his faithful
and victorious allies of Brescia and Ravenna, abandoned all idea of resistance,
and retreated from place to place. For one moment, Trivulzio entertained the
hope of being able to regain for Milan its old freedom, and he actually
succeeded in winning over the leading Ghibellines. But what could be expected
from these nobles, who only had a thought for their own immediate advantage. At
the very first disturbance of the social order, they broke disguised into the
houses of poor learned men and aged invalids, and forced them to give up their
savings, the hope of their latter years. Trivulzio,
like La Palice, abandoned all hope also, and left the
city. Whilst, then, the French were retiring from Ravenna before the Papal
army, and had in Bologna burnt the episcopal palace which they had occupied,
and retired from the city the Bentivogli never afterwards returned thither
Cremona surrendered to the Swiss, with the cry of "Giulio, Chiesa!"
and placed itself in the hands of the League. The Swiss advanced to Pavia. Here
they once more came upon a body of landsknechts. At first they met each other
with their old jests of the Rhine and Garigliano, instead of with arms. But at
last, when the French had retired, and the Swiss, invited by the citizens,
entered the city, the landsknechts, who also wished to retreat, were prevented
by the breaking of a bridge, and a desperate struggle ensued. The landsknechts
saw that they were doomed to die at the hands of their old enemies; they
accordingly first went and threw the money, which they carried in their sleeves
into the river, in order that their enemies should not profit by it; then they
fought, and were all slain. 1 Four days later, the French crossed Mont Cenis;
there was not a single city in the whole duchy that had not surrendered. Only
the castles still held out
Beyond
all doubt it exceeded the expectations of the League, that Milan had so rapidly
passed from the French hands, not into theirs, but into those of the Swiss.
When
Julius received the tidings, he read them through silently; he then drew
himself up and said to his master of the ceremonies, "Victorious, Paris,
we have been victorious". "May it be of service to your
Holiness," replied the latter, and knelt down. The Pope said, "May it
profit you and all Italians, and all the faithful whom God hath deigned to
deliver from the bondage of barbarians"; he then unfolded the letter and
read it through from beginning to end. Shortly after, the news arrived from
Genoa that his country was at last free; upon Gian Fregoso's arrival in Chiavia and upon receiving a letter from Matthaus Lang, the
French commander had fled to the Lanterna, his Swiss
guard had disbanded, and Gian had thereupon entered the city. Envoys from
Bologna arrived, plainly clothed, and without their golden chains, to implore pardon
of the Pope. Parma and Piacenza surrendered to him; he did not receive them as
new, but as old subjects, whom an accident two hundred and fifty years
previously had estranged from the Church.
Alfonso
d'Este also came under the protection of the Colonna to be liberated from his
ban and to appease his anger. Rome was ablaze with torches and feux de joie; the Pope presented an altar
cloth with the inscription, "Julius II after the liberation of
Italy," to the Church of St. Peter.
A great painting of Raphael has reference to these events. In the Camera
della Segnatura, he
represents Heliodorus, as the horse with the rider in gold mail prepares to
kick him at the moment when he is plundering the temple, whilst two avenging
angels hurl him down.
These,
beyond doubt, were the happiest days in the life of Pope Julius; after so much
exertion, danger, tribulation, and tears, his object was, as it appeared,
attained, his plan had succeeded, and his name was immortalized in the glory of
his great deeds.
He
owed the Swiss eternal gratitude, for it is evident that it was they who
rescued him at a single blow from his great spiritual and temporal danger. The
other members of the League were not so happy; both Ferdinand and Maximilian
had expected quite a different issue. Ferdinand only made use of the victory,
to stay Gonzalvo's preparations. The army, which, in spite of this termination,
and against the Pope's express desire, he sent across the Tronto,
seemed to be intended for somewhat else than to serve the Pope.
4.
THE CONQUEST OF NAVARRE
At
first, this same Ferdinand did not turn his eyes towards Italy as much as he
did towards the French frontier, where the Marquis of Dorset had make his
appearance with 8,000 English auxiliaries that is towards Navarre.
In
those days, the kingdom of Navarre comprised the valleys and hills, fruitful
and barren, which extend on both sides of the Pyrenees, on the one side from
the Ebro, on the other from the Nive, up to the snowy heights of the mountain
chain. On both sides, the cattle were driven to the Alduidos
to pasture: herds might be seen all the way from the Ebro valley as far as the
church of S. Iago hard by St. Jean-Pied-de-Port. Every loss caused by robbery
was made good by the district in which it had happened, even across the hills.
Now this kingdom had for a long time been imperilled on both sides. In France,
Louis defended the rights of Gaston de Foix, who was as much the grandson of
old Gaston, King of Navarre, as the possessor of the throne, Catherine, was his
granddaughter. She had made her husband, Jean d'Albret,
king of the country. On the Spanish side, Ferdinand, in opposition to this King
and his adherents, the Grammonts, took the part of
Count Lerin, the head of the Beaumonts; the Count had
once been one of the most powerful vassals, a man, who had to be allowed to
ignore the King's express invitations; but he had been driven out, and was now
a fugitive in Andalusia. Moreover, King Louis was suzerain of one part of the
territory of Navarre; in the remaining portion, all the alcaldes had sworn
allegiance to Ferdinand; he held five strongholds in the land, and had even the
King's daughter in his keeping. Many years before this, there lived and reigned
in Navarre a King, Sancho the Wise; this monarch had emblazoned on his coat of
arms two lions, both pulling at a golden band, which they held in their teeth;
this device represented Castile and Aragon struggling for Navarre. The relation
of Spain and France to this country was analogous. At the beginning of the year
1512, Ferdinand, in order to secure himself against attack on the part of Louis
XII as a result of his concerted co-operation with the Pope against him in
Italy, demanded of the alcaldes that they should renew their oath of
allegiance, requiring besides the surrender of the prince into his keeping, and
three additional fortresses. It was just at the time that Gaston attained every
day to greater renown in Italy, and had additional claims to the gratitude of
Louis, to which he could only give effect by defending his rights to Navarre.
Gaston's death was the good fortune of the sovereigns of Navarre. They
immediately allied themselves with France, summoned the Estates of their realm
from both sides of the mountains, obtained assistance, and prepared to resist
the claims of Ferdinand and his English allies.
Now
it was either an idle tale that was spread abroad, or it was an actual fact,
that a secretary of the King of Navarre had been stabbed in the house of his
paramour, and that the priest, who was called in to offer consolation, found on
him the copy of a treaty, by which Louis pledged himself to restore the old
frontier of Navarre against Castile, and sent it to Ferdinand. This enabled the
latter to gain over Cardinal Ximenes and a part of the nation for his
undertaking. He declared that he had long had in his possession a bull putting
under ban the King of Navarre, who was as much a schismatic as the French
sovereign, to whom he was lending his support; he commanded the Duke of Alva,
who had gathered a great army at Vitoria, under the pretence of joining the
English, not to combine with these latter but to advance upon Pamplona.
Jean
was not yet ready, and no Frenchman was at hand, when the Duke of Alva appeared
in the narrow gorge which divides the valleys of Biscay from those of Navarre.
His muskets easily dispersed the 600 Roncalese who
defended the pass. Don Luis, Count of Lerin, marched at the head of the
Spaniards. The whole party of the Beaumonts rose in
his favour, and the cities, which had once belonged to him, received him with
jubilation. On the fifth day, the army was eight leagues from the city upon the
heights which form the Cuenca, that is, the basin of Pamplona. Jean d'Albret was a king who went twice or three times daily to
mass, and who would dance with a peasant woman and eat with a citizen; but he
was not made for war and danger. He said, "Better be in the hills than a
prisoner," and fled; two days later, his consort also fled away. She said,
"Jean d'Albret you were born, and Jean d'Albret you will die. Had I been King and you Queen, we
should not have lost this kingdom." On the 25th July, 1512, Pamplona
surrendered to the Spaniards, and Alva guaranteed its general and special
franchises and immunities; this done, with the exception of a few castles
belonging to the Grammonts, and the valleys of
Roncal, the whole of the kingdom lying on this side was reduced. On the loth of
September, Alva crossed the Pyrenees, and on the same day took St. Jean.
The
English saw with astonishment how the French war, which they had come out to
fight, resolved itself into a conquest of Navarre for Spain. Bayonne lies more
than twenty miles from St. Jean, and the former city they could, at all events,
at once attack with combined forces. "But not to Bayonne," wrote
Ferdinand, "where the battlements bristle with guns; before you there lies
the open and unprotected country." The Marquis of Dorset, who was annoyed
at this constant hesitation and delay, replied that, "his orders were to
go against Bayonne, and not against the open country; he would not approach the
Spaniards by a single inch." His King was sooner overpersuaded than he
himself. But before any other arrangement could be come to, a mutiny among his
troops compelled the Marquis to retreat.
Yet,
without their assistance, Ferdinand understood how to defend his conquest Alva
was still at St. Jean, when, in November, 1512, d'Albret
succeeded, with French assistance, in penetrating into the kingdom through the
denies; closing them behind him, he began the siege of Pamplona with every
prospect of success. But Alva, making his way by paths little known, arrived at
Pamplona in the nick of time, and held out there, until fresh auxiliary forces
from Spain showed themselves on the heights of Cuenca. Then d'Albret
retired, and the peasants, who had come to buy and load their waggons with the
plunder of the city, returned dissatisfied homewards. And now Ferdinand brought
the whole of Navarre on this side of the Pyrenees, 800 pueblos, entirely into
his power; the high chain of mountains formed an admirable frontier. Further,
the territory on the other side, was never again united with it, and the whole
memory of the old connexion entirely disappeared, leaving scarcely a trace. The
conquered land desired the Aragonese and allodial
law; but it only received the laws of Castile and vassal rights. It retained
its Cortes. The Procurators of the twenty-three cities held a sitting before
the canopy of the throne, to settle the Servicio;
only under the canopy there sat, not their King, but a representative of the
King of Spain. This also had become part of the great inheritance of Austria
and Spain and of the great feud between this house and France.
5.
REVOLUTION IN FLORENCE. OTHER SUCCESSES IN ITALY
In
July, 1512, Navarre was conquered, and in November defended; midway between
both these events, in September, the Austro-Spanish house succeeded in an
enterprise, which was perhaps of even greater influence upon international
relations.
We
have seen how the war, waged by Alexander's League some sixteen years
previously, turned, after the French had been driven from Italy, against their
principal supporters, the Popolari in Florence. While Louis was in Italy, these
Popolari had enjoyed extended influence under the chief man in the city, Piero
Soderini, who had been raised to the position of perpetual Gonfaloniere;
and, after Louis had been expelled, they still adhered to their old allegiance
to him. For a second time, a League, that of Pope Julius, now turned against them.
Pisa,
which, after indefatigable exertions, they had at length again subjected, was
their destruction. In four campaigns they laid siege to it, and put to death
one of their leaders, Paolo Vitelli, because he did not take it. For three
successive years, they came in May and ravaged the crops of the Pisans right up
to their walls; they even attempted to divert the course of the Arno, and
employed 80,000 labourers on the work; they spared no money in order to obtain
the sanction of the Kings of France and Spain to their undertaking. From podesteria to podesteria, and
from valley to valley, with the assistance of their citizen Machiavelli, they
formed military stations of native soldiery. At length, in the year 1.509, they
succeeded in their object. They had invested the city with three camps, and had
made the Arno impassable by a fortified bridge, and the Fiume Morto by piles
bound together under the water by iron bands. A famine broke out in the city,
which resulted in a quarrel between the citizens, who were for holding out
longer, and the country people, who violently demanded surrender. The latter
obtained the upper hand. On the 8th June, 1509, the Florentines again entered
Pisa. But the reconquest of the place did not bring good fortune and prosperity
to the Florentines. The name of Pisa, and the memory of an old Council in this
city, incited both King and Cardinals to urge the summoning of a new Council
there. The Florentines were under too deep an obligation to the King to be able
to refuse; but the fact that they, although unwillingly, acceded to this
demand, made the Pope their enemy. This was, as far as could be seen, the
principal reason for an attack upon them. In 1511, Julius appointed their great
enemy, Cardinal de' Medici, legate with his army; and now that they had
banished his Datario from their city, the Pope became
all the more the supporter of this Cardinal, who intended to avail himself of
the French reverse to make an attack upon Florence, and favoured his
plans.
Among
Lorenzo de' Medici's shrewd schemes, one of the shrewdest was the employment of
the prestige which he possessed as mediator of Italy to utilize the
ecclesiastical preferment of his son Giovanni in order to obtain the least
invidious and most certain enhancement of his house. When the Medici were
driven from Florence, Giovanni's benefices, consisting of a preceptorate,
a priory, a provostship, four canonries, six pastorates, fifteen abbeys, and an
archbishopric, were one of their chief supports. We do not find that Giovanni
either grossly neglected the original duties of these offices, or administered
them with any special zeal; it was his whole aim to live contentedly without
incurring blame, to make friends and gain respect, and at some future time to
restore his house to power. His face, as shown in Raphael's portrait, if
regarded hastily, displays but the pleasure and satiety seen in other
ecclesiastics of high rank; but if we regard it closer we are struck by an
expression of deep thought, purpose, and firm will. He had a comfortable and
pleasant way of living. It was also his wont to give way to other cardinals in
the slightest matters of contention; he jested or was serious, according to
their mood; he never dismissed their agents without their being able to tell
their principals that Cardinal de' Medici was their obedient and humble
servant. He proved to the Orsini in the chase that he was of their blood. His
palace was always full of music and song; here were gathered together the
models, drawings, and works of the painters, sculptors, and goldsmiths of Rome.
Scholars found there a library ever open to them. It contained the books of his
father Lorenzo; it gave him the greatest pleasure when he took up one and
studied it page by page. He then imagined he was earning the approbation of his
deceased father. For the rest, his humblest visitor left him convinced only of
his mildness and goodness.
His
life was not pretence; but it availed him quite as much as if it had been most
carefully studied. He won the hearts of all Florentines of his acquaintance.
Men of quality did not fear from him Piero's arrogance. There were often
assembled in Florence at that time, in the gardens of Cosimo Rucellai a man more qualified for scientific conversation
and poetic essays than for the service of his country young men of the Vettori,
Albizzi, Valori families, whom high birth, youth,
wealth, and the consciousness of an excellent education had made, one cannot
say otherwise, somewhat overbearing. They had read in Roman history of the
glories of the Optimates, and thus they styled themselves; they found out the
weak points of the Gonfaloniere and the Consiglio,
and mocked at them in masquerades. The good Soderini, meek and mild, did not
interfere; but they joined the party of Giovanni de' Medici, through whom they
hoped to attain greater influence.
The
Cardinal intended to make use of them to the advantage of his house, when he
summoned Ramon de Cardona to a campaign against Florence.
Cardona
came in August to Mantua, and negotiated there with Matthaus Lang, with
reference to the reorganization of Italy after the victory; the Medici promised
to pay his Spaniards, whilst Soderini refused Matthaus Lang the 100,000 ducats
which he demanded. Soderini was blamed for his action in this matter; but how
could Lang answer for the Spaniards? How could the Emperor, who, in 1509, had
guaranteed the position of Florence in return for a money payment, and who was
even then negotiating about it, be depended upon to alter it? Both Bishop and Viceroy
resolved upon the undertaking, in favour of the Medici.
Soderini
was a man who once demanded of the 300 priori, who had at various times been
under him, that they should say, whether he had ever preferred a personal
advantage to a public interest, and whether he had ever on any occasion
recommended his friends for a judicial post. He felt himself completely free
from all the passions of the Italian party leaders, and trusted the people
under him.
When
Cardona entered Tuscany, with the declaration that he was only coming against
Soderini, the latter summoned the Grand Council and remonstrated with them,
pointing out that he had gained his dignity by the will of the people, and not
by force and deceit; and should all kings in the world, united, try to persuade
him to lay down his office, he would not do so; he would only lay it down when
the people who had conferred it demanded it of him; he was in their hands, and
into their hands he surrendered himself. He urged them to go amongst their
Gonfalonieri and decide the matter. They separated, and returned declaring
their readiness to stake their lives and property for him.
After
this, Cardona found the Florentines more hostile than ever; their cities
resisted him, especially Prato, which he besieged. On one occasion, being in
straits, he declared his readiness to return, provided the affairs of the
Medici were left to the arbitration of King Ferdinand, when all of a sudden
everything was changed. Through a hole in the wall, which looked more like a
window than a breach, the Spaniards succeeded in entering Prato. They pillaged
it, as Brescia had been pillaged, and by their doings filled all Florence with
dismay. This first moment of dejection was turned to account by the followers
of Rucellai. The youths, to the number of thirty,
assembled under arms in the grand hall, and shouted at the door of the chamber
where the Signori were assembled, that, "they would tolerate the Gonfaloniere no longer". As though they possessed the
voice and the power of the people, they rushed forth, and bursting into Soderini's room, with the shout that "his life should
be safe, but that he must follow them", they tore him away with them. They
opened the prisons, wherein were some friends of the Medici, returned, forced
from the Signoria the deposition of Soderini, and compelled him to flee; and
before any terms had been agreed upon, they opened the gates to the Viceroy and
Giuliano de' Medici, a brother of Giovanni. A treaty was hereupon concluded,
the basis of which was the return of the Medici: between Ferdinand and Florence
and this is the vital point there should be, in respect of Naples, an alliance
for three and a half years, similar to that which had existed with Louis in
regard to Milan, and by virtue of which the Florentines must, under the Medici,
be as Spanish as, under the Popolari, they had been French.
This
arranged, Cardona left all internal matters to the Medici. At first, Giuliano
authorized a Gonfaloniere with limited powers, and,
following the advice of Rucellai's friends, a council
of the Optimates, and much liberty. But this was not agreeable to Giovanni.
Whilst yet outside the walls, he had determined with his followers on a
different policy, and, after entering the city, arranged also with the
Condottieri there; when morning broke, both parties rushed to the palace to the
cry of "Palle! Palle!" They first forced the Signoria to summon the
people to a parliament, and then, by the weak and servile voices of this
forcibly collected assembly, to commit the supreme power to a Balia of
fifty-five men. As soon as they were elected and assembled, a Medici carried
the standard before the Signoria up the steps of the Palazzo Pubblico. The fifty-five, with 200 others whom they had
joined with them, formed the Grand Council; a council of seventy, and a council
of a hundred was formed after the model of the old Lorenzo. At the discretion
of the Medici, new names were placed in the ballot boxes at all elections.
Suffice it to say, the supreme power returned again to the Medici, Giovanni,
Giuliano, and Lorenzo, Piero's son. The sbirro would often come up to two or
three citizens and ask "about what they were conversing"; among the
first malcontents and suspects, Machiavelli was arrested and imprisoned.
Now
the Popolari, though thus humbled, were so little suppressed as is shown by the
fact that they afterwards regained their strength and seized the supreme power
that they were only awaiting the arrival of the French to rise again; and thus
the Cardinal became bound to the Spanish cause against the French, not only out
of gratitude, not only owing to his alliance with Cardona, but owing to a
constant and perpetual interest. It must be confessed that this part of central
Italy had now come, beyond all question, into the power of the Austro-Spanish
house. Lucca was forced to enter the League. Siena received a garrison of 100
Spanish lances.
At
Mantua Cardona and Lang had resolved, after the Florentine undertaking, to
settle Milanese and Venetian affairs.
In
Milan they wished to appoint as prince, not the young Massimiliano Sforza, who
had at length, after an exile of fourteen years in Regensburg and the
Netherlands, arrived at man's estate, but the Archduke Charles. This proposal
was repeatedly brought before the Swiss during August and September: there
should be paid them for their expenses 300,000 ducats and 50,000 ducats yearly
subsidy; for the present, Sforza was not allowed to return to Italy.
The
Venetian dispute was to be fought out as soon as the truce expired. Cardona would
not be kept back with his troops, and replied to all objections, that he was
captain-general of the League. Brescia, before being taken by the French, had
always belonged to Venice; but this did not prevent Cardona from taking this
city, in October, 1512.
If
these plans were successfully carried out, how would it then fare with the
freedom of Italy, which the Pope thought he had achieved? The affairs of
Ferrara compelled him to look to the interests at stake here.
For
he had not come to an understanding with Alfonso d'Este, although the latter
had come to Rome for that purpose. One day, a page in the palace heard the Pope
walking up and down his chamber, hissing between his teeth the words,
"This Vulcan," and "Vengeance." Alfonso was called Vulcan,
and he was immediately informed of this incident. It is possible that, at that
moment, Julius was thinking of the Duke's plots against his life; however that
may be, Alfonso, who had just been bidden to a banquet by the Pope, feared for
his life if he accepted the invitation. With the aid of Fabrizio Colonna, who
in this manner requited him for saving his life in the battle of Ravenna, he
succeeded in effecting his escape. As a result of this, however, Cardona and
Alfonso again became enemies. The Pope, who was determined to subject Ferrara,
was again in need of the Spaniards, as the Swiss refused their assistance for
this purpose. Yet he did not go so far as to allow them, in return, to carry
out their intentions upon Milan; Massimiliano Sforza must, after all, be at
last installed there; but he allowed them to have their will with regard to
Venice. On the 25th November, he concluded an alliance with them, according to
which the Venetians should leave Verona and Vicenza to the Emperor, retaining
Padua and Treviso, for an immediate payment of 250,000 ducats and an annual
tribute of 30,ooo. This alliance promised him assistance against Ferrara.
This
arrangement once carried out, and the greater part of Lombardy in the hands of
the Emperor and the Spaniards, how could the remainder hold out for any length
of time, seeing that the Swiss were venal and young Sforza very weak, and,
moreover, in the hands of Andrea del Burgo and other imperial councillors?
Italy, instead of enjoying liberty, would thus come into greater subjection
than ever. Were not Julius' intentions themselves
praiseworthy? Were not the means he adopted bold and
heroic? But all his exertions, instead of tending to the emancipation of Italy,
merely enhanced the Austro-Spanish power. For ideal aspirations directed
towards attaining their highest aims can only be fulfilled under conditions
which are subject to their own peculiar laws. Human actions are prompted by the
first; their success, however, depends upon the second.
Before
Julius saw the whole result of his schemes, yet while he dimly conceived it, it
was vouchsafed to him, in February, 1513, to die. There is credible evidence
that his anxiety as to the future of Italy was the cause of his death. It was
fated that even his decease should further the intentions of the Austro-Spanish
house.
Upon
whom should it desire to confer the Papal dignity, but upon that Cardinal, whom
great favours had placed under an obligation, and whom, in consequence of the
events in Florence, and the danger with which he was threatened by the French
and the popular party, it was able to call its own? To this Cardinal the
younger members of distinguished families in Florence were devoted heart and
soul, as were also, in the Conclave, the junior cardinals, especially Petrucci
of Siena and Sauli of Genoa, since, seeing how gentle and easy his nature was,
they would share his power. It was, perhaps, his abdominal complaint, for which
he was operated upon in the Conclave itself, and which, in spite of his
comparative youth, held out little hope of old age, that contributed to his
election; or perhaps it was due to his clever friend Bibbiena,
who knew the weak points of all the cardinals and how to use them. At last
Cardinal Soderini, his natural enemy, also gave way, and was followed by all
the other cardinals. He was elected. The people forthwith remembered his
generosity; the poets prophesied that, as Numa followed Romulus, so would Leo X
thus he styled himself out of respect for a dream his mother had follow the
stormy Julius, to crown in times of peace every virtue, every toil, and every
art. His marvellous fortune was the common theme, how he, but a year previously
taken prisoner at Ravenna, was miraculously liberated from captivity, and had
become lord of Florence and lord of the world. All the inscriptions to be seen
on the day of his coronation, the anniversary of that battle he was mounted on
the Turkish horse upon which he had then ridden extolled the "subduer of
fortune." Of the treasure, which Julius had so carefully hoarded up,
100,000 ducats were thrown among the people. The cup of joy and hope was
overflowing.
First
of all, it was certain that his policy would further the interests of the
Spaniards, and that, among all their many successes, his election was not the least.
6.
STRUGGLE OF THE FRENCH AND SWISS FOR MILAN
Between
the two great powers of Europe, the French and the Austro-Spanish, both of
which coveted Milan, stood the Swiss, withholding it from both. They had
themselves not merely gained in glory and prestige, but had also acquired
considerable tracts of land in the Milanese. The valleys and defiles through
which the Tosa, Maggia, Onsernone, and Melazza, flowing from the Alpine chain, break their way
through the rocky hills, not fruitful they supply only stone and men who know
how to carry loads and sweep chimneys but the highways of the nations, had been
occupied by them. Moreover, there had passed into their hands the pleasant
shores of Lake Maggiore, so far as they belong to Locarno, and the slope of the
mountain chain where it sinks down towards the Lake of Lugano, a land full of
southern fruits and cornfields and vineyards: Locarno, Lugano, and Mendrisio, long since devoted to them, had come into their
hands. The whole mountain chain from Monte Rosa to the Wormser Joch, with all
the passes, for the possession of which nations had so often striven, had now,
after passing from Italian into German hands, been brought to own obedience to
the Confederation and the associated districts, through the instrumentality of
the Grisons, which had not only appropriated the valleys of the Mera and Liro, but the Valtelline also, as
belonging to the jurisdiction of Chur. Their cattle could now be driven in
peace to the market at Varese, and the very first which was held, brought them
extraordinary profits wine and corn came
up to them from Italy without trouble.
It
was now the Pope's care to instal Massimiliano Sforza as ruler of the rest of
the Milanese, and this project was welcomed by the voice of the citizens of the
capital, once more assembled on the green square before the Duomo; but that it
was carried out, was principally due to the staunch attitude of the Swiss. On
the 30th December, 1512, Massimiliano received the key of the city from the
hands of a citizen of Zurich, and made his entrance. The Swiss, whom he
confirmed in the -possession of their acquisitions, and to whom he promised a
present payment of 200,000 ducats, and an annual subsidy of 40,000, entered
into an alliance with him, promising "to defend him and his successors in
the duchy by force of arms for all time."
What
a difference between the innocence of the early fraternities, designed only for
defence, and this alliance, which amounted to an independent entrance into
international disputes to defend a foreign land! What a difference between that
night on the Rütli and these days, when all the
princes of our nations vied with each other for the favour of the peasants!
They felt it themselves. Marx Roust often narrated how, when he and the other
deputies were sitting in the Diet at Baden to seal that alliance, three heavy
blows were struck on the table by invisible hands. There is a legend to the effect,
that the three men who formed the Confederation on the Rütli
now rest in the Seelisberg Mountain, and keep watch
over their people. To them the blows were attributed. Not only men, but nations
also, have a zenith in their power and life; and never were the Confederates
more powerful than at this moment. In spite of this weird fright, they affixed
their seals.
War
broke out immediately. Louis XII, who had always thought the conquest of Milan
the glory of his reign, was determined to reconquer it. He had already, in
September, 1512, offered the Swiss, through the intervention of Savoy, both
peace and alliance. In February, 1513, he made a second attempt. In order to be able to
send his envoys to the Confederates, he overcame his scruples,
and made over to them the strongholds which he still held in the district they
had occupied. But when Trivulzio urgently warned them not to increase the power
of their own friends, adding, "That he had been present when proposals had
been made to his King, to make common cause with others, and to join in
conquering their possessions" he did not quite hit the mark. It was in no
wise in the interest of Austria, but in their own, that they kept Massimiliano
Sforza at Milan, and this prince was quite as dependent upon them, through
their soldiers and their cardinal, as he was upon the Emperor, through his
councillors. Only a few in all, a son of Jürg uff der
Flue, a son of Hetzel of Bern, and some captains from the Stein, gave the
French envoys, Trivulzio and La Tremouille, an
audience on their passage through.
Louis
was obliged to cast about for another alliance and other infantry for his
undertaking.
This
alliance he found in the Venetians. Both he and they had again the same enemy
to face, viz. the Austro- Spanish house; on the 13th March, 1513, they allied
themselves, the King promising to restore Cremona and the Ghiara
d'Adda. Foot soldiers, bidding the Emperor defiance,
came through all parts of the empire, some from Bohemia, some from Swabia, the
greater number from North Germany, and joined the French. The black troop under
Thomas of Mittelburg, consisting of landsknechts,
with great broadswords and armour, almost like knights, were led by the young Fleuranges, who himself carried two standards, across the
Meuse through Burgundy to Lyons; other landsknechts were led by his brother, Jametz. Their father, Robert de la Mark, who had inherited
from his uncle William the name of "The Boar of the Ardennes" he had
invented for the infantry a fence of iron chains, to rest the arquebuses upon
himself led 100 lances. In May, the French army, 1,200 lances and 8,000 foot,
began their march across the mountains; on the 12th it was received at
Alessandria, and the Guelphs were all astir in the whole country.
Now
it lay in the nature of the interested parties, as well as in the situation,
that neither the Spaniards, though with a strong army in the vicinity, and
bound by various promises and obligations, bestirred themselves to protect the
Duke, nor did the Emperor send the assistance he had promised. The 4,000 Swiss,
who were in the country, retired from place to place. Meanwhile, when the whole
country was in arms the French from the Castle of Milan again marched through
the city as masters and the 4,000, with their Duke at their head, fled to
Novara, the very city where Ludovico had been betrayed, all appeared to be at
an end, and Trivulzio boasted that he had the Swiss like molten lead in a
spoon.
But,
on this occasion, he boasted prematurely. To his attempts to persuade them, the
Swiss replied that he should prove them "with arms, not with words."
They all followed in this matter the advice of Benedict von Weingarten, a man,
according to Anshelm, stout, upright, and wise, who, though he unwillingly took
the command, led them bravely. The French attacks met with almost more contempt
than resistance. The gates of Novara were left open, and the breach holes hung
with sheets. Whilst the Swiss, by this show of unanimous bravery, wiped out the
shame which Novara had brought them fourteen years before, their confederates
of the reserve crossed the mountains; the greater portion, from the Forest
cantons and Bern, came over the St. Gotthard and down Lake Maggiore, whilst the
smaller contingent, from Zurich and Chur, crossed the St. Bernardino, and
descended the Lake of Como. A messenger soon arrived, asking, "Why they
hurried? There was no danger"; a priest shortly afterwards made the
announcement that, "The Duke and all the Swiss had been slain." But
they collected their forces, and resolved to find their comrades, dead or
alive. Both contingents hastened; the nearest road from the St. Gotthard was
chosen, and, on the 5th June, the greater part of the force had arrived close
to Novara.
On
the same day, the French raised the siege. On the road to Trecate,
Trivulzio selected a rising knoll, called Riotta,
which, owing to ditches and marshes, was well suited for defence; they
bivouacked here at night, mounted their guns, and intended the following
morning to fix their iron palisade. Their good entrenchments emboldened them to
await the coming of the 6,000 landsknechts, who, with 500 fresh lances, were
already in the Susa valley.
As
soon as the Swiss appear in the field, their whole thought is battle. They have
neither generals nor plans, nor yet any carefully considered strategy; the God
of their fathers and St. Urs, their strong arm and
the halberd are enough for them, and their bravery shows them the way. Those
who had arrived at Novara on the 5th June, refreshed themselves with a draught,
an hour's sleep and another draught, and then, without waiting long for the Zurichers,
as the morning of the 6th June dawned, they all, both those who had been there
and the fresh arrivals, rushed in disorder, like a swarm of bees flying from
the hive into the summer sun, as Anshelm describes it, through the gates and
the breaches into the open. They were almost without guns, entirely without
cavalry, and many were without armour; but, all the same, they rushed on the
enemy, well entrenched as they were behind good artillery, and upon those
knights, sans peur et sans reproche,
in full armour.
They
stood face to face with the enemy, on whose coats of mail the first rays of the
rising sun flashed; they seemed to them like a hill of gleaming steel.
They
first attacked the lances and cannon of Robert de la Mark. Here was engaged the
smaller body, in whose front ranks stood with their pikes the bravest heroes,
two Diesbachs, Aerni Winkelried, and Niklaus Conrad,
all distinguished for their ancestry or the nobility of virtue; the greater
body, almost more by instinct than intention, in the midst of the smoke and the
first effect of the hostile artillery, made a detour round a corpse; they
sought and found the landsknechts. When the cannon at once came to the assistance
of the latter, the Swiss again separated. Some fought against the Black Flags;
the greater part, however, threw themselves upon the guns. Thus they fought in
three distinct places; the first against the knights, who often broke up their
own ranks and appeared behind their banners but they always rallied again and
held out the next, 400 men, wielding
their halberds in both hands, fought against a company of Fleuranges'
Black Flags, dealing blow for blow, and thrust for thrust; whilst the third and
greatest body was engaged with the landsknechts, who, besides cannon, had 800
arquebuses; but soon the rain of bullets ceased; only the clash of swords and
the crash of pikes was audible. At length the standard of the landsknechts
sank; their leaders were buried under a heap of slain; their cannon were lost
and employed against them. Meanwhile the Blacks also gave way. Robert de la
Mark looked about him; he saw his foot soldiers and his sons lost; in order to
save these, he also retreated. He found them among the dead, among the victors,
bleeding still from wounds, and rescued them. In vain did Trivulzio appeal to
St. Catherine and St. Mark; he, too, as well as La Tremouille,
who was wounded, was forced to retire. The Swiss gave no quarter to the
fugitives whom they overtook; they then returned, ordered their ranks for
prayer, and knelt down to give thanks to God and their saints. They next set
about dividing the spoil and burying the dead.
It
was the second hour of the morning, when the news of the issue of the battle
reached Milan. The French, who, in anticipation of victory, had left the
castle, immediately fled; some back thither, others to the churches and the
palaces of their friends; the Ghibelline faction at once rose, and city and
country returned to their allegiance to Massimiliano Sforza. The Swiss
undertook to chastise those who had revolted. They compelled the people of Asti
who had left their houses to pay 100,000 ducats, Savoy, which had gone over to
the enemy, 50,000, and Montferrat, which had insulted their ambassadors,
100,000. This event enabled the Spaniards to hold their heads high. In Genoa,
they restored the Fregosi, who had been expelled for twenty-one days, and
Ottaviano among them; they reconquered Bergamo, Brescia, and Peschiera, which also
had revolted.
After
this victory, the Swiss enjoyed far greater power in Milan than ever before.
"What you have restored by your blood and your strength", wrote
Massimiliano Sforza, "shall belong for the future as much to you as to
me", and these were not empty words. The Swiss perceived that they were
strong enough to attempt other achievements. "If we could only reckon upon
obedience in our men," they were heard to say, "we would march
through the whole of France, long and broad as it is."
7.
GENERAL WAR MOVEMENT
Two
great combinations confronted each other: the Emperor, the Pope, Spain,
England, and Switzerland on the one side, and France, Venice, and Scotland on
the other. The first group seemed to have in view an immediate attack upon
France. Affairs in France, under Louis XII, developed in a similar way as under
Charles VIII. The commencement, in both cases, rapid conquest; the turning
point, a quarrel with the Pope; then a League; the final result, a loss of the
conquests, and jeopardising of the French position itself.
But
as, on this occasion, all the factors were greater, the French exertions
stronger, the Pope's enmity more violent, and the achievements of the League in
Italy more brilliant, it followed that the attack upon France, which at present
was more supported by Maximilian's guidance than by his actual forces, was
proportionately important and dangerous.
Julius,
who, on the 3rd of December, 1512, surrounded by 120 prelates, had pronounced
an interdict against France, had prepared for the coming storm. Ferdinand
advised that Burgundy, Normandy, and Guienne should
be seized from the French; Maximilian and Henry VIII also urged this course, as
they had long-standing claims to these provinces; the Swiss also agreed, in the
hope of rendering their Duke secure in Milan. The new Pope, Leo, was on account
of the still prevailing schism obliged to follow the way of his predecessor.
Thus, in April, 1513, a general attack upon France from all four sides,
English, German, Italian, and Spanish, was determined upon in a formal
treaty.
But
this scheme was not capable of being carried out on this scale, as the
Venetians continued to side with the French, so that the arms of the League had
also to be turned against them. Ferdinand, moreover, would never allow war on
his frontiers. Pursuing his tactics of 1497 and 1503, he concluded an
unexpected truce for his frontier territory. It thus came about, that the
Spanish and Italian attack, that is, the forces of Ferdinand and Leo, turned
against Venice, whilst the attack upon France could only be left to the Swiss,
who acted for the Germans, and to the English. Herein Maximilian showed himself
once more very energetic and influential. He himself had, it is true, placed no
large army in the field, but he had his hand in all the operations and was not
slow to display his qualities of generalship.
On
the 1st of August, 1513, the Spanish under Cardona, and 200 heavy and 2,000
light cavalry of the Pope, under Prospero Colonna, were arrayed before Padua
against the Venetians. But the greatest strength of this force probably
consisted in the Swabian and Tyrolese companies, which the Emperor had sent
them, under the command of Count von Lupfen, and the
captains, Frundsberg, Rogendorf,
Landau, and Lichtenstein, who had been tried and proved in this war.
On
the same 1st of August, the Swiss promised him to make an attack upon Burgundy.
In the Confederation, an extensive revolt of the peasants against the cities
had just completely ruined the French party, and had even forced the Bernese to
depose three new and two old magistrates, who were suspected of French
leanings. This made the Emperor all the more certain of them; he promised them
assistance, without which they could not undertake the expedition: artillery, horse,
and some money.
At
the beginning of August, the King of England joined his army, which, since the
22nd of July, had been engaged in besieging Terouanne.
This was, beyond doubt, the most important operation; it drew the attention of
all eyes to it. The English were still just the same as ever, not celebrating
St. Martin's day because he was the patron saint of their enemies, calling the
painted man, used for a mark at their bow-practice, "the Frenchman",
and saying to their children: "Hit the Frenchman in the heart"; they had gladly offered themselves according
to their counties, within and without their respective liberties, for selection
and enrolment for military service; they were mainly armed with bows and
crossbows, leaden clubs and halberds; they arranged their march so that they
could always barricade themselves at once behind their wagons, for they only
cared to fight behind a strong position. Their King came with them, true
Lancastrian as he was. Before setting out, almost in imitation of Henry V, he
caused the last Yorkist who was in his power, Edmund Earl of Suffolk, to be put
to death. He then took with him Charles Brandon, son of that Brandon who had
carried the standard of Henry VII in the battle of Bosworth Field, once the
playmate and companion of his youth, a short time since created Viscount Lisle.
In his suite were also Charles Somerset, all of whose ancestors had lived and
died for the house of Lancaster, George Talbot, of the blood of the last hero
in the struggle of the Lancastrians against France, and many others whose names
are connected with the same events. The fame of his generosity, the means for
exercising which his father's wealth furnished him, allured the knights and
soldiery of Brabant, Hainault, and Flanders, and even far into Germany, so much
to him, that many sold all they possessed in order, well accoutred and
equipped, to earn greater pay under him. He had splendid cannon, and amongst
them probably those twelve large pieces of ordnance, called the Twelve
Apostles, cast for him in the Netherlands.
In
order to inspire as much confidence as the Swiss and the Spanish forces did,
his army needed nothing further than an experienced general. Henry VIII, on
begging the Emperor to lend him, for this purpose, Duke Heinrich, the warrior
of Brunswick, or Marshal Vergy, the Emperor himself
offered to lead the army of his friend. He hoped with it to gain in open battle
the bank of the Somme and, with the assistance of the Swiss, Burgundy,
whereupon the two princes would unite and visit the French with a campaign,
which would be as disastrous for them as ever an English war had been. On the
9th of August, he met the King near Aire. He himself wore Henry's red cross and
the Tudor rose; he was not annoyed that his two hundred horse, whose whole
adornment lay in their golden chains, appeared insignificant in comparison with
the brilliant accoutrements of the King's troops, or that his servants stooped
down to pick up the silver bells, which Henry's noble pages purposely let fall
from their horses' trappings; he accepted from the King a tent, gorgeously
fitted up inside with silk hangings, gilded trelliswork and golden vessels,
and, if Bellay is to be trusted, 100 escus a day for
his table, and came into his camp.
Thirty-four
years before, Maximilian had besieged the same town, and, on that occasion,
gained his most brilliant victory over the French, who had come across the Lys
to relieve it. Mindful of this former success for on this occasion, also, Terouanne was only besieged from one side -after having
reconnoitred the camp and the walls with his master of the ordnance, he threw
five bridges across the river. His luck would have it, that on the very same
day that they crossed (17th August), the enemy, about eight thousand strong,
made their appearance before him on the heights of Guinegate, descended, halted
at the foot of the hill, and sent out light troops with provisions for the
town. A simultaneous attack was planned by the besieged and their friends
outside upon both parts of the English camp. Thereupon Maximilian, sending his
infantry to a brook in the rear of the enemy's camp, threw himself with 2,000
horse upon the troops who had been sent out in advance. These forthwith
galloped back to their camp. Here for it was four o'clock in the afternoon, and
the knights had been in the saddle since two in the morning many had exchanged
their chargers for lighter horses, had thrown off their helmets, and were
refreshing themselves with a draught. All at once, a general confusion and
stampede ensued; the fugitives, coming from the one side, shouted that
"the enemy were at their heels" and dashed wildly on without
stopping, and from the other side, came the tidings that the enemy's infantry
was falling upon their rear. In vain the shout was raised of "Turn about, Hommes d' Armes!". Maximilian's flying artillery swept them
before them; and this day was known hereafter by the name of the Battle of the
Spurs. And when at last the bravest of them rallied on the bridge over the
brook we have referred to, it was only to their destruction; the Burgundian
cavalry found another way across the brook and cut them off. They were all
obliged to surrender, one here and another there; La Palice,
the Due de Longueville, and a hundred others, all the flower of the army.
Bayard, perceiving one of the enemy's knights unconcerned and taking no care,
since the victory was theirs, rushed upon him sword in hand and cried,
"Surrender to me, or thou art a dead man". The knight was wounded and
surrendered himself. "But who art thou?" he asked. "I am Bayard,
and surrender myself to thee again." Both the other attacks were likewise
repulsed, and on the 22nd of August the town surrendered.
About
the same time on the 27th of August the Swiss, about 30,000 men strong, united
with the horse of Wurttemberg and Burgundy under Duke Ulrich and Vergy; they received the Emperor's siege guns from Landau,
his mortars from Breisach, his field cannon from Ensisheim,
and a hundred arquebuses. Their captains were empowered to make peace, only if
the King renounced all rights to Milan. On their march, they heard the news of
the Emperor's victory. With all the greater courage they crossed the French
frontier.
This
double attack could not but throw the French into great anxiety. Even before
the English had arrived, Louis had found himself obliged to confess to the Parlement that his pecuniary needs were so pressing, and
his finances so much in arrear, that he must sell his demesnes to raise 400,000
livres, in order, without overburdening his poor people, to resist the old
enemies of his realm. After the battle of Guinegate, he despatched his marshal
to Paris in order to review the tradesmen and artizans.
Once more, after so long a peace, the banners of the trade guilds were seen
flying in the streets of the capital, and the same was probably the case in
many other cities. The arrival of the Swiss terrified every
one. A murmur of despondency went through the whole nation; "the
retribution for their misdeeds in Italy was now about to break over their
heads." In this crisis, France
looked with a certain confidence to its old alliance with the Scots.
It
was the lot of King James IV, who once had been desirous of negotiating peace
between the Pope and Louis, with a view to an expedition to Jerusalem, to be
drawn into the whirlpool of this war. After a long peace, differences again
arose with England, which threatened to end in a fresh breach. One of the chief
disputes affected Andrew Barton. Barton was a bold pirate, who had also served
King John of Denmark, James' nearest friend, against the Hanseatic League.
James had delivered to him letters of marque against the Portuguese, who had
killed Barton's father; but he as the Portuguese, the English, and the
Hanseatic League appear to have been united in a long-standing maritime
alliance employed them against the English also; for this he was sought for by
the latter, and, in spite of a resistance which has been immortalized even by
his enemies in a long ballad, was at length killed. James was still smarting
from indignation at this, when he was implored by Queen Anne of France, whom in
knightly manner he had ever declared to be his lady, to come to her assistance:
"for Henry's crossing to Calais threatened both her and Brittany."
The King assembled his barons, in whom their many tournaments had awakened
thirst for a real fight, and who were not a little influenced by the entreaties
of the French ambassador, who, moreover, offered them 50,000 livres for their
equipment. Having arranged matters with his nobles, James sent Lyon King of
Arms to Terouanne to summon his neighbour to return,
and when this had no effect Henry merely reminded him of the fate of Navarre he
equipped himself in Edinburgh with 50,000 men.
The
complicated situation became thus more complicated. From such a vigorous attack
some degree of success was to be expected in England, which would oblige Henry
to return to his realm. It would then be possible for the French, perhaps by an
attack upon Italy, to compel the Swiss to retire, and at the same time to
encourage the Venetians.
As
soon as James crossed the Tweed, the shout of battle rang from village to
village, and from town to town. Henry, who, in order to be more certain of the
loyalty of his frontier provinces, had not compelled them to pay his
benevolence, had entrusted them to the keeping of the Earl of Surrey, a scion
of the famous house of Howard. Round him the nobles gathered at Alnwick; his
son, an admiral of the kingdom, landed at Newcastle with 5,000 men; the
northern and southern shires all sent their contingents. Meanwhile, James
remained for six days at Norham, and dallied for a
while with Lady Ford; he was delighted to see the enemy assembling; for it was
for battle that he had come: "he would fight" he said, "even
though 100,000 English were arrayed against him." Thus minded, he
entrenched himself upon the hill of Flodden, situated between the river Till,
where it flows at the foot of the Cheviots between high banks, and a morass.
No
less enthusiastic for the fray were the English: on Sunday, the 4th of
September, they sent their herald Rougecroix to the
King, asking, "whether it was his intention to remain so long in England
that they could fight on the ensuing Friday?" The King replied: "Were
I in Edinburgh, I would haste to be there by that
day." But was it likely that the English would attack him behind his
entrenchments? In vain they begged of him to come down upon the plain of Milfield, which lay between them. But when he saw that,
following a report which had been spread, they made a detour, as though to
invade Scotland it was the 8th of September, and a Friday he broke up his camp,
burnt his tents, and, under cover of the smoke, marched, in order to anticipate
them, along the heights, to a hill called Piperdy.
Here he halted. Towards the same place, through the low ground, came the
English, and here the battle began.
Thomas
Howard, who had killed Andrew Barton, stood, in order to answer for his
conduct, as he said, in the very first line, and fought magnificently. Not less
valiantly, in another part, did James fight in the front ranks, and repeatedly
threw back the enemy's standards. Now one side, and now again the other,
retired. But at last, owing to the English arrows hitting better up the hill
than the Scottish cannon did down, for they fired too high, the Scots abandoned
the offensive, and formed a square for defence; their king was here also to be
seen fighting heroically. Whilst they were still fighting, and the flower of
both armies falling, night supervened. In this night the Scots sought their
king, and found him not. Had he fallen, had he fled, or was he a prisoner? They
retreated. The English, on visiting the battlefield the following morning, saw
the cannon abandoned, and knew that they were victorious. They found a dead
body in royal dress, and brought it in triumph to Berwick. The Scots maintained
that, "it was Elphinstone, who on that day had worn royal apparel, in
order to deceive the English; their king had been seen across the Tweed."
But they themselves could not show him anywhere. Some said: "Alexander
Hume, whose company alone remained almost intact, and who thereafter insulted
both churches and monasteries, must have killed him;" others, again,
"that he had gone to Jerusalem to do penance for his sins;" the
English accounts merely mention that King James IV died in defending his
banner. The issue of this conflict upon the British Isles was even more
important than the events on the Continent. Henry VIII, whilst fighting against
France, became master of Scotland.
Besides
8,000 others, twelve earls and seventeen barons fell in the battle. Margaret,
Henry VIII's sister, had undertaken the government of the realm. The French,
who could no longer avail themselves of Scottish aid, had to fear the worst
from the English and Swiss. On that fatal 9th of September, 30,000 Swiss
crossed the Tille, where it falls into the Saone, and formed three camps before
the walls of Dijon. The fourth was formed by the Emperor's cavalry and
artillery. On the same day, both Emperor and King were still at Terouanne, and were capable of making an inroad any day
into French territory.
But
on this occasion France was not doomed to fresh devastation, and was saved. If
it be asked how it came about, we may answer, that the turning point was their
temporary yielding to the Swiss. La Tremouille, on
seeing his citadel at Dijon wrecked by bombardment, France undefended, and the
Swiss ready for further operations, attempted to make arrangements with them,
first through an agent, then by appearing in person, and finally through
confidential persons, who went in and out of the camp at dusk. To save France,
he thought it to be the best policy to give up Milan. On the 13th of September,
he had arranged terms of peace with them, according to which the King renounced
his claims to Milan, Asti, and Cremona, paying the Swiss, moreover, 400,000 escus. This was what they desired. What did the conquest of
Burgundy for the house of Austria interest them, especially since they had
never bound themselves to assist in such an undertaking? Only it was a great
mistake on their part to return home, without obtaining any security for their
peace, or the King's word. Meanwhile, the English also resolved to turn back
within sight of the French frontier, which they were actually threatening,
their object being to reduce a semi-free city, which lay at a distance from the
sea. It is not very credible that this was done with the advice of Maximilian,
who was especially interested in invading France, and we find, as a matter of
fact, that immediately after this occurrence, he separated himself from Henry
in a sort of quarrel. Perhaps the latter was influenced by the example of
Edward III, who had besieged this city at the beginning of his French
campaigns; but the chief point, beyond all doubt, was, that he conceived this
to be the easiest and most permanent conquest. For he had razed Terouanne to the ground, in answer to the entreaties of the
Council of Flanders.
However
this may be, on the 1sth and it is impossible to know how far this is connected
with the Swiss retreat he made his appearance before the walls of Tournay; on
the 25th, he entered that city in his assumed quality of King of France. This
city of Tournay, which really belonged to the province of Flanders, had
relations with the Crown of France similar to those subsisting between the
German free cities and the Emperor. Henry likewise confirmed its liberties; but
he did not suffer these liberties to prevent his building a castle there. And
here his campaign ended. In his delight, that though he had not destroyed
France, he had yet succeeded in his attack upon her, and in taking two
strongholds, he amused himself now at Margaret's court at Lille, now in his
royal camp at Tournay with tournaments, 3 when the tidings reached him of the
result of the Venetian operations, to which we, too, must turn our eyes; for
they are all part of the same chain of events, brought to pass in widely separated
places.
In
August, Cardona had left the walls of Padua behind him; he resolved to compel
the Venetians to accept his proffered peace. The Germans, Italians, and Spanish
with him, had penetrated into Venetian territory across the Bacchiglione
and the Brenta as far as Mestre, in order, as they said, to see what the
Venetians had reaped. The country people once more fled to the marshes by the
sea; in Padua and Venice it could plainly be seen how the fine country houses
on the shore burst one after the other into flames. Cardona rode up to the
tower of Malghera, whence the streets and quarters of
Venice were clearly discernible. From here Georg Frundsberg
could not restrain himself from discharging a piece of ordnance against the
city itself, although this had been forbidden.
To
this pitch matters were allowed to come, before Alviano received permission to
march out. What the allies had formerly desired became a source of no little
peril to them now that they had advanced so far, and were surrounded by rivers
and difficult passes. The discovery of a ford enabled them to escape across the
Brenta; but, on the Bacchiglione, when Alviano was
posted in the pass of Olmo before them, Manfrone in
their rear on the road by which they had come, and peasants with their muskets
crowned the heights on both sides of the defile, whilst they had to shelter
themselves through a whole night behind the trunks of trees, they appeared to
be lost, spoils and all. Alviano said that: "he had the remainder of the
barbarian brutes between his shears, and needed only now to close them".
The next morning, the imperial troops having retired a short distance to an
open plain near Creazzo, he sent his flying artillery on ahead, and made after
them. An action took place. The Spaniards fought with desperate valour; Pescara
cried to his men: "If I die, let me not be trampled upon by the
enemy," and led them, all athirst for the fray, against the enemy's
centre. The Germans were protected by the strength of their arms: Frundsberg, who was in the front line, plied his sword
vigorously, and, taking breath like a woodman in a forest felling an oak,
struck again and again. All fought in the certainty that they must either
conquer, or die covered with disgrace; the Papal horse took Alviano's
banner; the Venetian army was completely routed, and those who but just before
thought themselves as good as lost, became at one blow masters of the land.
Such
was the result of the attack upon Venice. This took place on the 7th October,
1513. About the same time, the Emperor, with Frangipani's help more by treason
than force of arms contrived to effect the conquest of Marano, a Venetian
seaport with a splendid commercial situation. Everywhere the League was in
triumph. Three battles had been won, the Scottish nobility in great measure
annihilated, and Venice so far humbled as to be compelled to accept the Pope,
only just before its deadly enemy, as arbiter of its fortune; besides this,
Milan, by a fourth great battle, and by a peace, which only needed ratification,
as well as by the actual occupation of the remaining strongholds, had been
wrested from the French. Yet France as yet had only been attacked on her
frontiers, and was by no means vanquished in the interior. To this end the next
campaign was destined to lead. On the 17th October, 1513, it was agreed at
Lille to begin the campaign of the ensuing year with three attacks upon France,
not only from the German and English, but also from the Spanish side. Henry
promised to secure from his parliament the assurance that, in the event of his
dying without issue, the crown of England should pass to the Archduke Charles
of Austria, who in the ensuing May was to wed his sister Mary.
8.
FURTHER SCHEMES FOR THE ADVANCEMENT OF THE AUSTRO-SPANISH
HOUSE
In
this perilous crisis, Louis XII also felt himself obliged to approach the
victor. He would not forego his claims to Milan; but he thereby caused another
plan to be formed, which would be advantageous to the House of Austria.
One
month after the treaty of Lille, on the i6th November, 1513, Louis XII declared
before notaries that, "He did give and make over
the Duchy of Milan to his younger daughter, Renée, without revocation, without
any exception." It was soon seen
what his object was in doing so. On the 1st December, he concluded a treaty
with Ferdinand: "the same Renée should be married to one of Ferdinand's
two grandsons, who should then receive Milan, which should be taken from the
Swiss. Ferdinand hoped by this marriage to unite the Guelphs and Ghibellines in
Milan, as he had once, in Naples, succeeded in doing with the Angevins and Aragonese. In deep secrecy he despatched an envoy to Milan,
to represent to the Duke how badly he was situated under the power of the
Swiss, and, if possible, to detach him from their alliance.
Anne
of Brittany, the old friend of the House of Austria, desiring to see her
younger daughter well married, was the real negotiator of these terms of
alliance. When, on the 2nd January, 1514, she died, one might have supposed
that this incipient union would dissolve and disappear. But, on the contrary,
this very occurrence gave it fresh life. For, as Louis still wished to have an
heir of his body, he did not reject the proposal that he should take to wife
Eleanor, the eldest of Ferdinand's granddaughters, and should enter into a
hereditary alliance with the Austro-Spanish house. Navarre would then still
remain joined to Castile. Fray Bernaldo de Trinopoli,
a Dominican, remained behind for the negotiations, which lasted a considerable
time. Quintana, the confidant of Almazan, journeyed in February, 1514, from
Burgos to Blois, and from Blois to Innsbruck; on the 11th of March, he was for
a long time closeted with King Louis; on the 12th, the King's council assembled
once again, and finally, on the 13th, new treaties were signed. But the grand
alliance had not as yet been arranged, but only a truce, to which, however, as
Quintana declared, the Emperor, in Henry's name as well as his own, was a
party, and during which, although Sforza was no party to it, Louis promised not
to attack Milan.
This
truce was designed to lead to the grand alliance, and to universal peace.
It
can readily be perceived that this was in no wise in harmony with the treaty of
Lille, not merely in that the war, then resolved on, lost its whole raison
d'être, but, also, in that the prospective marriage of Charles with the
English princess became very doubtful; for it was to the interest of the House
of Austria that the other of Maximilian's grandsons should be kept for the
matrimonial alliance with Hungary, which, as the heir to the throne was a
weakling, had every prospect of continuing the succession. But, on that
account, no hostility was feared from Henry, who had moreover taken no steps,
as yet, to obtain the sanction of his parliament: "he was Ferdinand's
son-in-law; Maximilian, too, who had come into his camp, had shown him the
greatest confidence that one man could show another. He would, accordingly,
accept the truce, if he only did not hear of it too soon."
With
the greatest secrecy then the Spanish ambassador insisted that not even the
Emperor's daughter should be informed of it the grand alliance was at length to
be established. In a contemporary French manuscript, the original draft of the
compact has been found: "Eleanor to marry Louis; Renée, the second
grandson of the Emperor; Milan and Genoa to be delivered over into Ferdinand's
hands, in favour of the two above-named; Louis to lay claim neither to Naples
nor yet to the money he was to receive thence, and not to support Navarre; the
Swiss to be jointly driven back within their borders. In return for this
Tournay to be restored to France". It almost looks as though Ferdinand,
among other things, was bent upon preventing a new Philip rising up in the
person of Charles. In any case, all this was admirably calculated for the
aggrandisement of his house: on the 12th of August, 1514, he sent to Bernaldo
de Trinopoli the authorization to arrange these
marriages and to conclude this treaty.
In
these days, the prestige of the Austro-Spanish house in Italy, Germany, and the
whole of Europe, was greater than it had ever been. In May, 1514, Ferdinand
concluded a compact with Genoa, which was the basis of all the later relations,
almost those of vassal and suzerain, between the Genoese and the Kings of
Spain. Already it was calculated how frightened Massimiliano Sforza would be,
and how, under the pressure of his officials, who were quite devoted to the
Emperor, he would surrender his citadels and his people in favour of the latter's
grandson. The Swiss could be compensated with money. Venice, which could not
even retake Marano, was not a little weakened by a fresh disaster a
conflagration, which, breaking out on the 14th January, in the linen warehouses
on the Rialto, spread on both sides of the canal, and in one day and night
destroyed property to the value of two millions. Leo was in alliance with this
house; Naples was completely subservient. This much for Italy. In Switzerland,
the people had again and again risen against the French party, so that it
appeared as if a King of France would never again be able to avail himself of
their services. In Lucerne, six suspects were committed to prison, and two, who
were found guilty, put to death. The country people of Baden seized old Caspar Hetel, whose son had gone over to the French, and, paying
no heed to the fact that his son had acted against his wishes, tortured and
beheaded him. "Hans Rudolf," the mother wrote to her son, "thou
hast not acted as an honourable man, thou hast put thy father to death: never
shalt thou again address me as thy mother : I will never own thee more as my
son." a This conflict penetrated into the inmost secrets of filial love
and affection; it redounded to the advantage of Spain and Austria over France;
in the next Swiss diets, there was no one to be found who spoke French. In
Germany, the election of a bishop, even where the chapter was unfavourable to
the candidate, only cost the Emperor a word. For instance, a second Albrecht of
the house of Brandenburg, which had always been devoted to the Austrian house,
and from which, but shortly before this, another Albrecht had been appointed
from the imperial camp in Padua to the office of Grandmaster in Prussia,
received the Archbishoprics of Magdeburg and Mainz. A great tumult in
Wurttemberg ended in the Estates advising their Duke to live at the court of
the Emperor, only on no account to sever himself from Austria. At Regensburg,
which had long resisted an imperial administrator, there arrived at the
beginning of the year 1514, Wolf von Wolfstall and
the other imperial commissioners. Many of their opponents, "famous masters
in their respective arts, old, honourable men with white hair," as the
chronicle says, paid the penalty with their lives. Others were expelled and
their wives sent after them. The imperial commissioners appointed a new council
and made a new constitution at their discretion. They boasted that the Emperor
had, in the previous year, made a similar example of more than one city. At the
same time, in the interests of Austria, Georg of Saxony vanquished the Frisians
in the west, whilst in the east, Heinrich of Brunswick, the warrior, overcame
the Budjadings, and both united triumphed over Etzard Cirksena, Count of East
Friesland, whom the Emperor had placed under his ban as his enemy, for having
supported these peoples. The Budjadings were ruined
by the winter of this year (which continued from October, 1513, to February,
1514, with such severity, that all the springs were frozen hard and the
peasants for a long period counted their years from this great frost), and
their privileges were abolished. Etzard, in April of
this year, offered Georg fealty in respect of East Friesland, and tribute for
Groningen and the Ommelande. But this did not content
Georg. In July, he devastated Damm with great cruelty. Groningen was inclined
for immediate submission. Etzard saw his enemy
marauding as far as the gates of Emden.
Among
other motives, this great good fortune may have induced Christian II of Denmark
to sue for the hand of Isabella, Maximilian's second granddaughter. His father
John had, in the year 1511, pledged himself to aid the French. After his death
he also was prepared to support the Scots. But he now severed himself from the
Franco-Scottish alliance. In April, 1514, the matter was settled, and Christian
promised to side with the Teutonic Order on behalf of the Empire, and to oppose
the claims of Sigismund of Poland. In June, 1514, Maximilian's third
granddaughter, Mary, journeyed through the Empire in order to wed Louis, the
heir to the throne of Hungary.
We
see the position of affairs in Europe; how the French had not merely lost
Italy, but their party had almost everywhere perished or become Spanish, and
how the two great combinations threatened to merge into one, and Louis XII was
himself on the point of becoming a member of the Austro-Spanish House. In July
and August, it looked as though the Spanish monarchy would one day be able to
embrace the whole of Europe. At the same time, the same house was further
advantaged by the second chief discovery in America. In September, 1513, that
Nunez Balboa, who had founded Veragua, sailed from
Darien to find the South Sea. After much toil and exertion, outstripping his
comrades, he climbed the peak of a high mountain and saw, first of all our
races, before him the great ocean that separates the two continents of the
earth. He made a monument of stones and took possession of the mountain; he
proceeded down the coast, called his notaries to him, and took possession of
the sea for Ferdinand the Catholic. The cacique, who had shown him the way, he
baptized with the name of the heir to all this power in Europe and America, his
prince, Charles.
THE
END.